The Project Gutenberg EBook of An Examination of the Testimony of the Four Evangelists by Simon Greenleaf, LL.D. This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at http://www.gutenberg.org/license Title: An Examination of the Testimony of the Four Evangelists Author: Simon Greenleaf, LL.D. Release Date: January 17, 2011 [Ebook #34989] Language: English Character set encoding: UTF‐8 ***START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK AN EXAMINATION OF THE TESTIMONY OF THE FOUR EVANGELISTS*** An Examination of the Testimony of the Four Evangelists, by the Rules of Evidence Administered in Courts of Justice. With an Account of the Trial of Jesus. By Simon Greenleaf, LL.D. Dane Professor of Law in Harvard University Second Edition Revised and Corrected by the Author. London: A. Maxwell & Son, 32, Bell Yard, Lincoln’s Inn; W. Smith, 113, Fleet Street; Hodges & Smith, Dublin; T. & J. Clark, Edinburgh. 1847 CONTENTS Contents And Synopsis Of The Harmony. Advertisement To This Edition. An Examination, Etc. Harmony Of The Gospels. Part I. Events Connected With The Birth And Childhood Of Jesus. Part II. Announcement And Introduction Of Our Lord’s Public Ministry. Part III. Our Lord’s First Passover, And The Subsequent Transactions Until The Second. Part IV. Our Lord’s Second Passover, And The Subsequent Transactions Until The Third. Part V. From Our Lord’s Third Passover, Until His Final Departure From Galilee, At The Festival Of Tabernacles. Part VI. The Festival Of Tabernacles And The Subsequent Transactions, Until Our Lord’s Arrival At Bethany, Six Days Before The Fourth Passover. Part VII. Our Lord’s Public Entry Into Jerusalem, And The Subsequent Transactions Before The Fourth Passover. Part VIII. The Fourth Passover; Our Lord’s Passion; And The Accompanying Events Until The End Of The Jewish Sabbath. Part IX. Our Lord’s Resurrection, His Subsequent Appearances, And His Ascension. Note On The Resurrection. An Account Of The Trial Of Jesus. The Jewish Account Of The Trial Of Jesus. By Mr. Salvador. The Trial Of Jesus Before Caiaphas And Pilate. Preface. Analysis Of The Chapter Of Mr. Salvador, Entitled “The Administration Of Justice” Among The Jews. Trial Of Jesus. Footnotes ADVERTISEMENT. In introducing to the notice of the British Public, Mr. Professor GREENLEAF’S Harmony of the Four Gospels, the publishers have much satisfaction in announcing, that it has become a Standard Work in the United States of America: and its intrinsic value has induced them to make it known, in the hope of promoting its circulation, in this country. The spirit of infidelity is far more restless and active on the other side of the Atlantic, than, happily, it has been in our highly-favoured land: and, in consequence, it has called forth some of the most able and powerful minds to correct and subdue it. Among these advocates of Divine Revelation, the profound lawyer, Professor Greenleaf, holds a most honourable and distinguished place; and his work may justly be regarded as combining sound and practical knowledge with well-directed zeal and piety. Its character has been very fairly appreciated in two leading North American journals, from which the following extracts are made, as indicative of its contents, and also of the high estimation in which its learned author is deservedly held in his own country. EXTRACT OF A NOTICE OF PROFESSOR GREENLEAF ON THE FOUR GOSPELS, OCTOBER 24, 1846, IN “THE NEW YORK OBSERVER.” The Author is a lawyer, very learned in his profession, acute, critical and used to raising and meeting practical doubts. Author of a treatise on the law of evidence, which has already become a classic in the hands of the profession which he adorns, and teaches in one of the Law Seminaries which do honour to our country in the eyes of Europe, he brings rare qualifications for the task he assumes. That he should, with the understanding and from the heart, accept the Gospel as the truth, avow it as his Hope, and seek to discharge a duty to his fellow-men by laying before them the grounds on which he founds this acceptance and this hope, are cheering circumstances to the Christian, and present strong appeals to the indifferent. To his profession, to the lawyers of the country, however, this work makes a strong appeal. They are a very secular profession. Their business is almost wholly conversant with material interests. Their time is absorbed in controversies, of passion, or of interest. Acute, critical, and disputatious, they apparently present a field unpropitious for the acceptance of a religion, spiritual, disinterested, and insisting on perfect holiness. Still, they necessarily need to know and must enforce the rules of finding truth and justice; the principles for ascertaining truth and dispensing justice are the great subjects of all their discussions, so far as they are discussions of any general principle. From this cause it is, that this profession has numbered among its members, in every age, Christians of great eminence, and in our own day and country, we cannot turn to the eminent men of this profession in any large community, without the satisfaction of finding our Faith embraced by those whose habits of practical as well as speculative investigation render them evidently the best able to appreciate its claims and to detect any imperfections in its proof. So we trust it always may be; and we are assured that the best models of the mode of investigating matters of legal controversy as the proof of facts, are writings on the evidences. Paley’s treatise and that of Chalmers, on the oral testimony in favour of Christ’s mission, Paley’s examination of the writings of the apostle Paul, are, we are assured, the best models extant for forming the habit of examining oral and documentary evidence. These are subjects on which it is of vital importance, in a secular view, that a lawyer’s habits should be right: in a spiritual view the importance is unspeakable. Mr. Greenleaf has doubtless felt this truth, and has also felt that his position would give to his labours some authority with his brethren and with the public. He has given himself honourably to the labour, and spread its results before the world. It is long since Infidelity has found its advocates among the truly learned. Among the guesses and speculations of a small portion of unsanctified medical men, she still finds now and then a champion. Historians and philosophers have long since discussed her pretensions. And now from the Jurists and Lawyers, the practical masters of this kind of investigation, works are appearing, whereby not only an earnest reception of the Gospel is manifested, but the mode and means of action and of credit by which all human affairs are governed. We lose in respect to our own investigations on this subject by its very sacredness. We have an idle dread, that it is not open to free investigation: to severe practical tests. We need to be invited, to be pressed to examine this subject freely. Dr. Chalmers in one department of this inquiry has led the way. Mr. Greenleaf in another has also presented an example. And it will not be competent, after these men have thus investigated and taught the rules and laws of investigation, for any man who is not willing to arrogate superior claims to learning and ability, to turn aside superciliously from an examination of the Gospels. Such are our views of this work, which we commend to all: to the legal profession, from the character of its topics and the rank of its author: to men desirous of knowledge, in every rank in life, because of its presenting this subject under such a treatment as every-day practical questions are treated with. It does not touch the intrinsic evidences of the Gospel: those which to the believer are, after all, the highest proofs. But it is to be remembered, that these are proofs which are not satisfactory until an examination of the outward evidences has led men to the conviction, that the Gospels cannot be false. FROM THE “NORTH AMERICAN REVIEW.” _Professor Greenleaf on the Gospels, and Strauss’ __“__Life of Jesus.__”_—Of course we place the titles of these two books together only by way of contrast. They relate, it is true, to the same general subject; but it is hard to conceive of two works more unlike in their scope, character, and purpose. The object of the one is to prove, and of the other to disprove, the Christian religion. The one is the production of an able and profound lawyer, a man who has grown grey in the halls of justice and the schools of jurisprudence,—a writer of the highest authority on legal subjects, whose life has been spent in weighing testimony and sifting evidence, and whose published opinions on the rules of evidence are received as authoritative in all the English and American tribunals,—for fourteen years the highly respected colleague of the late Mr. Justice Story, and now the honoured head of the most distinguished and prosperous school of English law in the world. The other is the work of a German professor and speculatist, also profoundly learned in his way,—an ingenious and erring framer of theories of the most striking character, almost unheard of till his brain either conceived them or gave them currency, though relating to topics with which men have been familiar for eighteen centuries,—a subtle controversialist, whose work, as he himself avows, is deeply tinged with the most strongly marked peculiarities of the philosophy and theology of his countrymen. We presume the most ardent admirer of Dr. Strauss will not object to our characterising the two works as excellent specimens, the one of clear and shrewd English common sense, the other of German erudition, laborious diligence, and fertility in original speculation. And if the subject of inquiry were one that involved his own temporal and immediate interests, and it were necessary to determine which of these two writers would give the wiser and safer counsel, or the more trustworthy opinion, we suppose the same person would agree with us in making the choice. On the publishers announcing to Professor Greenleaf their wish to introduce his Harmony to the notice of the British Public, he with equal promptitude and kindness communicated to them some important additions to his Introduction, and also numerous valuable notes, more particularly adapted to the use of Theological Students. These are now printed for the first time: and at the suggestion of a very eminent and learned clergyman of the Established Church, the publishers have added in an Appendix an accurate and elegant translation of the late learned French Advocate, A. M. J. J. Dupin’s Refutation of the eminent Jewish writer, Joseph Salvador’s “Trial and Condemnation of Jesus,” executed by the late distinguished American Lawyer and Statesman, JOHN PICKERING, LL.D., Counsellor at Law, and President of the American Academy of Arts and Sciences (sometime Secretary to the American Embassy in this country); who has most truly characterised M. Dupin’s examination of Salvador, as being “conducted with an ability, learning, animation, and interest, that leave nothing to be desired.” TO THE MEMBERS OF THE LEGAL PROFESSION. GENTLEMEN, The subject of the following work I hope will not be deemed so foreign to our professional pursuits, as to render it improper for me to dedicate it, as I now respectfully do, to you. If a close examination of the evidences of Christianity may be expected of one class of men more than another, it would seem incumbent on us, who make the law of evidence one of our peculiar studies. Our profession leads us to explore the mazes of falsehood, to detect its artifices, to pierce its thickest veils, to follow and expose its sophistries, to compare the statements of different witnesses with severity, to discover truth and separate it from error. Our fellow-men are well aware of this; and probably they act upon this knowledge more generally, and with a more profound repose, than we are in the habit of considering. The influence, too, of the legal profession upon the community is unquestionably great; conversant, as it daily is, with all classes and grades of men, in their domestic and social relations, and in all the affairs of life, from the cradle to the grave. This influence we are constantly exerting for good or ill; and hence, to refuse to acquaint ourselves with the evidences of the Christian religion, or to act as though, having fully examined, we lightly esteemed them, is to assume an appalling amount of responsibility. The things related by the Evangelists are certainly of the most momentous character, affecting the principles of our conduct here, and our happiness for ever. The religion of Jesus Christ aims at nothing less than the utter overthrow of all other systems of religion in the world; denouncing them as inadequate to the wants of man, false in their foundations, and dangerous in their tendency. It not only solicits the grave attention of all, to whom its doctrines are presented, but it demands their cordial belief, as a matter of vital concernment. These are no ordinary claims; and it seems hardly possible for a rational being to regard them with even a subdued interest; much less to treat them with mere indifference and contempt. If not true, they are little else than the pretensions of a bold imposture, which, not satisfied with having already enslaved millions of the human race, seeks to continue its encroachments upon human liberty, until all nations shall be subjugated under its iron rule. But if they are well founded and just, they can be no less than the high requirements of Heaven, addressed by the voice of God to the reason and understanding of man, concerning things deeply affecting his relations to his sovereign, and essential to the formation of his character and of course to his destiny, both for this life and for the life to come. Such was the estimate taken of religion, even the religion of pagan Rome, by one of the greatest lawyers of antiquity, when he argued that it was either nothing at all, or was everything. _Aut undique religionem tolle, aut usquequaque conserva._(1) With this view of the importance of the subject, and in the hope that the present work may in some degree aid or at least incite others to a more successful pursuit of this interesting study, it is submitted to your kind regard, by Your obedient servant, SIMON GREENLEAF. HARVARD UNIVERSITY, DANE HALL, _May 1, 1846_. CONTENTS AND SYNOPSIS OF THE HARMONY. _The figures in the first column refer to the corresponding Sections in_ NEWCOME’S HARMONY. _Those in the second column to the Sections in this Work._ Sect. Sect. Contents. Matt. Mark Luke John Part I. EVENTS CONNECTED WITH THE BIRTH AND CHILDHOOD OF OUR LORD. TIME: _About thirteen and a half years._ 1 1 Preface to Luke’s 1, 1-4 Gospel. 3 2 An Angel appears 1, 5-25 to Zacharias. _Jerusalem._ 4 3 An Angel appears 1, to Mary. 26-38 _Nazareth._ 5 4 Mary visits 1, Elizabeth. 39-56 _Juttah._ 6 5 Birth of John the 1, Baptist. 57-80 _Juttah._ 7, 8 6 An Angel appears 1, to Joseph. 18-25 _Nazareth._ 8 7 The Birth of 2, 1-7 Jesus. _Bethlehem._ 10 8 An Angel appears 2, 8-20 to the Shepherds. _Near Bethlehem._ 11, 9 The circumcision 2, 12 of Jesus, and his 21-38 presentation in the Temple. _Bethlehem._ _Jerusalem._ 13 10 The Magi. 2, 1-12 _Jerusalem._ _Bethlehem._ 13 11 The flight into 2, 2, Egypt. Herod’s 13-23 39-40 cruelty. The return. _Bethlehem._ _Nazareth._ 14 12 At twelve years 2, of age Jesus goes 41-52 to the Passover. _Jerusalem._ 9 13 The Genealogies. 1, 1-17 3, 28-38 Part II. ANNOUNCEMENT AND INTRODUCTION OF OUR LORD’S PUBLIC MINISTRY. TIME: _About one year._ 15 14 The Ministry of 3, 1-12 1, 1-8 3, 1-18 John the Baptist. The Desert. _The Jordan._ 16 15 The Baptism of 3, 1, 9-11 3, Jesus. _The 13-17 21-23 Jordan._ 17 16 The Temptation. 4, 1-11 1, 12, 4, 1-13 _Desert of 13 Judea._ 2 17 Preface to John’s 1, 1-18 Gospel. 18 18 Testimony of John 1, the Baptist to 19-34 Jesus. _Bethany beyond Jordan._ 18 19 Jesus gains 1, Disciples. _The 35-52 Jordan._ _Galilee?_ 19 20 The Marriage at 2, 1-12 Cana of Galilee. Part III. OUR LORD’S FIRST PASSOVER, AND THE SUBSEQUENT TRANSACTIONS UNTIL THE SECOND. TIME: _One year._ 20 21 At the Passover 2, Jesus drives the 13-25 Traders out of the Temple. _Jerusalem._ 21 22 Our Lord’s 3, 1-21 discourse with Nicodemus. _Jerusalem._ 22 23 Jesus remains in 3, Judea and 22-36 baptizes. Further testimony of John the Baptist. 23 24 Jesus departs 4, 12. 1, 14. 4, 14. 4, 1-3 into Galilee 14, 3-5 6, 3, 19, after John’s 17-20 20. imprisonment 23 25 Our Lord’s 4, 4-42 discourse with the Samaritan woman. Many of the Samaritans believe on him. _Shechem_ or _Neapolis_. 24 26 Jesus teaches 4, 17 1, 14. 4, 14, 4, publicly in 15 15 43-45 Galilee. 24 27 Jesus again at 4, Cana, where he 46-54 heals the son of a nobleman lying ill at Capernaum. _Cana of Galilee._ 25 28 Jesus at 4, 4, Nazareth; he is 13-16 16-31 there rejected, and fixes his abode at Capernaum. 26 29 The call of Simon 4, 1, 5, 1-11 Peter and Andrew, 18-22 16-20 and of James and John, with the miraculous draught of fishes. _Near Capernaum._ 27 30 The healing of a 1, 4, Demoniac in the 21-28 31-37 Synagogue. _Capernaum_ 28 31 The healing of 8, 1, 4, Peter’s wife’s 14-17 29-34 38-41 mother, and many others. _Capernaum._ 28 32 Jesus with his 4, 1, 4, Disciples goes 23-25 35-39 42-44 from Capernaum throughout Galilee. 29 33 The healing of a 8, 2-4 1, 5, Leper. _Galilee._ 40-45 12-16 30 34 The healing of a 9, 2-8 2, 1-12 5, Paralytic. 17-26 _Capernaum._ 31 35 The call of 9, 9 2, 13, 5, 27, Matthew. 14 _Capernaum._ Part IV. OUR LORD’S SECOND PASSOVER, AND THE SUBSEQUENT TRANSACTIONS UNTIL THE THIRD. TIME: _One year._ 32 36 The Pool of 5, 1-47 Bethesda; the healing of the infirm man; and our Lord’s subsequent discourse. _Jerusalem._ 33 37 The Disciples 12, 1-8 2, 6, 1-5 pluck ears of 23-28 grain on the Sabbath. _On the way to Galilee?_ 34 38 The healing of 12, 3, 1-6 6, 6-11 the withered hand 9-14 on the Sabbath. _Galilee._ 34 39 Jesus arrives at 12, 3, 7-12 the Sea of 15-21 Tiberias, and is followed by multitudes. _Lake of Galilee._ 35 40 Jesus withdraws 10, 3, 6, to the Mountain, 2-4, 13-19 12-19 and chooses the Twelve; the multitudes follow him. _Near Capernaum._ 36 41 The Sermon on the 5,1,-8,1 6, Mount. _Near 20-49 Capernaum._ 37 42 The healing of 8, 5-13 7, 1-10 the Centurion’s servant. _Capernaum._ 38 43 The raising of 7, the Widow’s son. 11-17 _Nain._ 39 44 John the Baptist 11, 2-19 7, in prison sends 18-35 Disciples to Jesus. _Galilee._ _Capernaum?_ 40 45 Reflections of 11, Jesus on 20-30 appealing to his mighty Works. _Capernaum._ 41 46 While sitting at 7, meat with a 36-50 Pharisee, Jesus is anointed by a woman who had been a sinner. _Capernaum?_ 42 47 Jesus, with the 8, 1-3 Twelve, makes a second circuit in Galilee. 42 48 The healing of a 12, 3, 11, 14, Demoniac. The 22-37 19-30 15, Scribes and 17-23 Pharisee blaspheme. _Galilee._ 43, 49 The Scribes and 12, 11, 16, 44 Pharisees seek a 38-45 24-36 sign. Our Lord’s reflections. _Galilee._ 45 50 The true 12, 3, 8, Disciples of 46-50 31-35 19-21 Christ his nearest relatives. _Galilee._ 46 51 At a Pharisee’s 11, table, Jesus 37-54 denounces woes against the Pharisees and others. _Galilee._ 47 52 Jesus discourses 12, to his Disciples 1-59 and the multitude. _Galilee._ 48 53 The slaughter of 13, 1-9 certain Galileans. Parable of the barren Fig-tree. _Galilee._ 49 54 Parable of the 13, 1-23 4, 1-25 8, 4-18 Sower. _Lake of Galilee._ _Near Capernaum?_ 49 55 Parable of the 13, 4, Tares. Other 24-53 26-34 Parables. _Near Capernaum?_ 50 56 Jesus directs to 8, 18-27 4, 8, cross the Lake. 35-41 22-25, Incidents. The 9, tempest stilled. 57-62 _Lake of Galilee._ 51 57 The two Demoniacs 8, 5, 1-21 8, of Gadara. _S. E. 28-34, 26-40 coast of the Lake 9, 1 of Galilee._ 52 58 Levi’s Feast. 9, 10-17 2, 5, _Capernaum._ 15-22 29-39 52 59 The raising of 9, 18-26 5, 8, Jairus’s 22-43 41-56 daughter. The woman with a bloody flux. _Capernaum._ 53, 60 Two blind men 9, 27-34 54 healed, and a dumb spirit cast out. _Capernaum?_ 55 61 Jesus again at 13, 6, 1-6 Nazareth, and 54-58 again rejected. 56, 62 A third circuit 9, 6, 6-13 9, 1-6 57, in Galilee. The 35-38, 58, Twelve instructed 10, 1, 59 and sent forth. 5-42, _Galilee._ 11, 1 60, 63 Herod holds Jesus 14, 1, 6, 9, 7-9 61 to be John the 2, 6-12 14-16, Baptist, whom he 21-29 had just before beheaded. _Galilee?_ _Perea._ 62, 64 The Twelve 14, 6, 9, 6, 1-14 63 return, and Jesus 13-21 30-44 10-17 retires with them across the Lake. Five thousand are fed. _Capernaum._ _N. E. coast of the Lake of Galilee._ 64 65 Jesus walks upon 14, 6, 6, the water. _Lake 22-36 45-56 15-21 of Galilee._ _Gennesareth._ 65, 66 Our Lord’s 6, 83 discourse to the 22-71, multitude in the 7, 1 Synagogue at Capernaum. Many Disciples turn back. Peter’s profession of faith. _Capernaum._ Part V. FROM OUR LORD’S THIRD PASSOVER UNTIL HIS FINAL DEPARTURE FROM GALILEE AT THE FESTIVAL OF TABERNACLES. TIME: _Six months._ 66 67 Our Lord 15, 1-20 7, 1-23 justifies his disciples for eating with unwashen hands. Pharisaic Traditions. _Capernaum._ 67 68 The daughter of a 15, 7, Syrophenician 21-28 24-30 woman is healed. _Region of Tyre and Sidon._ 68, 69 A deaf and dumb 15, 7, 69 man healed; also 29-38 31-37, many others. Four 8, 1-9 thousand are fed. _The Decapolis._ 69, 70 The Pharisees and 15, 39, 8, 70 Sadducees again 16, 1-4 10-12 require a sign. (See § 49.) _Near Magdala._ 71 71 The Disciples 16, 4-12 8, cautioned against 13-21 the leaven of the Pharisees, etc. _N. E. coast of the Lake of Galilee._ 72 72 A blind man 8, healed. 22-26 _Bethsaida._ (_Julias_). 73 73 Peter and the 16, 8, 9, rest again 13-20 27-30 18-21 profess their faith in Christ. (See § 66.) _Region of Cesarea Philippi._ 74 74 Our Lord 16, 8, 9, foretells his own 21-28 31-38, 22-27 death and 9, 1 resurrection, and the trials of his followers. _Region of Cesarea Philippi._ 75 76 The 17, 9, 2-13 9, Transfiguration. 1-13, 28-36 Our Lord’s subsequent discourse with the three Disciples. _Region of Cesarea Philippi._ 76 76 The healing of a 17, 9, 9, Demoniac, whom 14-21 14-29 37-43 the Disciples could not heal. _Region of Cesarea Philippi._ 77 77 Jesus again 17, 22, 9, 9, foretells his own 2 30-32 43-45 death and resurrection (See § 74.) _Galilee._ 78 78 The tribute-money 17, 9, 33 miraculously 24-27 provided. _Capernaum._ 79 79 The Disciples 18, 1-35 9, 9, contend who 33-50 46-50 should be greatest. Jesus exhorts to humility, forbearance, and brotherly love. _Capernaum._ 80 80 The Seventy 10, instructed and 1-16 sent out. _Capernaum._ 81, 81 Jesus goes up the 9, 7, 2-10 95 Festival of 51-56 Tabernacles. His final departure from Galilee. Incidents in Samaria. 95, 82 Ten Lepers 17, 96 cleansed. 11-19 _Samaria._ Part VI. THE FESTIVAL OF THE TABERNACLES AND THE SUBSEQUENT TRANSACTIONS UNTIL OUR LORD’S ARRIVAL AT BETHANY, SIX DAYS BEFORE THE FOURTH PASSOVER. TIME: _Six months less one week._ 81 83 Jesus at the 7, Festival of 11-53, Tabernacles. His 8, 1 public teaching. _Jerusalem._ 82 84 The woman taken 8, 2-11 in Adultery. _Jerusalem._ 83 85 Further public 8, teaching of our 12-59 Lord. He reproves the unbelieving Jews, and escapes from their hands. _Jerusalem._ 86 86 A lawyer 10, instructed. Love 25-37 to our neighbour defined. Parable of the Good Samaritan. _Near Jerusalem._ 99 87 Jesus in the 10, house of Martha 38-42 and Mary. _Bethany._ 87 88 The Disciples 11, again taught how 1-13 to pray. _Near Jerusalem._ 85 89 The Seventy 10, return. 17-24 _Jerusalem?_ 84 90 A man born blind 9, is healed on the 1-41, Sabbath. Our 10, Lord’s subsequent 1-21 discourses. _Jerusalem._ 100, 91 Jesus in 10, 101 Jerusalem at the 22-42 Festival of Dedication. He retires beyond Jordan. _Jerusalem._ _Bethany beyond Jordan._ 102 92 The raising of 11, Lazarus. 1-46 _Bethany._ 102 93 The counsel of 11, Caiaphas against 47-54 Jesus. He retires from Jerusalem. _Jerusalem._ _Ephraim._ 103, 94 Jesus beyond 19, 1. 2 10, 1 13, 88 Jordan is 10-21 followed by multitudes. The healing of the infirm woman on the Sabbath. _Valley of Jordan._ _Perea._ 89 95 Our Lord goes 13, teaching and 22-35 journeying towards Jerusalem. He is warned against Herod. _Perea._ 90 96 Our Lord dines 14, with a chief 1-24 Pharisee on the Sabbath. Incidents. _Perea._ 91 97 What is required 14, of true 25-35 Disciples. _Perea._ 92 98 Parables of the 15, Lost Sheep, etc. 1-32 Parable of the Prodigal Son. _Perea._ 93 99 Parable of the 16, Unjust Steward. 1-13 _Perea._ 93 100 The Pharisees 16, reproved. Parable 14-31 of the Rich Man and Lazarus. _Perea._ 94 101 Jesus inculcates 17, forbearance, 1-10 faith, humility. _Perea._ 97 102 Christ’s coming 17, will be sudden. 20-37 _Perea._ 98 103 Parables. The 18, importunate 1-14 Widow. The Pharisee and Publican. _Perea._ 103 104 Precepts 19, 3-12 10, respecting 2-12 divorce. _Perea._ 104 105 Jesus receives 19, 10, 18, and blesses 13-15 13-16 15-17 little Children. _Perea._ 105 106 The rich Young 19, 10, 18, Man. Parable of 16-30, 17-31 18-30 the Labourers in 20, 1-16 the Vineyard. _Perea._ 106 107 Jesus a third 20, 10, 18, time foretells 17-19 32-34 31-34 his Death and Resurrection. (See § 74, § 77.) _Perea._ 107 108 James and John 20, 10, prefer their 20-28 35-45 ambitious request. _Perea._ 108 109 The healing of 20, 10, 18, two blind men 29-34 46-52 35-43, near Jericho. 19, 1 109 110 The visit to 19, Zaccheus. Parable 2-28 of the ten Minae. _Jericho._ 110 111 Jesus arrives at 11, Bethany six days 55-57, before the 12, Passover. 1.9-11 Part VII. OUR LORD’S PUBLIC ENTRY INTO JERUSALEM, AND THE SUBSEQUENT TRANSACTIONS BEFORE THE FOURTH PASSOVER. TIME: _Five days._ 111 112 Our Lord’s public 21, 11, 19, 12, Entry into 1-11, 1-11 29-44 12-19 Jerusalem. 14-17 _Bethany._ 112 113 The barren 21, 12. 11, 19, Fig-tree. The 13, 18. 12-19 45-48, cleansing of the 19 21, Temple. _Bethany, 37.38 Jerusalem._ 113 114 The barren 21, 11, 20. Fig-tree withers 20-22 2 away. _Between Bethany and Jerusalem._ 114 115 Christ’s 21, 11, 20, 1-8 authority 23-32 27-33 questioned. Parable of the Two Sons. _Jerusalem._ 114 116 Parable of the 21, 12, 20, wicked 33-46 1-12 9-19 husbandmen. _Jerusalem._ 114 117 Parable of the 22, 1-14 Marriage of the King’s Son. _Jerusalem._ 115 118 Insidious 22, 12, 20, question of the 15-22 13-17 20-26 Pharisees: Tribute to Cæsar. _Jerusalem._ 115 119 Insidious 22, 12, 20, question of the 23-33 18-27 27-40 Sadducees: The Resurrection. _Jerusalem._ 115 120 A lawyer 22, 12, questions Jesus. 34-40 28-34 The two great Commandments. _Jerusalem._ 115 121 How is Christ the 22, 12, 20, son of David? 41-46 35-37 41-44 _Jerusalem._ 116 122 Warnings against 23, 1-12 12, 20, the evil example 38.39 45.46 of the Scribes and Pharisees. _Jerusalem._ 116 123 Woes against the 23, 12, 40 20, 47 Scribes and 13-39 Pharisees. Lamentation over Jerusalem. _Jerusalem._ 117 124 The Widow’s mite. 12, 21, 1-4 _Jerusalem._ 41-44 111 125 Certain Greeks 12, desire to see 20-36 Jesus. _Jerusalem._ 111 126 Reflections upon 12, the unbelief of 37-50 the Jews. _Jerusalem._ 118 127 Jesus, on taking 24, 1-14 13, 21, leave of the 1-13 5-19 Temple, foretells its destruction and the persecution of his Disciples. _Jerusalem. Mount of Olives._ 118 128 The signs of 24, 13, 21, Christ’s coming 15-42 14-37 20-36 to destroy Jerusalem, and put an end to the Jewish State and Dispensation. _Mount of Olives._ 118 129 Transition to 24, Christ’s final 43-51, coming at the Day 25, 1-30 of Judgment. Exhortation to watchfulness. Parables: The ten Virgins. The five Talents. _Mount of Olives._ 119 130 Scenes of the 25, Judgment Day. 31-46 _Mount of Olives._ 120 131 The Rulers 26, 1-16 14, 22, 1-6 12, 2-8 conspire. The 1-11 supper at Bethany. Treachery of Judas. _Jerusalem._ _Bethany._ 121 132 Preparation for 26, 14, 22, the Passover. 17-19 12-16 7-13 _Bethany._ _Jerusalem._ Part VIII. THE FOURTH PASSOVER; OUR LORD’S PASSION; AND THE ACCOMPANYING EVENTS UNTIL THE END OF THE JEWISH SABBATH. TIME: _Two days._ 122 133 The Passover 26, 20 14, 17 22, Meal. Contention 14-18, among the Twelve. 24-30 _Jerusalem._ 123 134 Jesus washes the 13, feet of his 1-20 disciples. _Jerusalem,_ 124 136 Jesus point out 26, 14, 22, 13, the Traitor. 21-25 18-21 21-23 21-35 Judas withdraws. _Jerusalem._ 125 136 Jesus foretells 26, 14, 22, 13, the fall of 31-35 27-31 31-38 36-38 Peter, and the dispersion of the Twelve. _Jerusalem._ 126, 137 The Lord’s 26, 14, 22, 128 Supper. 26-29 22-25 19.20 _Jerusalem._ 127, 138 Jesus comforts 14, 129 his Disciples. 1-31 The Holy Spirit promised. _Jerusalem._ 129 139 Christ the true 15, Vine. His 1-27 Disciples hated by the world. _Jerusalem._ 129 140 Persecution 16, foretold. Further 1-33 promise of the Holy Spirit. Prayer in the name of Christ. _Jerusalem._ 130 141 Christ’s last 17, prayer with his 1-26 disciples. _Jerusalem._ 131 142 The agony in 26, 30, 14, 26, 22, 18, 1 Gethsemane. 36-46 32-42 39-46 _Mount of Olives._ 132 143 Jesus betrayed, 26, 14, 22, 18, and made 47-56 43-52 47-53 2-12 prisoner. _Mount of Olives._ 133, 144 Jesus before 26, 14, 22, 18, 134 Caiaphas. Peter 47-56 53.54, 54-62 13-18, thrice denies 66-72 25-27 him. _Jerusalem._ 134 145 Jesus before 26, 14, 22, 18, Caiaphas and the 59-68 55-65 63-71 19-24 Sanhedrim. He declares himself to be the Christ; is condemned and mocked. _Jerusalem._ 135 146 The Sanhedrim 27, 1. 15, 1-5 23, 18, lead Jesus away 2, 11-14 1-5, 28-38 to Pilate. 23, _Jerusalem._ 6-12 136 147 Jesus before 23, Herod. 6-12 _Jerusalem._ 138 148 Pilate seeks to 27, 15, 23, 18, 39. release Jesus. 15-26 6-15 13-25 40 The Jews demand Barabbas. _Jerusalem._ 138 149 Pilate delivers 27, 15, 19, 1-3 up Jesus to 26-30 15-19 death. He is scourged and mocked. _Jerusalem._ 138 150 Pilate again 19, seeks to release 4-16 Jesus. _Jerusalem._ 139 151 Judas repents and 27, 3-10 hangs himself. _Jerusalem._ 138, 152 Jesus is led away 27, 15, 23, 19, 140 to be crucified. 31-34 20-23 26-33 16.17 _Jerusalem._ 141 153 The Crucifixion. 27, 15, 23, 19, _Jerusalem._ 35-38 24-28 33.34 18-24 141 154 The Jews mock at 27, 15, 23, 19, Jesus on the 39-44 29-32, 35-37, 25-27 Cross. He 15, 39-43 commends his 33-37 mother to John. _Jerusalem._ 141 155 Darkness 27, 23, 19, prevails. Christ 45-50 44-46 28-30 expires on the cross. _Jerusalem._ 142, 156 The vail of the 27, 15, 23, 45, 144 Temple rent, and 51-56 38-41 47-49 graves opened. Judgment of the Centurion. The Women at the Cross. _Jerusalem._ 142 157 The taking down 27, 15, 23, 19, from the Cross. 57-61 42-47 50-56 31-42 The burial. _Jerusalem._ 143 158 The Watch at the 27, Sepulchre. 62-66 _Jerusalem._ Part IX. OUR LORD’S RESURRECTION, HIS SUBSEQUENT APPEARANCES, AND HIS ASCENSION. TIME: _Forty days._ 144 159 The Morning of 28, 2-4 16, 1 the Resurrection. _Jerusalem._ 145 160 Visit of the 28, 1 16, 2-4 24, 1-3 20, 1. Women to the 2 Sepulchre. Mary Magdalene returns. _Jerusalem._ 145 161 Vision of Angels 28, 5-7 16, 5-7 24, 4-8 in the Sepulchre. _Jerusalem._ 145 162 The Women return 28, 8-10 16, 8 24, to the City. 9-11 Jesus meets them. _Jerusalem._ 146 163 Peter and John 24, 12 20, run to the 3-10 Sepulchre. _Jerusalem._ 147, 164 Our Lord is seen 16, 20, 148 by Mary Magdalene 9-11 11-18 at the Sepulchre. _Jerusalem._ 149 165 Report of the 28, Watch. 11-15 _Jerusalem._ 150 166 Our Lord is seen 16, 24, of Peter. Then by 12.13 13-35 two Disciples on the way to Emmaus. _Jerusalem._ _Emmaus._ 151 167 Jesus appears in 16, 24, 20, the midst of the 14-18 36-49 19-23 Apostles, Thomas being absent. _Jerusalem._ 152 168 Jesus appears in 20, the midst of the 24-29 Apostles, Thomas being present. _Jerusalem._ 153 169 The Apostles go 28, 16 21, away into 1-24 Galilee. Jesus shows himself to seven of them at the Sea of Tiberias. _Galilee._ 154 170 Jesus meets the 28, Apostles and 16-20 above five hundred Brethren on a Mountain in Galilee. _Galilee._ 155 171 Our Lord is seen 16, 24, of James; then of 19.20 50-53 all the Apostles. _Jerusalem._ 156 172 The Ascension. 20, _Bethany._ 30.31 157 173 Conclusion of 21, 25 John’s Gospel. Table for Finding Any Passage in the Harmony. Matthew. Chap. Verse. Sect. i. 1-17 13 18-25 6 ii. 1-12 10 13-23 11 iii. 1-12 14 13-17 15 iv. 1-11 16 12 24 13-16 28 17 26 18-22 29 23-25 32 v. 1-48 41 vi. 1-34 41 vii. 1-29 41 viii. 1 41 2-4 33 5-13 42 14-17 31 18-27 56 28-34 57 ix. 1 57 2-8 34 9 35 10-17 58 18-26 59 27-34 60 35-38 62 x. 1 62 2-4 40 5-42 62 xi. 1 62 2-19 44 20-30 45 xii. 1-8 37 9-14 38 15-21 39 22-37 48 38-45 49 46-50 50 xiii. 1-23 54 24-53 55 54-58 61 xiv. 1, 2 63 3-5 24 6-12 63 13-21 64 22-36 65 xv. 1-20 67 21-28 68 29-38 69 39 70 xvi. 1-4 70 4-12 71 13-20 73 21-28 74 xvii. 1-13 75 14-21 76 22, 23 77 24-27 78 xviii. 1-35 79 xix. 1, 2 94 3-12 104 13-15 105 16-30 106 xx. 1-16 106 17-19 107 20-28 108 29-34 109 xxi. 1-11 112 12-13 113 14-17 112 18-19 113 20-22 114 28-32 115 33-46 116 xxii. 1-14 117 15-22 118 23-33 119 34-40 120 41-46 121 xxiii. 1-12 122 13-39 123 xxiv. 1-14 127 15-42 128 43-51 129 xxv. 1-30 129 31-46 130 xxvi. 1-16 131 17-19 132 20 133 21-25 135 26-29 137 30 142 31-35 136 36-46 142 47-56 143 57, 58 144 59-68 145 69-75 144 xxvii 1, 2 146 3-10 151 11-14 146 15-26 148 26-30 149 31-34 152 35-38 153 39-44 154 45-50 155 51-56 156 57-61 157 62-66 158 xxviii. 1 160 2-4 159 5-7 161 8-10 162 11-15 165 16 169 16-20 170 Mark. Chap. Verse. Sect. i. 1-8 14 9-11 15 12, 13 16 14 24 14, 15 26 16-20 29 21-28 30 29-34 31 35-39 32 40-45 33 ii. 1-12 34 13, 14 35 15-22 58 23-28 37 iii. 1-6 38 7-12 39 13-19 40 19-30 48 31-35 50 iv. 1-25 54 26-34 55 35-41 56 v. 1-21 57 22-43 59 vi. 1-6 61 6-13 62 14-16 63 17-20 24 21-29 63 30-44 64 45-56 65 vii. 1-23 67 24-30 68 31-37 69 viii 1-9 69 10-12 70 13-21 71 22-26 72 27-30 73 31-38 74 ix. 1 74 2-13 75 14-29 76 30-32 77 33 78 33-50 79 x. 1 94 2-12 104 13-16 105 17-31 106 32-34 107 35-45 108 46-52 109 xi. 1-11 112 12-19 113 20-26 114 27-33 115 xii. 1-12 116 13-17 118 18-27 119 28-34 120 35-37 121 38, 39 122 40 123 41-44 124 xiii. 1-13 127 14-37 128 xiv. 1-11 131 12-16 132 17 133 18-21 135 22-25 137 26 142 27-31 136 32-42 142 43-52 143 53, 54 144 55-65 145 66-72 144 xv. 1-5 146 6-15 148 15-19 149 20-23 152 24-28 153 29-32 154 33-37 155 38-41 156 42-47 157 xvi. 1 159 2-4 160 5-7 161 8 162 9-11 164 12, 13 166 14-18 167 19, 20 172 Luke. Chap. Verse. Sect. i. 1-4 1 5-25 2 26-38 3 39-56 4 57-80 5 ii. 1-7 7 8-20 8 21-38 9 39, 40 11 41-52 12 iii. 1-18 14 19-20 24 21-23 15 23-38 13 iv. 1-13 16 14 24 14, 15 26 16-31 28 31-37 30 38-41 31 42-44 32 v. 1-11 29 12-16 33 17-26 34 27, 28 35 29-39 58 vi. 1-5 37 6-11 38 12-19 40 20-26 41 27-30 41 31 41 32-36 41 37-49 41 vii. 1-10 42 11-17 43 18-35 44 36-50 46 viii. 1-3 47 4-18 54 19-21 50 22-25 56 26-40 57 41-56 59 ix. 1-6 62 7-9 63 10-17 64 18-21 73 22-27 74 28-36 75 37-43 76 43-45 77 46-50 79 51-56 81 57-62 56 x. 1-16 80 17-24 89 25-37 86 38-42 87 xi. 1-13 88 14, 15 48 16 49 17-23 48 24-28 49 29-36 49 37-54 51 xii. 1-59 52 xiii. 1-9 53 10-21 94 22-35 95 xiv. 1-24 96 25-35 97 xv. 1-32 98 xvi. 1-13 99 14-31 100 xvii. 1-10 101 11-19 82 20-37 102 xviii. 1-14 103 15-17 105 18-30 106 31-34 107 35-43 109 xix. 1 109 2-28 110 29-44 112 45-18 113 xx. 1-8 115 9-19 116 20-26 118 27-40 119 41-44 121 45-46 122 47 123 xxi. 1-4 124 5-19 127 20-36 128 37, 38 118 xxii. 1-6 131 7-13 132 14-18 133 19, 20 137 21-23 135 24-30 133 31-38 136 39-46 142 47-53 143 54-62 144 63-71 145 xxiii. 1-5 146 6-12 147 13-25 148 26-33 152 33-34 153 35-37 154 38 153 39-43 154 44-46 155 45 156 47-49 156 50-56 157 xxiv. 1-3 160 4-8 161 9-11 162 12 163 13-35 166 36-49 167 50-53 172 John. Chap. Verse. Sect. i. 1-18 17 19-34 18 35-52 19 ii. 1-12 20 13-25 21 iii. 1-21 22 22-36 23 iv. 1-3 24 4-42 25 43-45 26 46-54 27 v. 1-47 36 vi. 1-14 64 15-21 65 22-71 66 vii. 1 66 2-10 81 11-53 83 viii. 1 83 2-11 84 12-59 85 ix. 1-41 90 1-21 90 22-42 91 xi. 1-46 92 47-54 93 55-57 111 xii. 1 111 2-8 131 9-11 111 12-19 112 20-36 125 37-50 126 xiii. 1-20 134 21-35 135 36-38 136 xiv. 1-31 138 xv. 1-27 139 xvi. 1-33 140 xvii. 1-26 141 xviii. 1 142 2-12 143 13-18 144 19-24 145 25-27 144 28-38 146 39-40 148 xix. 1-3 149 4-16 150 16, 17 152 18-24 153 25-27 154 28-30 155 31-42 157 xx. 1, 2 160 3-10 163 11-18 164 19-23 167 24-29 168 30, 31 173 xxi. 1-24 169 25 173 ADVERTISEMENT TO THIS EDITION. The arrangement of the Gospels by Dr. Robinson was adopted in this work, it being the latest published in the United States, and by a scholar of the highest reputation. But by comparing his order with that of Archbishop Newcome, as shown in contiguous columns in the Table of Contents and Synopsis of the Harmony, it will be found that they differ only in a very few unimportant particulars, not at all affecting the general scheme or structure of the Harmony, or the purposes of this examination. I have, however, in several places omitted their transposition of the verses of the text, occurring within the limits of a section; it being more convenient to insert them in the order in which they were written by the Evangelists. The preliminary Dissertation has been revised and enlarged, and some further notes added to the text, which is printed conformably to the common octavo edition of the American Bible Society, except in a few places, where the article a was accidentally printed instead of _an_, in the words _an house_, &c. Cambridge, Massachusetts, _March_ 1, 1847. AN EXAMINATION, ETC. § 1. In examining the evidences of the Christian religion, it is essential to the discovery of truth that we bring to the investigation a mind freed, as far as possible, from existing prejudice and open to conviction. There should be a readiness, on our part, to investigate with candour, to follow the truth wherever it may lead us, and to submit, without reserve or objection, to all the teachings of this religion, if it be found to be of divine origin. “There is no other entrance,” says Lord Bacon, “to the kingdom of man, which is founded in the sciences, than to the kingdom of heaven, into which no one can enter but in the character of a little child.”(2) The docility which true philosophy requires of her disciples is not a spirit of servility, or the surrender of the reason and judgment to whatsoever the teacher may inculcate; but it is a mind free from all pride of opinion, not hostile to the truth sought for, willing to pursue the inquiry and impartially to weigh the arguments and evidence, and to acquiesce in the judgment of right reason. The investigation, moreover, should be pursued with the serious earnestness which becomes the greatness of the subject—a subject fraught with such momentous consequences to man. It should be pursued as in the presence of God, and under the solemn sanctions created by a lively sense of his omniscience, and of our accountability to him for the right use of the faculties which he has bestowed. § 2. In requiring this candour and simplicity of mind in those who would investigate the truth of our religion, Christianity demands nothing more than is readily conceded to every branch of human science. All these have their data, and their axioms; and Christianity, too, has her first principles, the admission of which is essential to any real progress in knowledge. “Christianity,” says Bishop Wilson, “inscribes on the portal of her dominions, ‘Whosoever shall not receive the kingdom of God as a little child, shall in nowise enter therein.’ Christianity does not profess to convince the perverse and headstrong, to bring irresistible evidence to the daring and profane, to vanquish the proud scorner, and afford evidences from which the careless and perverse cannot possibly escape. This might go to destroy man’s responsibility. All that Christianity professes, is to propose such evidences as may satisfy the meek, the tractable, the candid, the serious inquirer.”(3) § 3. The present design, however, is not to enter upon any general examination of the evidences of Christianity, but to confine the inquiry to the testimony of the Four Evangelists, bringing their narratives to the tests to which other evidence is subjected in human tribunals. The foundation of our religion is a basis of fact—the fact of the birth, ministry, miracles, death, resurrection, and ascension of Jesus Christ. These are related by the Evangelists as having actually occurred, within their own personal knowledge. Our religion, then, rests on the credit due to these witnesses. Are they worthy of implicit belief, in the matters which they relate? This is the question, in all human tribunals, in regard to persons testifying before them; and we propose to test the veracity of these witnesses, by the same rules and means which are there employed. The importance of the facts testified, and their relations to the affairs of the soul, and the life to come, can make no difference in the principles or the mode of weighing the evidence. It is still the evidence of matters of fact, capable of being seen and known and related, as well by one man as by another. And if the testimony of the Evangelist, supposing it to be relevant and material to the issue in a question of property or of personal right, between man and man, in a court of justice, ought to be believed and have weight; then, upon the like principles, it ought to receive our entire credit here. But if, on the other hand, we should be justified in rejecting it, if there testified on oath, then, supposing our rules of evidence to be sound, we may be excused if we hesitate elsewhere to give it credence. § 4. The proof that God has revealed himself to man by special and express communications, and that Christianity constitutes that revelation, is no part of these inquiries. This has already been shown, in the most satisfactory manner, by others, who have written expressly upon this subject.(4) Referring therefore to their writings for the arguments and proofs, the fact will here be assumed as true. That man is a religious being, is universally conceded, for it has been seen to be universally true. He is everywhere a worshipper. In every age and country, and in every stage, from the highest intellectual culture to the darkest stupidity, he bows with homage to a superior Being. Be it the rude-carved idol of his own fabrication, or the unseen divinity that stirs within him, it is still the object of his adoration. This trait in the character of man is so uniform, that it may safely be assumed, either as one of the original attributes of his nature, or as necessarily resulting from the action of one or more of those attributes. § 5. The object of man’s worship, whatever it be, will naturally be his standard of perfection. He clothes it with every attribute, belonging, in his view, to a perfect character; and this character he himself endeavours to attain. He may not, directly and consciously, aim to acquire every virtue of his deity, and to avoid the opposite vices; but still this will be the inevitable consequence of sincere and constant worship. As in human society men become assimilated, both in manners and in moral principles, to their chosen associates, so in the worship of whatever deity men adore, they “form to his the relish of their souls.” To suppose, then, that God made man capable of religion, and requiring it in order to the development of the highest part of his nature, without communicating with him, as a father, in those revelations which alone could perfect that nature, would be a reproach upon God, and a contradiction.(5) § 6. How it came to pass that man, originally taught, as we doubt not he was, to know and to worship the true Jehovah, is found, at so early a period of his history, a worshipper of baser objects, it is foreign to our present purpose to inquire. But the fact is lamentably true, that he soon became an idolater, a worshipper of moral abominations. The Scythians and Northmen adored the impersonations of heroic valour and of bloodthirsty and cruel revenge. The mythology of Greece and of Rome, though it exhibited a few examples of virtue and goodness, abounded in others of gross licentiousness and vice. The gods of Egypt were reptiles, and beasts and birds. The religion of Central and Eastern Asia was polluted with lust and cruelty, and smeared with blood, rioting, in deadly triumph, over all the tender affections of the human heart and all the convictions of the human understanding. Western and Southern Africa and Polynesia are, to this day, the abodes of frightful idolatry, cannibalism, and cruelty; and the aborigines of both the Americas are examples of the depths of superstition to which the human mind may be debased. In every quarter of the world, however, there is a striking uniformity seen, in all the features of paganism. The ruling principle of her religion is terror, and her deity is lewd and cruel. Whatever of purity the earlier forms of paganism may have possessed, it is evident from history that it was of brief duration. Every form, which history has preserved, grew rapidly and steadily worse and more corrupt, until the entire heathen world, before the coming of Christ, was infected with that loathsome leprosy of pollution, described with revolting vividness by St. Paul, in the beginning of his Epistle to the Romans. § 7. So general and decided was this proclivity to the worship of strange gods, that, at the time of the deluge, only one family remained faithful to Jehovah; and this was a family which had been favoured with his special revelation. Indeed it is evident that nothing but a revelation from God could raise men from the degradation of pagan idolatry, because nothing else has ever had that effect. If man could achieve his own freedom from this bondage, he would long since have been free. But instead of this, the increase of light and civilization and refinement in the pagan world has but multiplied the objects of his worship, added voluptuous refinements to its ritual, and thus increased the number and weight of his chains. In this respect there is no difference in their moral condition, between the barbarous Scythian and the learned Egyptian or Roman of ancient times, nor between the ignorant African and the polished Hindu of our own day. The only method, which has been successfully employed to deliver man from idolatry, is that of presenting to the eye of his soul an object of worship perfectly holy and pure, directly opposite, in moral character, to the gods he had formerly adored. He could not transfer to his deities a better character than he himself possessed. He must for ever remain enslaved to his idols, unless a new and pure object of worship were revealed to him, with a display of superior power sufficient to overcome his former faith and his present fears, to detach his affections from grosser objects, and to fix them upon that which alone is worthy.(6) This is precisely what God, as stated in the Holy Scriptures, has done. He rescued one family from idolatry in the Old World, by the revelation of himself to Noah; he called a distinct branch of this family to the knowledge of himself, in the person of Abraham and his sons; He extended this favour to a whole nation, through the ministry of Moses; but it was through that of Jesus Christ alone that it was communicated to the whole world. In Egypt, by the destruction of all the objects of the popular worship, God taught the Israelites that he alone was the self-existent Almighty. At the Red Sea, he emphatically showed them that He was the Protector and Saviour of his people. At Sinai, he revealed himself as the righteous Governor who required implicit obedience for men, and taught them, by the strongly marked distinctions of the ceremonial law, that he was a holy Being, of purer eyes than to behold evil, and that could not look upon iniquity. The demerit of sin was inculcated by the solemn infliction of death upon every animal, offered as a propitiatory sacrifice. And when, by this system of instruction, he had prepared a people to receive the perfect revelation of the character of God, of the nature of his worship, and of the way of restoration to his image and favour, this also was expressly revealed by the mission of his Son.(7) § 8. That the books of the Old Testament, as we now have them, are genuine; that they existed in the time of our Saviour, and were commonly received and referred to among the Jews, as the sacred books of their religion;(8) and that the text of the Four Evangelists has been handed down to us in the state in which it was originally written, that is, without having been materially corrupted or falsified, either by heretics or Christians; are facts which we are entitled to assume as true, until the contrary is shown. The genuineness of these writings really admits of as little doubt, and is susceptible of as ready proof, as that of any ancient writings whatever. The rule of municipal law on this subject is familiar, and applies with equal force to all ancient writing, whether documentary or otherwise; and as it comes first in order, in the prosecution of these inquiries, it may, for the sake of mere convenience, be designated as our first rule. _Every document, apparently ancient, coming from the proper repository or custody, and bearing on its face no evident marks of forgery, the law presumes to be genuine, and devolves on the opposing party the burden of proving it to be otherwise._ § 9. An ancient document, offered in evidence in our courts, is said to come from the proper repository, when it is found in the place where, and under the care of persons with whom, such writings might naturally and reasonably be expected to be found; for it is this custody which gives authenticity to documents found within it.(9) If they come from such a place, and bear no evident marks of forgery, the law presumes that they are genuine, and they are permitted to be read in evidence, unless the opposing party is able successfully to impeach them.(10) The burden of showing them to be false and unworthy of credit, is devolved on the party who makes that objection. The presumption of law is the judgment of charity. It presumes that every man is innocent until he is proven guilty; that everything has been done fairly and legally, until it is proved to have been otherwise; and that every document, found in its proper repository, and not bearing marks of forgery, is genuine. Now this is precisely the case with the Sacred Writings. They have been used in the church from time immemorial, and thus are found in the place where alone they ought to be looked for. They come to us, and challenge our reception of them as genuine writings, precisely as Domesday Book, the Ancient Statutes of Wales, or any other of the ancient documents which have recently been published under the British Record Commission, are received. They are found in familiar use in all the churches of Christendom, as the sacred books to which all denominations of Christians refer, as the standard of their faith. There is no pretence that they were engraven on plates of gold and discovered in a cave, nor that they were brought from heaven by angels; but they are received as the plain narratives and writings of the men whose names they respectively bear, made public at the time they were written; and though there are some slight discrepancies among the copies subsequently made, there is no pretence that the originals were anywhere corrupted. If it be objected that the originals are lost, and that copies alone are now produced, the principles of the municipal law here also afford a satisfactory answer. For the multiplication of copies was a public fact, in the faithfulness of which all the Christian community had an interest, and it is a rule of law, that, _in matters of public and general interest, all persons must be presumed to be conversant, on the principle that individuals are presumed to be conversant with their own affairs_. Therefore it is that, in such matters, the prevailing current of assertion is resorted to as evidence, for it is to this that every member of the community is supposed to be privy.(11) The persons, moreover, who multiplied these copies, may be regarded, in some manner, as the agents of the Christian public, for whose use and benefit the copies were made; and on the ground of the credit due to such agents, and of the public nature of the facts themselves, the copies thus made are entitled to an extraordinary degree of confidence, and, as in the case of official registers and other public books, it is not necessary that they should be confirmed and sanctioned by the ordinary tests of truth.(12) If any ancient document concerning our public rights were lost, copies which had been as universally received and acted upon as the Four Gospels have been, would have been received in evidence in any of our courts of justice, without the slightest hesitation. The entire text of the Corpus Juris Civilis is received as authority in all the courts of continental Europe, upon much weaker evidence of its genuineness; for the integrity of the Sacred Text has been preserved by the jealousy of opposing sects, beyond any moral possibility of corruption; while that of the Roman Civil Law has been preserved only by tacit consent, without the interest of any opposing school, to watch over and preserve it from alteration. § 10. These copies of the Holy Scriptures having thus been in familiar use in the churches, from the time when the text was committed to writing; having been watched with vigilance by so many sects, opposed to each other in doctrine, yet all appealing to these Scriptures for the correctness of their faith; and having in all ages, down to this day, been respected as the authoritative source of all ecclesiastical power and government, and submitted to, and acted under in regard to so many claims of right, on the one hand, and so many obligations of duty, on the other; it is quite erroneous to suppose that the Christian is bound to offer any further proof of their genuineness or authenticity. It is for the objector to show them spurious; for on him, by the plainest rules of law, lies the burden of proof.(13) If it were the case of a claim to a franchise, and a copy of an ancient deed or charter were produced in support of the title, under parallel circumstances on which to presume its genuineness, no lawyer, it is believed, would venture to deny either its admissibility in evidence, or the satisfactory character of the proof. In a recent case in the House of Lords, precisely such a document, being an old manuscript copy, purporting to have been extracted from ancient Journals of the House, which were lost, and to have been made by an officer whose duty it was to prepare lists of the Peers, was held admissible in a claim of peerage.(14) § 11. Supposing, therefore, that it is not irrational, nor inconsistent with sound philosophy, to believe that God has made a special and express revelation of his character and will to man, and that the sacred books of our religion are genuine, as we now have them; we proceed to examine and compare the testimony of the Four Evangelists, as witnesses to the life and doctrines of Jesus Christ; in order to determine the degree of credit, to which, by the rules of evidence applied in human tribunals, they are justly entitled. Our attention will naturally be first directed to the witnesses themselves, to see who and what manner of men they were, and we shall take them in the order of their writings; stating the prominent traits only in their lives and characters, as they are handed down to us by credible historians. § 12. MATTHEW, called also LEVI, was a Jew of Galilee, but of what city is uncertain. He held the place of publican, or tax-gatherer, under the Roman government, and his office seems to have consisted in collecting the taxes within his district, as well as the duties and customs levied on goods and persons, passing in and out of his district or province, across the lake of Genesareth. While engaged in this business, at the office or usual place of collection, he was required by Jesus to follow him, as one of his disciples; a command which he immediately obeyed. Soon afterwards, he appears to have given a great entertainment to his fellow-publicans and friends, at which Jesus was present; intending probably both to celebrate his own change of profession, and to give them an opportunity to profit by the teaching of his new Master.(15) He was constituted one of the twelve apostles, and constantly attended the person of Jesus as a faithful follower, until the crucifixion; and after the ascension of his Master he preached the gospel for some time, with the other apostles, in Judea, and afterwards in Ethiopia, where he died. He is generally allowed to have written first, of all the evangelists; but whether in the Hebrew or the Greek language, or in both, the learned are not agreed, nor is it material to our purpose to inquire; the genuineness of our present Greek gospel being sustained by satisfactory evidence.(16) The precise time when he wrote is also uncertain, the several dates given to it among learned men, varying from A.D. 37 to A.D. 64. The earlier date, however, is argued with greater force, from the improbability that the Christians would be left for several years without a general and authentic history of our Saviour’s ministry; from the evident allusions which it contains to a state of persecution in the church at the time it was written; from the titles of sanctity ascribed to Jerusalem, and a higher veneration testified for the temple than is found in the other and later evangelists; from the comparative gentleness with which Herod’s character and conduct are dealt with, that bad prince probably being still in power; and from the frequent mention of Pilate, as still governor of Judea.(17) § 13. That Matthew was himself a native Jew, familiar with the opinions, ceremonies, and customs of his countrymen; that he was conversant with the Sacred Writings, and habituated to their idiom; a man of plain sense, but of little learning, except what he derived from the Scriptures of the Old Testament; that he wrote seriously and from conviction, and had, on most occasions, been present, and attended closely, to the transactions which he relates, and relates, too, without any view of applause to himself; are facts which we may consider established by internal evidence, as strong as the nature of the case will admit. It is deemed equally well proved, both by internal evidence and the aid of history, that he wrote for the use of his countrymen the Jews. Every circumstance is noticed which might conciliate their belief, and every unnecessary expression is avoided which might obstruct it. They looked for the Messiah, of the lineage of David, and born in Bethlehem, in the circumstances of whose life the prophecies should find fulfilment, a matter, in their estimation, of peculiar value; and to all these this evangelist has directed their especial attention.(18) § 14. Allusion has been already made to his employment as a collector of taxes and customs; but the subject is too important to be passed over without further notice. The tribute imposed by the Romans upon countries conquered by their arms was enormous. In the time of Pompey, the sums annually exacted from their Asiatic provinces, of which Judea was one, amounted to about four millions and a half sterling, or about twenty-two millions of dollars. These exactions were made in the usual forms of direct and indirect taxation; the rate of the customs on merchandise varying from an eighth to a fortieth part of the value of the commodity; and the tariff including all the principal articles of the commerce of the East, much of which, as is well known, still found its way to Italy through Palestine, as well as by the way of Damascus and of Egypt. The direct taxes consisted of a capitation-tax and a land-tax, assessed upon a valuation or census, periodically taken, under the oath of the individual, with heavy penal sanctions.(19) It is natural to suppose that these taxes were not voluntarily paid, especially since they were imposed by the conqueror upon a conquered people, and by a heathen, too, upon the people of the house of Israel. The increase of taxes has generally been found to multiply discontents, evasions and frauds on the one hand, and, on the other, to increase vigilance, suspicion, close scrutiny, and severity of exaction. The penal code, as revised by Theodosius, will give us some notion of the difficulties in the way of the revenue officers, in the earlier times of which we are speaking. These difficulties must have been increased by the fact that, at this period, a considerable portion of the commerce of that part of the world was carried on by the Greeks, whose ingenuity and want of faith were proverbial. It was to such an employment and under such circumstances, that Matthew was educated; an employment which must have made him acquainted with the Greek language, and extensively conversant with the public affairs and the men of business of his time; thus entitling him to our confidence, as an experienced and intelligent observer of events passing before him. And if the men of that day were, as in truth they appear to have been, as much disposed as those of the present time, to evade the payment of public taxes and duties, and to elude, by all possible means, the vigilance of the revenue officers, Matthew must have been familiar with a great variety of the forms of fraud, imposture, cunning, and deception, and must have become habitually distrustful, scrutinizing, and cautious; and, of course, much less likely to have been deceived in regard to many of the facts in our Lord’s ministry, extraordinary as they were, which fell under his observation. This circumstance shows both the sincerity and the wisdom of Jesus, in selecting him for an eye-witness of his conduct, and adds great weight to the value of the testimony of this evangelist. § 15. MARK was the son of a pious sister of Barnabas, named Mary, who dwelt at Jerusalem, and at whose home the early Christians often assembled. His Hebrew name was John; the surname of Mark having been adopted, as is supposed, when he left Judea to preach the gospel in foreign countries; a practice not unusual among the Jews of that age, who frequently, upon such occasions, assumed a name more familiar than their own to the people whom they visited. He is supposed to have been converted to the Christian faith by the ministry of Peter. He travelled from Jerusalem to Antioch with Paul and Barnabas, and afterwards accompanied them elsewhere. When they landed at Perga in Pamphylia, he left them and returned to Jerusalem; for which reason, when he afterwards would have gone with them, Paul refused to take him. Upon this, a difference of opinion arose between the two apostles, and they separated, Barnabas taking Mark with him to Cyprus. Subsequently he accompanied Timothy to Rome, at the express desire of Paul. From this city he probably went into Asia, where he found Peter, with whom he returned to Rome, in which city he is supposed to have written and published his Gospel. Such is the outline of his history, as it is furnished by the New Testament.(20) The early historians add, that after this he went into Egypt and planted a church in Alexandria, where he died.(21) § 16. It is agreed that Mark wrote his Gospel for the use of Gentile converts; an opinion deriving great force from the explanations introduced into it, which would have been useless to a Jew;(22) and that it was composed for those at Rome, is believed, not only from the numerous Latinisms it contains, but from the unanimous testimony of ancient writers, and from the internal evidence afforded by the Gospel itself. § 17. Some have entertained the opinion that Mark compiled his account from that of Matthew, of which they supposed it an abridgment. But this notion has been refuted by Koppe, and others,(23) and is now generally regarded as untenable. For Mark frequently deviates from Matthew in the order of time, in his arrangement of facts; and he adds many things not related by the other evangelists; neither of which a mere epitomizer would probably have done. He also omits several things related by Matthew, and imperfectly describes others, especially the transactions of Christ with the apostles after the resurrection; giving no account whatever of his appearance in Galilee; omissions irreconcilable with any previous knowledge of the Gospel according to Matthew. To these proofs we may add, that in several places there are discrepancies between the accounts of Matthew and Mark, not, indeed, irreconcilable, but sufficient to destroy the probability that the latter copied from the former.(24) The striking coincidences between them, in style, words, and things, in other places, may be accounted for by considering that Peter, who is supposed to have dictated this Gospel to Mark, was quite as intimately acquainted as Matthew with the miracles and discourses of our Lord; which, therefore, he would naturally recite in his preaching; and that the same things might very naturally be related in the same manner, by men who sought not after excellency of speech. Peter’s agency in the narrative of Mark is asserted by all ancient writers, and is confirmed by the fact, that his humility is conspicuous in every part of it, where anything is or might be related of him; his weaknesses and fall being fully exposed, while things which might redound to his honour, are either omitted or but slightly mentioned; that scarcely any transaction of Jesus is related, at which Peter was not present, and that all are related with that circumstantial minuteness which belongs to the testimony of an eye-witness.(25) We may, therefore, regard the Gospel of Mark as an original composition, written at the dictation of Peter, and consequently as another original narrative of the life, miracles, and doctrines of our Lord. § 18. LUKE, according to Eusebius, was a native of Antioch, by profession a physician, and for a considerable period a companion of the apostle Paul. From the casual notices of him in the Scriptures, and from the early Christian writers, it has been collected, that his parents were Gentiles, but that he in his youth embraced Judaism, from which he was converted to Christianity. The first mention of him is that he was with Paul at Troas;(26) whence he appears to have attended him to Jerusalem; continued with him in all his troubles in Judea; and sailed with him when he was sent a prisoner from Cæsarea to Rome, where he remained with him during his two years’ confinement. As none of the ancient fathers have mentioned his having suffered martyrdom, it is generally supposed that he died a natural death. § 19. That he wrote his Gospel for the benefit of Gentile converts is affirmed by the unanimous voice of Christian antiquity; and it may also be inferred from its dedication to a Gentile. He is particularly careful to specify various circumstances conducive to the information of strangers, but not so to the Jews; he gives the lineage of Jesus upwards, after the manner of the Gentiles, instead of downwards, as Matthew had done; tracing it up to Adam, and thus showing that Jesus was the promised seed of the woman; and he marks the eras of his birth, and of the ministry of John, by the reigns of the Roman emperors. He also has introduced several things, not mentioned by the other evangelists, but highly encouraging to the Gentiles to turn to God in the hope of pardon and acceptance; of which description are the parables of the publican and pharisee, in the temple; the lost piece of silver; and the prodigal son; and the fact of Christ’s visit to Zaccheus the publican, and the pardon of the penitent thief. § 20. That Luke was a physician, appears not only from the testimony of Paul,(27) but from the internal marks in his Gospel, showing that he was both an acute observer, and had given particular and even professional attention to all our Saviour’s miracles of healing. Thus, the man whom Matthew and Mark describe simply as a leper, Luke describes as _full_ of leprosy;(28) he, whom they mention as having a withered hand, Luke says had his _right_ hand withered;(29) and of the maid, of whom the others say that Jesus took her by the hand and she arose, he adds, that _her spirit came to her again_.(30) He alone, with professional accuracy of observation, says that _virtue went out_ of Jesus, and healed the sick;(31) he alone states the fact that the sleep of the disciples in Gethsemane was _induced by extreme sorrow_; and mentions the blood-like sweat of Jesus, as occasioned by the _intensity of his agony_; and he alone relates the miraculous healing of Malchus’s ear.(32) That he was also a man of a liberal education, the comparative elegance of his writings sufficiently show.(33) § 21. The design of Luke’s Gospel was to supersede the defective and inaccurate narratives then in circulation, and to deliver to Theophilus, to whom it is addressed, a full and authentic account of the life, doctrines, miracles, death and resurrection of our Saviour. Who Theophilus was, the learned are not perfectly agreed; but the most probable opinion is that of Dr. Lardner, now generally adopted, that, as Luke wrote his Gospel in Greece, Theophilus was a man of rank in that country.(34) Either the relations subsisting between him and Luke, or the dignity and power of his rank, or both, induced the evangelist, who himself also “had perfect understanding of all things from the first,” to devote the utmost care to the drawing up of a complete and authentic narrative of these great events. He does not affirm himself to have been an eye-witness; though his personal knowledge of some of the transactions may well be inferred from the “perfect understanding” which he says he possessed. Some of the learned seem to have drawn this inference as to them all, and to have placed him in the class of original witnesses; but this opinion, though maintained on strong and plausible grounds, is not generally adopted. If, then, he did not write from his own personal knowledge, the question is, what is the legal character of his testimony? § 22. If it were “the result of inquiries, made under competent public authority, concerning matters in which the public are concerned”(35) it would possess every legal attribute of an inquisition, and, as such, would be legally admissible in evidence, in a court of justice. To entitle such results, however, to our full confidence, it is not necessary that they should be obtained under a legal commission; it is sufficient if the inquiry is gravely undertaken and pursued, by a person of competent intelligence, sagacity and integrity. The request of a person in authority, or a desire to serve the public, are, to all moral intents, as sufficient a motive as a legal commission.(36) Thus, we know that when complaint is made to the head of a department, of official misconduct or abuse, existing in some remote quarter, nothing is more common than to send some confidential person to the spot, to ascertain the facts and report them to the department; and this report is confidently adopted as the basis of its discretionary action, in the correction of the abuse, or the removal of the offender. Indeed, the result of any grave inquiry is equally certain to receive our confidence, though it may have been voluntarily undertaken, if the party making it had access to the means of complete and satisfactory information upon the subject.(37) If, therefore, Luke’s Gospel were to be regarded only as the work of a contemporary historian, it would be entitled to our confidence. But it is more than this. It is the result of careful inquiry and examination, made by a person of science, intelligence and education, concerning subjects which he was perfectly competent to investigate, and as to many of which he was peculiarly skilled, they being cases of the cure of maladies; subjects, too, of which he already had the perfect knowledge of a contemporary, and perhaps an eye-witness, but beyond doubt, familiar with the parties concerned in the transactions, and belonging to the community in which the events transpired, which were in the mouths of all; and the narrative, moreover, drawn up for the especial use, and probably at the request, of a man of distinction, whom it would not be for the interest nor safety of the writer to deceive or mislead. Such a document certainly possesses all the moral attributes of an inquest of office, or of any other official investigation of facts; and as such is entitled, _in foro conscientiæ_, to be adduced as original, competent and satisfactory evidence of the matters it contains. § 23. JOHN, the last of the evangelists, was the son of Zebedee, a fisherman of the town of Bethsaida, on the sea of Galilee. His father appears to have been a respectable man in his calling, owning his vessel and having hired servants.(38) His mother, too, was among those who followed Jesus and “ministered unto him(39);” and to John himself, Jesus, when on the cross, confided the care and support of his own mother.(40) This disciple also seems to have been favourably known to the high priest, and to have influence in his family; by means of which he had the privilege of being present in his palace at the examination of his Master, and of introducing also Peter, his friend.(41) He was the youngest of the apostles, was eminently the object of our Lord’s regard and confidence; was on various occasions admitted to free and intimate intercourse with him; and is described as “the disciple whom Jesus loved.”(42) Hence he was present at several scenes, to which most of the others were not admitted. He alone, in company with Peter and James, was present at the resurrection of Jairus’s daughter, at the transfiguration on the mount, and at the agony of our Saviour in the garden of Gethsemane.(43) He was the only apostle who followed Jesus to the cross, he was the first of them at the sepulchre, and he was present at the several appearances of our Lord after his resurrection. These circumstances, together with his intimate friendship with the mother of Jesus, especially qualify him to give a circumstantial and authentic account of the life of his Master. After the ascension of Christ, and the effusion of the Holy Spirit on the day of Pentecost, John became one of the chief apostles of the circumcision, exercising his ministry in and near Jerusalem. From ecclesiastical history we learn that, after the death of Mary the mother of Jesus, he proceeded to Asia Minor, where he founded and presided over seven churches, in as many cities, but resided chiefly at Ephesus. Thence he was banished, in Domitian’s reign, to the isle of Patmos, where he wrote his Revelation. On the accession of Nerva he was freed from exile, and returned to Ephesus, where he wrote his Gospel and Epistles, and died at the age of one hundred years, about A.D. 100, in the third year of the emperor Trajan.(44) § 24. The learned are not agreed as to the time when the Gospel of John was written, some dating it as early as the year 68, others as late as the year 98; but it is generally conceded to have been written after all the others. That it could not have been the work of some Platonic Christian of a subsequent age, as some have without evidence asserted, is manifest from references to it by some of the early fathers, and from the concurring testimony of many other writers of the ancient Christian church.(45) § 25. That it was written either with especial reference to the Gentiles, or at a period when very many of them had become converts to Christianity, is inferred from the various explanations it contains, beyond the other Gospels, which could have been necessary only to persons unacquainted with Jewish names and customs.(46) And that it was written after all the others, and to supply their omissions, is concluded, not only from the uniform tradition and belief in the church, but from his studied omission of most of the transactions noticed by the others, and from his care to mention several incidents which they have not recorded. That their narratives were known to him, is too evident to admit of doubt; while his omission to repeat what they had already stated, or, where he does mention the same things, his relating them in a brief and cursory manner, affords incidental but strong testimony that he regarded their accounts as faithful and true.(47) § 26. Such are the brief histories of the men, whose narratives we are to examine and compare; conducting the examination and weighing the testimony by the same rules and principles which govern our tribunals of justice in similar cases. These tribunals are in such cases governed by the following fundamental rule:— _In trials of fact, by oral testimony, the proper inquiry is not whether it is possible that the testimony may be false, but whether there is sufficient probability that it is true._ It should be observed that the subject of inquiry is matter of fact, and not of abstract mathematical truth. The latter alone is susceptible of that high degree of proof, usually termed demonstration, which excludes the possibility of error, and which therefore may reasonably be required in support of every mathematical deduction. But the proof of matters of fact rests upon moral evidence alone; by which is meant not merely that species of evidence which is employed in cases respecting moral conduct, but all the evidence which we do not obtain either from our own senses, from intuition, or from demonstration. In the ordinary affairs of life we do not require nor expect demonstrative evidence, because it is inconsistent with the nature of matters of fact, and to insist on its production would be unreasonable and absurd. And it makes no difference, whether the facts to be proved relate to this life or to the next, the nature of the evidence required being in both cases the same. The error of the sceptic consists in pretending or supposing that there is a difference in the nature of the evidence, where there is no difference in the nature of the things to be proved; and in demanding demonstrative evidence concerning things which are not susceptible of any other than moral evidence alone, and of which the utmost that can be said is that there is no reasonable doubt of their truth.(48) § 27. In proceeding to weigh the evidence of any proposition of fact, the previous question to be determined is, _when_ may it be said to be proved? The answer to this question is furnished by another rule of municipal law, which may be thus stated:— _A proposition of fact is proved, when its truth is established by competent and satisfactory evidence._ By competent evidence, is meant such as the nature of the thing to be proved requires; and by satisfactory evidence, is meant that amount of proof, which ordinarily satisfies an unprejudiced mind, beyond any reasonable doubt. The circumstances which will amount to this degree of proof can never be previously defined; the only legal test to which they can be subjected is, their sufficiency to satisfy the mind and conscience of a man of common prudence and discretion, and so to convince him, that he would venture to act upon that conviction in matters of the highest concern and importance to his own interest.(49) If, therefore, the subject is a problem in mathematics, its truth is to be shown by the certainty of demonstrative evidence. But if it is a question of fact in human affairs, nothing more than moral evidence can be required, for this is the best evidence which, from the nature of the case, is attainable. Now as the facts, stated in Scripture History, are not of the former kind, but are cognizable by the senses, they may be said to be proved when they are established by that kind and degree of evidence which, as we have just observed, would, in the affairs of human life, satisfy the mind and conscience of a common man. When we have this degree of evidence, it is unreasonable to require more. A juror would violate his oath, if he should refuse to acquit or condemn a person charged with an offence, where this measure of proof was adduced. § 28. Proceeding further, to inquire whether the facts related by the Four Evangelists are proved by competent and satisfactory evidence, we are led, first, to consider on which side lies the burden of establishing the credibility of the witnesses. On this point the municipal law furnishes a rule, which is of constant application in all trials by jury, and is indeed the dictate of that charity which thinketh no evil. _In the absence of circumstances which generate suspicion, every witness is to be presumed credible, until the contrary is shown; the burden of impeaching his credibility lying on the objector._(_50_) This rule serves to show the injustice with which the writers of the Gospels have ever been treated by infidels; an injustice silently acquiesced in even by Christians; in requiring the Christian affirmatively, and by positive evidence, _aliunde_, to establish the credibility of his witnesses above all others, before their testimony is entitled to be considered, and in permitting the testimony of a single profane writer, alone and uncorroborated, to outweigh that of any single Christian. This is not the course in courts of chancery, where the testimony of a single witness is never permitted to outweigh the oath even of the defendant himself, interested as he is in the cause; but, on the contrary, if the plaintiff, after having required the oath of his adversary, cannot overthrow it by something more than the oath of one witness, however credible, it must stand as evidence against him. But the Christian writer seems, by the usual course of the argument, to have been deprived of the common presumption of charity in his favour; and reversing the ordinary rule of administering justice in human tribunals, his testimony is unjustly presumed to be false, until it is proved to be true. This treatment moreover, has been applied to them all in a body; and, without due regard to the fact, that, being independent historians, writing at different periods, they are entitled to the support of each other: they have been treated, in the argument, almost as if the New Testament were the entire production, at once, of a body of men, conspiring by a joint fabrication, to impose a false religion upon the world. It is time that this injustice should cease, that the testimony of the evangelists should be admitted to be true, until it can be disproved by those who would impugn it; that the silence of one sacred writer on any point, should no more detract from his own veracity or that of the other historians, than the like circumstance is permitted to do among profane writers; and that the Four Evangelists should be admitted in corroboration of each other, as readily as Josephus and Tacitus, or Polybius and Livy.(51) § 29. But if the burden of establishing the credibility of the evangelists were devolved on those who affirm the truth of their narratives, it is still capable of a ready moral demonstration, when we consider the nature and character of the testimony, and the essential marks of difference between true narratives of facts and the creations of falsehood. It is universally admitted that the credit to be given to witnesses depends chiefly on their ability to discern and comprehend what was before them, their opportunities for observation, the degree of accuracy with which they are accustomed to mark passing events, and their integrity in relating them. The rule of municipal law on this subject embraces all these particulars, and is thus stated by a legal text-writer of the highest repute. _The credit due to the testimony of witnesses depends upon, firstly, their honesty; secondly, their ability; thirdly, their number and the consistency of their testimony; fourthly, the conformity of their testimony with experience; and fifthly, the coincidence of their testimony with collateral circumstances._(52) Let the evangelists be tried by these tests. § 30. And _first_, as to their _honesty_. Here they are entitled to the benefit of the general course of human experience, that men ordinarily speak the truth, when they have no prevailing motive or inducement to the contrary. This presumption, to which we have before alluded, is applied in courts of justice, even to witnesses whose integrity is not wholly free from suspicion; much more is it applicable to the evangelists, whose testimony went against all their worldly interests. The great truths which the apostles declared, were, that Christ had risen from the dead, and that only through repentance from sin, and faith in him, could men hope for salvation. This doctrine they asserted with one voice, everywhere, not only under the greatest discouragements, but in the face of the most appalling terrors that can be presented to the mind of man. Their master had recently perished as a malefactor, by the sentence of a public tribunal. His religion sought to overthrow the religions of the whole world. The laws of every country were against the teachings of his disciples. The interests and passions of all the rulers and great men in the world were against them. The fashion of the world was against them. Propagating this new faith, even in the most inoffensive and peaceful manner, they could expect nothing but contempt, opposition, revilings, bitter persecutions, stripes, imprisonments, torments and cruel deaths. Yet this faith they zealously did propagate; and all these miseries they endured undismayed, nay, rejoicing. As one after another was put to a miserable death, the survivors only prosecuted their work with increased vigour and resolution. The annals of military warfare afford scarcely an example of the like heroic constancy, patience and unblenching courage. They had every possible motive to review carefully the grounds of their faith, and the evidences of the great facts and truths which they asserted; and these motives were pressed upon their attention with the most melancholy and terrific frequency. It was therefore impossible that they could have persisted in affirming the truths they have narrated, had not Jesus actually risen from the dead, and had they not known this fact as certainly as they knew any other fact.(53) If it were morally possible for them to have been deceived in this matter, every human motive operated to lead them to discover and avow their error. To have persisted in so gross a falsehood, after it was known to them, was not only to encounter, for life, all the evils which man could inflict, from without, but to endure also the pangs of inward and conscious guilt, with no hope of future peace, no testimony of a good conscience, no expectation of honour or esteem among men, no hope of happiness in this life, or in the world to come. § 31. Such conduct in the apostles would moreover have been utterly irreconcilable with the fact, that they possessed the ordinary constitution of our common nature. Yet their lives do show them to have been men like all others of our race; swayed by the same motives, animated by the same hopes, affected by the same joys, subdued by the same sorrows, agitated by the same fears, and subject to the same passions, temptations and infirmities, as ourselves. And their writings show them to have been men of vigorous understandings. If then their testimony was not true, there was no possible motive for its fabrication. § 32. It would also have been irreconcilable with the fact that they were good men. But it is impossible to read their writings, and not feel that we are conversing with men eminently holy, and of tender consciences, with men acting under an abiding sense of the presence and omniscience of God, and of their accountability to him, living in his fear, and walking in his ways. Now, though, in a single instance, a good man may fall, when under strong temptations, yet he is not found persisting, for years, in deliberate falsehood, asserted with the most solemn appeals to God, without the slightest temptation or motive, and against all the opposing interests which reign in the human breast. If, on the contrary, they are supposed to have been bad men, it is incredible that such men should have chosen this form of imposture; enjoining, as it does, unfeigned repentance, the utter forsaking and abhorrence of all falsehood and of every other sin, the practice of daily self-denial, self-abasement and self-sacrifice, the crucifixion of the flesh with all its earthly appetites and desires, indifference to the honours, and hearty contempt of the vanities of the world; and inculcating perfect purity of heart and life, and intercourse of the soul with heaven. It is incredible, that bad men should invent falsehoods, to promote the religion of the God of truth. The supposition is suicidal. If they did believe in a future state of retribution, a heaven and a hell hereafter, they took the most certain course, if false witnesses, to secure the latter for their portion. And if, still being bad men, they did not believe in future punishment, how came they to invent falsehoods, the direct and certain tendency of which was to destroy all their prospects of worldly honour and happiness, and to ensure their misery in this life? From these absurdities there is no escape, but in the perfect conviction and admission that they were good men, testifying to that which they had carefully observed and considered, and well knew to be true.(54) § 33. In the _second_ place, as to their _ability_. The text writer before cited observes, that the ability of a witness to speak the truth, depends on the opportunities which he has had for observing the fact, the accuracy of his powers of discerning, and the faithfulness of his memory in retaining the facts, once observed and known.(55) Of the latter trait, in these witnesses, we of course know nothing; nor have we any traditionary information in regard to the accuracy of their powers of discerning. But we may well suppose that in these respects they were like the generality of their countrymen, until the contrary is shown by an objector. It is always to be presumed that men are honest, and of sound mind, and of the average and ordinary degree of intelligence. This is not the judgment of mere charity; it is also the uniform presumption of the law of the land; a presumption which is always allowed freely and fully to operate, until the fact is shown to be otherwise, by the party who denies the applicability of this presumption to the particular case in question. Whenever an objection is raised in opposition to the ordinary presumptions of law, or to the ordinary experience of mankind, the burden of proof is devolved on the objector, by the common and ordinary rules of evidence, and of practice in courts. No lawyer is permitted to argue in disparagement of the intelligence or integrity of a witness, against whom the case itself afforded no particle of testimony. This is sufficient for our purpose, in regard to these witnesses. But more than this is evident, from the minuteness of their narratives, and from their history. Matthew was trained, by his calling, to habits of severe investigation and suspicious scrutiny; and Luke’s profession demanded an exactness of observation equally close and searching. The other two evangelists, it has been well remarked, were as much too unlearned to forge the story of their Master’s life, as these were too learned and acute to be deceived by imposture. § 34. In the _third_ place, as to their _number_ and the _consistency_ of their testimony. The character of their narratives is like that of all other true witnesses, containing, as Dr. Paley observes, substantial truth, under circumstantial variety. There is enough of discrepancy to show that there could have been no previous concert among them; and at the same time such substantial agreement as to show that they all were independent narrators of the same great transaction, as the events actually occurred. That they conspired to impose falsehood upon the world is, moreover, utterly inconsistent with the supposition that they were honest men; a fact, to the proofs of which we have already adverted. But if they were bad men, still the idea of any conspiracy among them is negatived, not only by the discrepancies alluded to, but by many other circumstances which will be mentioned hereafter; from all which, it is manifest that if they concerted a false story, they sought its accomplishment by a mode quite the opposite to that which all others are found to pursue, to attain the same end. On this point the profound remark of an eminent writer is to our purpose; that “in a number of concurrent testimonies, where there has been no previous concert, there is a probability distinct from that which may be termed the sum of the probabilities resulting from the testimonies of the witnesses, a probability which would remain, even though the witnesses were of such a character as to merit no faith at all. This probability arises from the concurrence itself. That such a concurrence should spring from chance, is as one to infinite; that is, in other words, morally impossible. If therefore concert be excluded, there remains no cause but the reality of the fact.”(56) § 35. The discrepancies between the narratives of the several evangelists, when carefully examined, will not be found sufficient to invalidate their testimony. Many seeming contradictions will prove, upon closer scrutiny, to be in substantial agreement; and it may be confidently asserted that there are none that will not yield, under fair and just criticism. If these different accounts of the same transactions were in strict verbal conformity with each other, the argument against their credibility would be much stronger. All that is asked for these witnesses is, that their testimony may be regarded as we regard the testimony of men in the ordinary affairs of life. This they are justly entitled to; and this no honourable adversary can refuse. We might, indeed, take higher ground than this, and confidently claim for them the severest scrutiny; but our present purpose is merely to try their veracity by the ordinary tests of truth, admitted in human tribunals. § 36. If the evidence of the evangelists is to be rejected because of a few discrepancies among them, we shall be obliged to discard that of many of the contemporaneous histories on which we are accustomed to rely. Dr. Paley has noticed the contradiction between Lord Clarendon and Burnett and others in regard to Lord Strafford’s execution; the former stating that he was condemned to be hanged, which was done on the same day; and the latter all relating that on a Saturday he was sentenced to the block, and was beheaded on the following Monday. Another striking instance of discrepancy has since occurred, in the narratives of the different members of the royal family of France, of their flight from Paris to Varennes, in 1792. These narratives, ten in number, and by eye-witnesses and personal actors in the transactions they relate, contradict each other, some on trivial and some on more essential points, but in every case in a wonderful and inexplicable manner.(57) Yet these contradictions do not, in the general public estimation, detract from the integrity of the narrators, nor from the credibility of their relations. In the points in which they agree, and which constitute the great body of their narratives, their testimony is of course not doubted; where they differ, we reconcile them as well as we may; and where this cannot be done at all, we follow that light which seems to us the clearest. Upon the principles of the sceptic, we should be bound utterly to disbelieve them all. On the contrary, we apply to such cases the rules which, in daily experience, our judges instruct juries to apply, in weighing and reconciling the testimony of different witnesses; and which the courts themselves observe, in comparing and reconciling different and sometimes discordant reports of the same decisions. This remark applies especially to some alleged discrepancies in the reports which the several evangelists have given of the same discourses of our Lord.(58) § 37. In the _fourth_ place, as to the _conformity of their testimony with experience_. The title of the evangelists to full credit for veracity would be readily conceded by the objector, if the facts they relate were such as ordinarily occur in human experience. But they also relate events which were miraculous, or out of the ordinary course of human experience, and on this circumstance an argument is founded against their credibility. Miracles, say the objectors, are impossible; and therefore the evangelists were either deceivers or deceived; and in either case their narratives are unworthy of belief. Spinosa’s argument against the possibility of miracles, was founded on the broad and bold assumption that all things are governed by immutable laws, or fixed modes of motion and relation, termed the laws of nature, by which God himself is of necessity bound. This erroneous assumption is the tortoise, on which stands the elephant that upholds his system of atheism. He does not inform us who made these immutable laws, nor whence they derive their binding force and irresistible operation. The argument supposes that the creator of all things first made a code of laws, and then put it out of his own power to change them. The scheme of Mr. Hume is but another form of the same error. He deduces the existence of such immutable laws from the uniform course of human experience. This, he affirms, is our only guide in reasoning concerning matters of fact; and whatever is contrary to human experience, he pronounces incredible.(59) Without stopping to examine the correctness of this doctrine, as a fundamental principle in the law of evidence, it is sufficient in this place to remark, that is contains this fallacy; it excludes all knowledge derived by inference or deduction from facts, confining us to what we derive from experience alone, and thus depriving us of any knowledge, or even rational belief, of the existence or character of God. Nay more, it goes to prove that successive generations of men can make no advancement in knowledge, but each must begin _de novo_, and be limited to the results of its own experience. But if we may infer, from what we see and know, that there is a Supreme Being, by whom this world was created, we may certainly, and with equal reason, believe him capable of works which _we_ have never yet known him to perform. We may fairly conclude that the power which was originally put forth to create the world is still constantly and without ceasing exerted to sustain it; and that the experienced connexion between cause and effect is but the uniform and constantly active operation of the finger of God. Whether this uniformity of operation extends to things beyond the limits of our observation, is a point we cannot certainly know. Its existence in all things that ordinarily concern us may be supposed to be ordained as conducive to our happiness; and if the belief in a revelation of peace and mercy from God is conducive to the happiness of man, it is not irrational to suppose that he would depart from his ordinary course of action, in order to give it such attestations as should tend to secure that belief. “A miracle is improbable, when we can perceive no sufficient cause, in reference to his creatures, why the Deity should vary his modes of operation; it ceases to be so, when such cause is assigned.”(60) § 38. But the full discussion of the subject of miracles forms no part of the present design. Their credibility has been fully established, and the objections of sceptics most satisfactorily met and overthrown, by the ablest writers of our own day, whose works are easily accessible.(61) Thus much, however, may here be remarked; that in almost every miracle related by the evangelists, the facts, separately taken, were plain, intelligible, transpiring in public, and about which no person of ordinary observation would be likely to mistake. Persons blind or crippled, who applied to Jesus for relief, were known to have been crippled or blind for many years; they came to be cured; he spake to them; they went away whole. Lazarus had been dead and buried four days; Jesus called him to come forth from the grave; he immediately came forth, and was seen alive for a long time afterwards. In every case of healing, the previous condition of the sufferer was known to all; all saw his instantaneous restoration, and all witnessed the act of Jesus in touching him, and heard his words.(62) All these, separately considered, were facts, plain and simple in their nature, easily seen and fully comprehended by persons of common capacity and observation. If they were separately testified to, by different witnesses of ordinary intelligence and integrity, in any court of justice, the jury would be bound to believe them; and a verdict, rendered contrary to the uncontradicted testimony of credible witnesses to any one of these plain facts, separately taken, would be liable to be set aside, as a verdict against evidence. If one credible witness testified to the fact, that Bartimeus was blind, according to the uniform course of administering justice, this fact would be taken as satisfactorily proved. So also, if his subsequent restoration to sight were the sole fact in question, this also would be deemed established, by the like evidence. Nor would the rule of evidence be at all different, if the fact to be proved were the declaration of Jesus, immediately preceding his restoration to sight, that his faith had made him whole. In each of these cases, each isolated fact was capable of being accurately observed, and certainly known; and the evidence demands our assent, precisely as the like evidence upon any other indifferent subject. The connexion of the word or the act of Jesus with the restoration of the blind, lame and dead, to sight, and health, and life, as cause and effect, is a conclusion which our reason is compelled to admit, from the uniformity of their concurrence, in such a multitude of instances, as well as from the universal conviction of all, whether friends or foes, who beheld the miracles which he wrought. Indeed, if the truth of one of the miracles is satisfactorily established, our belief cannot reasonably be withheld from them all. This is the issue proposed by Dr. Paley, in regard to the evidence of the death of Jesus upon the cross, and his subsequent resurrection, the truth of which he has established in an argument, incapable of refutation. § 39. In the _fifth_ place, as to _the coincidence of their testimony with collateral and contemporaneous facts and circumstances_. After a witness is dead, and his moral character is forgotten, we can ascertain it only by a close inspection of his narrative, comparing its details with each other, and with contemporary accounts and collateral facts. This test is much more accurate than may at first be supposed. Every event which actually transpires, has its appropriate relation and place in the vast complication of circumstances, of which the affairs of men consist; it owes its origin to the events which have preceded it, is intimately connected with all others which occur at the same time and place, and often with those of remote regions, and in its turn gives birth to numberless others which succeed. In all this almost inconceivable contexture, and seeming discord, there is perfect harmony; and while the fact, which really happened, tallies exactly with every other contemporaneous incident, related to it in the remotest degree, it is not possible for the wit of man to invent a story, which, if closely compared with the actual occurrences of the same time and place, may not be shown to be false.(63) Hence it is, that a false witness will not willingly detail any circumstances, in which his testimony will be open to contradiction, nor multiply them where there is danger of his being detected by a comparison of them with other accounts, equally circumstantial. He will rather deal in general statements and broad assertions, and if he finds it necessary for his purpose to employ names and particular circumstances in his story, he will endeavor to invent such as shall be out of the reach of all opposing proof; and will be the most forward and minute in details, where he knows that any danger of contradiction is least to be apprehended.(64) Therefore it is, that variety and minuteness of detail are usually regarded as certain tests of sincerity, if the story, in the circumstances related, is of a nature capable of easy refutation if it were false. § 40. The difference, in the detail of circumstances, between artful or false witnesses and those who testify the truth, is worthy of especial observation. The former are often copious and even profuse in their statements, as far as these may have been previously fabricated, and in relation to the principal matter; but beyond this, all will be reserved and meagre, from the fear of detection. Every lawyer knows how lightly the evidence of a _non-mi-recordo_ witness is esteemed. The testimony of false witnesses will not be uniform in its texture, but will be unequal, unnatural, and inconsistent. On the contrary, in the testimony of true witnesses there is a visible and striking naturalness of manner, and an unaffected readiness and copiousness in the detail of circumstances, as well in one part of the narrative as another, and evidently without the least regard either to the facility or difficulty of verification or detection.(65) It is easier, therefore, to make out the proof of any fact, if proof it may be called, by suborning one or more false witnesses, to testify directly to the matter in question, than to procure an equal number to testify falsely to such collateral and separate circumstances as will, without greater danger of detection, lead to the same false result. The increased number of witnesses to circumstances, and the increased number of the circumstances themselves, all tend to increase the probability of detection if the witnesses are false, because thereby the points are multiplied in which their statements may be compared with each other, as well as with the truth itself, and in the same proportion is increased the danger of variance and inconsistency.(66) Thus the force of circumstantial evidence is found to depend on the number of particulars involved in the narrative; the difficulty of fabricating them all, if false, and the great facility of detection; the nature of the circumstances to be compared, and from which the dates and other facts are to be collected; the intricacy of the comparison; the number of the intermediate steps in the process of deduction; and the circuity of the investigation. The more largely the narrative partakes of these characters, the further it will be found removed from all suspicion of contrivance or design, and the more profoundly the mind will repose on the conviction of its truth. § 41. The narratives of the sacred writers, both Jewish and Christian, abound in examples of this kind of evidence, the value of which is hardly capable of being properly estimated. It does not, as has been already remarked, amount to mathematical demonstration; nor is this degree of proof justly demandable in any question of moral conduct. In all human transactions, the highest degree of assurance to which we can arrive, short of the evidence of our own senses, is that of probability. The most that can be asserted is, that the narrative is more likely to be true than false; and it may be in the highest degree more likely, but still be short of absolute mathematical certainty. Yet this very probability may be so great as to satisfy the mind of the most cautious, and enforce the assent of the most reluctant and unbelieving. If it is such as usually satisfies reasonable men, in matters of ordinary transaction, it is all which the greatest sceptic has a right to require; for it is by such evidence alone that our rights are determined, in the civil tribunals; and on no other evidence do they proceed, even in capital cases. Thus, where a house had been feloniously broken open with a knife, the blade of which was broken and left in the window, and the mutilated knife itself, the parts perfectly agreeing, was found in the pocket of the accused, who gave no satisfactory explanation of the fact, no reasonable doubt remained of his participation in the crime. And where a murder had been committed by shooting with a pistol, and the prisoner was connected with the transaction by proof that the wadding of the pistol was part of a letter addressed to him, the remainder of which was found upon his person, no juror’s conscience could have reproached him for assenting to the verdict of condemnation.(67) Yet the evidence, in both cases, is but the evidence of circumstances; amounting, it is true, to the highest degree of probability, but yet not utterly inconsistent with the innocence of the accused. The evidence which we have of the great facts of the Bible history belongs to this class, that is, it is moral evidence; sufficient to satisfy any rational mind, by carrying it to the highest degree of moral certainty. If such evidence will justify the taking away of human life or liberty, in the one case, surely it ought to be deemed sufficient to determine our faith in the other. § 42. All that Christianity asks of men on this subject, is, that they would be consistent with themselves; that they would treat its evidences as they treat the evidence of other things; and that they would try and judge its actors and witnesses, as they deal with their fellow-men, when testifying to human affairs and actions, in human tribunals. Let the witnesses be compared with themselves, with each other, and with surrounding facts and circumstances; and let their testimony be sifted, as if it were given in a court of justice, on the side of the adverse party, the witnesses being subjected to a rigorous cross-examination. The result, it is confidently believed, will be an undoubting conviction of their integrity, ability, and truth. In the course of such an examination, the undesigned coincidences will multiply upon us at every step in our progress; the probability of the veracity of the witnesses and of the reality of the occurrences which they relate will increase, until it acquires, for all practical purposes, the value and force of demonstration. § 43. It should be remembered, that very little of the literature of their times and country has come down to us; and that the collateral sources and means of corroborating and explaining their writings are proportionally limited. The contemporary writings and works of art which have reached us, have invariably been found to confirm their accounts, to reconcile what was apparently contradictory, and supply what seemed defective or imperfect. We ought therefore to conclude, that if we had more of the same light, all other similar difficulties and imperfections would vanish. Indeed they have been gradually vanishing, and rapidly too, before the light of modern research, conducted by men of science in our own times. And it is worthy of remark, that of all the investigations and discoveries of travellers and men of letters, since the overthrow of the Roman empire, not a vestige of antiquity has been found, impeaching, in the slightest degree, the credibility of the sacred writers; but, on the contrary, every result has tended to confirm it. § 44. The essential marks of difference between true narratives of facts and the creations of fiction, have already been adverted to. It may here be added that these attributes of truth are strikingly apparent throughout the gospel histories, and that the absence of all the others is equally remarkable. The writers allude, for example, to the existing manners and customs, and to the circumstances of the times and of their country, with the utmost minuteness of reference. And these references are never formally made, nor with preface and explanation, never multiplied and heaped on each other, nor brought together, as though introduced by design; but they are scattered broad-cast and singly over every part of the story, and so connect themselves with every incident related, as to render the detection of falsehood inevitable. This minuteness, too, is not peculiar to any one of the historians, but is common to them all. Though they wrote at different periods, and without mutual concert, they all alike refer incidentally to the same state of affairs, and to the same contemporary and collateral circumstances. Their testimony, in this view, stands on the same ground with that of four witnesses, separately examined before different commissioners, upon the same interrogatories, and all adverting incidentally to the same circumstances as surrounding and accompanying the principal transaction, to which alone their attention is directed. And it is worthy of observation that these circumstances were at that time of a peculiar character. Hardly a state or kingdom in the world ever experienced so many vicissitudes in its government and political relations, as did Judea, during the period of the gospel history. It was successively under the government of Herod the Great, of Archelaus, and of a Roman magistrate; it was a kingdom, a tetrarchate, and a province; and its affairs, its laws, and the administration of justice, were all involved in the confusion and uncertainty naturally to be expected from recent conquest. It would be difficult to select any place or period in the history of nations, for the time and scene of a fictitious history or an imposture, which would combine so many difficulties for the fabricator to surmount, so many contemporary writers to confront him with, and so many facilities for the detection of falsehood.(68) § 45. “Had the evangelists been false historians,” says Dr. Chalmers, “they would not have committed themselves upon so many particulars. They would not have furnished the vigilant inquirers of that period with such an effectual instrument for bringing them into discredit with the people; nor foolishly supplied, in every page of their narrative, so many materials for a cross-examination, which would infallibly have disgraced them. Now, we of this age can institute the same cross-examination. We can compare the evangelical writers with contemporary authors, and verify a number of circumstances in the history, and government, and peculiar economy of the Jewish people. We therefore have it in our power to institute a cross-examination upon the writers of the New Testament; and the freedom and frequency of their allusions to these circumstances supply us with ample materials for it. The fact, that they are borne out in their minute and incidental allusions by the testimony of other historians, gives a strong weight of what has been called circumstantial evidence in their favour. As a specimen of the argument, let us confine our observations to the history of our Saviour’s trial, and execution, and burial. They brought him to Pontius Pilate. We know both from Tacitus and Josephus, that he was at that time governor of Judea. A sentence from him was necessary before they could proceed to the execution of Jesus; and we know that the power of life and death was usually vested in the Roman governor. Our Saviour was treated with derision; and this we know to have been a customary practice at that time, previous to the execution of criminals, and during the time of it. Pilate scourged Jesus before he gave him up to be crucified. We know from ancient authors, that this was a very usual practice among the Romans. The accounts of an execution generally run in this form: he was stripped, whipped, and beheaded or executed. According to the evangelists, his accusation was written on the top of the cross; and we learn from Suetonius and others, that the crime of the person to be executed was affixed to the instrument of his punishment. According to the evangelists, this accusation was written in three different languages; and we know from Josephus that it was quite common in Jerusalem to have all public advertisements written in this manner. According to the evangelists, Jesus had to bear his cross; and we know from other sources of information, that this was the constant practice of these times. According to the evangelists, the body of Jesus was given up to be buried at the request of friends. We know that, unless the criminal was infamous, this was the law or the custom with all Roman governors.”(69) § 46. There is also a striking naturalness in the characters exhibited in the sacred historians, rarely if ever found in works of fiction, and probably nowhere else to be collected in a similar manner from fragmentary and incidental allusions and expressions, in the writings of different persons. Take, for example, that of Peter, as it may be gathered from the evangelists, and it will be hardly possible to conceive that four persons, writing at different times, could have concurred in the delineation of such a character, if it were not real; a character too, we must observe, which is nowhere expressly drawn, but is shown only here and there, casually, in the subordinate parts of the main narrative. Thus disclosed, it is that of a confident, sanguine, and zealous man; sudden and impulsive, yet humble and ready to retract; honest and direct in his purposes; ardently loving his master, yet deficient in fortitude and firmness in his cause.(70) When Jesus put any question to the apostles, it was Peter who was foremost to reply;(71) and if they would inquire of Jesus, it was Peter who was readiest to speak.(72) He had the impetuous courage to cut off the ear of the High Priest’s servant, who came to arrest his master; and the weakness to dissemble before the Jews, in the matter of eating with Gentile converts.(73) It was he who ran with John to the sepulchre, on the first intelligence of the resurrection of Jesus, and with characteristic zeal rushed in, while John paused without the door.(74) He had the ardour to desire and the faith to attempt to walk on the water, at the command of his Lord, but as soon as he saw the wind boisterous, he was afraid.(75) He was the first to propose the election of another apostle in the place of Judas;(76) and he it was who courageously defended them all, on the day of Pentecost, when the multitude charged them with being filled with new wine.(77) He was forward to acknowledge Jesus to be the Messiah;(78) yet having afterwards endangered his own life by wounding the servant of the High Priest, he suddenly consulted his own safety by denying the same Master, for whom, but a few hours before, he had declared himself ready to die.(79) We may safely affirm that the annals of fiction afford no example of a similar but not uncommon character, thus incidentally delineated. § 47. There are other internal marks of truth in the narratives of the evangelists, which, however, need here be only alluded to, as they have been treated with great fulness and force by able writers, whose works are familiar to all.(80) Among these may be mentioned the nakedness of the narratives; the absence of all parade by the writers about their own integrity, of all anxiety to be believed, or to impress others with a good opinion of themselves or their cause, of all marks of wonder, or of desire to excite astonishment at the greatness of the events they record, and of all appearance of design to exalt their Master. On the contrary, there is apparently the most perfect indifference on their part, whether they are believed or not; or rather, the evident consciousness that they were recording events well known to all, in their own country and times, and undoubtedly to be believed, like any other matter of public history, by readers in all other countries and ages. It is worthy, too, of especial observation, that though the evangelists record the unparalleled sufferings and cruel death of their beloved Lord, and this too, by the hands and with the consenting voices of those on whom he had conferred the greatest benefits, and their own persecutions and dangers, yet they have bestowed no epithets of harshness or even of just censure on the authors of all this wickedness, but have everywhere left the plain and unincumbered narrative to speak for itself, and the reader to pronounce his own sentence of condemnation; like true witnesses, who have nothing to gain or to lose by the event of the cause, they state the facts, and leave them to their fate. Their simplicity and artlessness, also, should not pass unnoticed, in readily stating even those things most disparaging to themselves. Their want of faith in their Master, their dulness of apprehension of his teachings, their strifes for preëminence, their inclination to call fire from heaven upon their enemies, their desertion of their Lord in his hour of extreme peril; these, and many other incidents tending directly to their own dishonour, are nevertheless set down with all the directness and sincerity of truth, as by men writing under the deepest sense of responsibility to God. Some of the more prominent instances of this class of proofs will be noticed hereafter, in their proper places, in the narratives themselves. § 48. Lastly, the great character they have portrayed is perfect. It is the character of a sinless Being; of one supremely wise and supremely good. It exhibits no error, no sinister intention, no imprudence, no ignorance, no evil passion, no impatience; in a word, no fault; but all is perfect uprightness, innocence, wisdom, goodness and truth. The mind of man has never conceived the idea of such a character, even for his gods; nor has history nor poetry shadowed it forth. The doctrines and precepts of Jesus are in strict accordance with the attributes of God, agreeably to the most exalted idea which we can form of them, either from reason or from revelation. They are strikingly adapted to the capacity of mankind, and yet are delivered with a simplicity and majesty wholly divine. He spake as never man spake. He spake with authority; yet addressed himself to the reason and the understanding of men; and he spake with wisdom, which men could neither gainsay nor resist. In his private life, he exhibits a character not merely of strict justice, but of overflowing benignity. He is temperate, without austerity; his meekness and humility are signal; his patience is invincible; truth and sincerity illustrate his whole conduct; every one of his virtues is regulated by consummate prudence; and he both wins the love of his friends, and extorts the wonder and admiration of his enemies(81). He is represented in every variety of situation in life, from the height of worldly grandeur, amid the acclamations of an admiring multitude, to the deepest abyss of human degradation and woe, apparently deserted of God and man. Yet everywhere he is the same; displaying a character of unearthly perfection, symmetrical in all its proportions, and encircled with splendour more than human. Either the men of Galilee were men of superlative wisdom, of extensive knowledge and experience, and of deeper skill in the arts of deception, than any and all others, before or after them, or they have truly stated the astonishing things which they saw and heard. The narratives of the evangelists are now submitted to the reader’s perusal and examination, upon the principles and by the rules already stated. For this purpose, and for the sake of more ready and close comparison, they are arranged in juxtaposition, after the general order of the latest and most approved harmonies. The question is not upon the strict propriety of the arrangement, but upon the veracity of the witnesses and the credibility of their narratives. With the relative merits of modern harmonists, and with points of controversy among theologians, the writer has no concern. His business is that of a lawyer, examining the testimony of witnesses by the rules of his own profession, in order to ascertain whether, if they had thus testified on oath, in a court of justice, they would be entitled to credit; and whether their narratives, as we now have them, would be received as ancient documents, coming from the proper custody. If so, then it is believed that every honest and impartial man will act consistently with that result, by receiving their testimony in all the extent of its import. To write out a full commentary or argument upon the text, would be a useless addition to the bulk of the volume; but a few notes have been added for illustration of the narratives, and for the clearing up of apparent discrepancies, as being all that members of the legal profession would desire. HARMONY OF THE GOSPELS. Part I. Events Connected With The Birth And Childhood Of Jesus. TIME. _About thirteen and a half years._ § 1. Preface to Luke’s Gospel. Luke. CH. I. 1-4. Forasmuch as many have taken in hand to set forth in order a declaration of those things which are most surely believed among us, 2 Even as they delivered them unto us, which from the beginning were eye-witnesses, and ministers of the word; 3 It seemed good to me also, having had perfect understanding of all things from the very first, to write unto thee in order, most excellent Theophilus, 4 That thou mightest know the certainty of those things wherein thou hast been instructed. § 2. An Angel appears to Zacharias. _Jerusalem_. Luke. CH. I. 5-25. 5 There was in the days of Herod the king of Judea, a certain priest named Zacharias, of the course of Abia: and his wife _was_ of the daughters of Aaron, and her name _was_ Elisabeth. 6 And they were both righteous before God, walking in all the commandments and ordinances of the Lord blameless. 7 and they had no child, because that Elisabeth was barren; and they both were _now_ well stricken in years. 8 And it came to pass, that, while he executed the priest’s office before God in the order of his course, 9 According to the custom of the priest’s office, his lot was to burn incense when he went into the temple of the Lord. 10 And the whole multitude of the people were praying without, at the time of incense. 11 And there appeared unto him an angel of the Lord, standing on the right side of the altar of incense. 12 And when Zacharias saw _him_, he was troubled, and fear fell upon him. 13 But the angel said unto him, Fear not, Zacharias: for thy prayer is heard; and thy wife Elisabeth shall bear thee a son, and thou shalt call his name John. 14 And thou shalt have joy and gladness, and many shall rejoice at his birth. 15 For he shall be great in the sight of the Lord, and shall drink neither wine nor strong drink; and he shall be filled with the Holy Ghost, even from his mother’s womb. 16 And many of the children of Israel shall he turn to the Lord their God. 17 And he shall go before him in the spirit and power of Elias,(82) to turn the hearts of the fathers to the children, and the disobedient to the wisdom of the just; to make ready a people prepared for the Lord. 18 And Zacharias said unto the angel, Whereby shall I know this? for I am an old man, and my wife well stricken in years. 19 And the angel, answering, said unto him, I am Gabriel, that stand in the presence of God, and am sent to speak unto thee, and to shew thee these glad tidings. 20 And behold, thou shalt be dumb, and not able to speak, until the day that these things shall be performed, because thou believest not my words, which shall be fulfilled in their season. 21 And the people waited for Zacharias, and marvelled that he tarried so long in the temple. 22 And when he came out, he could not speak unto them: and they perceived that he had seen a vision in the temple; for he beckoned unto them, and remained speechless. 23 And it came to pass, that as soon as the days of his ministration were accomplished, he departed to his own house. 24 And after those days his wife Elisabeth conceived, and hid herself five months, saying, 25 Thus hath the Lord dealt with me in the days wherein he looked on _me_, to take away my reproach among men. § 3. An Angel appears to Mary. _Nazareth_. Luke. CH. I. 26-38. 26 And in the sixth month the angel Gabriel was sent from God unto a city of Galilee, named Nazareth, 27 To a virgin espoused to a man whose name was Joseph, of the house of David; and the virgin’s name _was_ Mary. 28 And the angel came in unto her, and said, Hail, _thou that art_ highly favoured, the Lord is with thee: blessed art thou among women. 29 And when she saw _him_, she was troubled at his saying, and cast in her mind what manner of salutation this should be. 30 And the angel said unto her, Fear not, Mary: for thou hast found favour with God. 31 And behold, thou shalt conceive in thy womb, and bring forth a son, and shalt call his name JESUS. 32 He shall be great, and shall be called the son of the Highest; and the Lord God shall give unto him the throne of his father David. 33 And(83) he shall reign over the house of Jacob for ever; and of his kingdom there shall be no end. 34 Then said Mary unto the angel, How shall this be, seeing I know not a man? 35 And the angel answered and said unto her, The Holy Ghost shall come upon thee, and the power of the Highest shall overshadow thee: therefore also that holy thing which shall be born of thee, shall be called the Son of God. 36 And behold, thy cousin Elisabeth, she hath also conceived a son in her old age; and this is the sixth month with her who was called barren: 37 For with God nothing shall be impossible. 38 And Mary said, Behold the handmaid of the Lord, be it unto me according to thy word. And the angel departed from her. § 4. Mary visits Elisabeth. _Juttah_. Luke. CH. I. 39-56. 39 And Mary arose in those days, and went into the hill-country with haste, into a city of Juda, 40 And entered into the house of Zacharias, and saluted Elisabeth. 41 And it came to pass, that when Elisabeth heard the salutation of Mary, the babe leaped in her womb: and Elisabeth was filled with the Holy Ghost. 42 And she spake out with a loud voice and said, Blessed _art_ thou among women, and blessed _is_ the fruit of thy womb. 43 And whence _is_ this to me, that the mother of my lord should come to me? 44 For lo, as soon as the voice of thy salutation sounded in mine ears, the babe leaped in my womb for joy. 45 And blessed _is_ she that believed: for there shall be a performance of those things which were told her from the Lord. 46 And Mary said, My soul doth magnify the Lord, 47 And my spirit hath rejoiced in God my Saviour. 48 For he hath regarded the low estate of his handmaiden: for behold, from henceforth all generations shall call me blessed. 49 For he that is mighty hath done to me great things; and holy _is_ his name. 50 And his mercy _is_ on them that fear him, from generation to generation. 51 He hath shewed strength with his arm; he hath scattered the proud in the imagination of their hearts. 52 He hath put down the mighty from _their_ seats, and exalted them of low degree. 53 He hath filled the hungry with good things, and the rich he hath sent empty away. 54 He hath holpen his servant Israel, in remembrance of _his_ mercy; 55 As(84) he spake to our fathers, to Abraham, and to his seed, for ever. 56 And Mary abode with her about three months, and returned to her own house. § 5. The birth of John the Baptist. _Juttah_. Luke. CH. I. 57-80. 57 Now Elisabeth’s full time came that she should be delivered; and she brought forth a son. 58 And her neighbours and her cousins heard how the Lord had shewed great mercy upon her; and they rejoiced with her. 59 And it came to pass, that on the eighth day they came to circumcise the child; and they called him Zacharias, after the name of his father. 60 And his mother answered and said, not _so_; but he shall be called John. 61 And they said unto her, There is none of thy kindred that is called by this name. 62 And they made signs to his father, how he would have him called. 63 And he asked for a writing-table, and wrote, saying, His name is John. And they marvelled all. 64 And his mouth was opened immediately, and his tongue loosed, and he spake, and praised God. 65 And fear came on all that dwelt round about them: and all these sayings were noised abroad throughout all the hill-country of Judea. 66 And all they that heard _them_, laid _them_ up in their hearts, saying, What manner of child shall this be! And the hand of the Lord was with him. 67 And his father Zacharias was filled with the Holy Ghost, and prophesied, saying, 68 Blessed _be_ the Lord God of Israel; for he hath visited and redeemed his people, 69 And hath raised up a horn of salvation for us, in the house of his servant David: 70 As he spake by the mouth of his holy prophets, which have been since the world began: 71 That we should be saved from our enemies, and from the hand of all that hate us; 72 To perform the mercy _promised_ to our fathers, and to remember his holy covenant; 73 The oath which he sware to our Father Abraham,(85) 74 That he would grant unto us, that we, being delivered out of the hand of our enemies, might serve him without fear, 75 In holiness and righteousness before him, all the days of our life. 76 And thou, child, shalt be called the Prophet of the Highest, for thou shalt go before the face of the Lord to prepare his ways; 77 To give knowledge of salvation unto his people, by the remission of their sins, 78 Through the tender mercy of our God; whereby the day-spring from on high hath visited us, 79 To give light to them that sit in darkness and _in_ the shadow of death, to guide our feet into the way of peace. 80 And the child grew, and waxed strong in spirit, and was in the deserts till the day of his shewing unto Israel. § 6. An Angel appears to Joseph. _Nazareth._ Matthew. CH. I. 18-25. 18 Now the birth of Jesus Christ was on this wise: When as his mother Mary was espoused to Joseph, before they came together, she was found with child of the holy Ghost. 19 Then Joseph her husband, being a just _man_, and not willing to make her a public example, was minded to put her away privily.(86) 20 But while he thought on these things, Behold, the angel of the Lord appeared unto him in a dream, saying, Joseph, thou son of David, fear not to take unto thee Mary thy wife; for that which is conceived in her is of the Holy Ghost. 21 And she shall bring forth a son, and thou shalt call his name JESUS: for he shall save his people from their sins. 22 Now all this was done, that it might be fulfilled which was spoken of the Lord by the prophet, saying, 23 Behold,(87) a virgin shall be with child, and shall bring forth a son, and they shall call his name Emmanuel, which being interpreted is, God with us. 24 Then Joseph, being raised from sleep, did as the angel of the Lord had bidden him, and took unto him his wife: 25 And knew her not till she had brought forth her first-born son: and he called his name JESUS. § 7. The birth of Jesus. _Bethlehem_. Luke. CH. II. 1-7. And it came to pass in those days, that there went out a decree(88) from Cesar Augustus, that all the world should be taxed. 2 (And this taxing was first made when Cyrenius was governor of Syria.) 3 And all went to be taxed, every one into his own city. 4 And Joseph also went up from Galilee, out of the city of Nazareth, into Judea, unto the city of David, which is called Bethlehem, (because he was of the house and lineage of David,) 5 To be taxed with Mary his espoused wife, being great with child. 6 And so it was, that while they were there, the days were accomplished that she should be delivered. 7 And she brought forth her first-born son, and wrapped him in swaddling-clothes, and laid him in a manger; because there was no room for them in the inn. § 8. An Angel appears to the Shepherds. _Near Bethlehem_. Luke. CH. II. 8-20. 8 And there were in the same country shepherds abiding in the field, keeping watch over their flock by night. 9 And lo, the angel of the Lord came upon them, and the glory of the Lord shone round about them; and they were sore afraid. 10 And the angel said unto them, Fear not: for behold, I bring you good tidings of great joy, which shall be to all people. 11 For unto you is born this day, in the city of David, a Saviour, which is Christ the Lord. 12 And this _shall be_ a sign unto you; Ye shall find the babe wrapped in swaddling-clothes, lying in a manger. 13 And suddenly there was with the angel a multitude of the heavenly host praising God, and saying, 14 Glory to God in the highest, and on earth peace, good will toward men. 15 And it came to pass, as the angels were gone away from them into heaven, the shepherds said one to another, Let us now go even unto Bethlehem, and see this thing which is come to pass, which the Lord hath made known unto us. 16 And they came with haste, and found Mary and Joseph, and the babe lying in a manger. 17 And when they had seen _it_, they made known abroad the saying which was told them concerning this child. 18 And all they that heard it, wondered at those things which were told them by the shepherds. 19 But Mary kept all these things, and pondered _them_ in her heart. 20 And the shepherds returned, glorifying and praising God for all the things that they had heard and seen, as it was told unto them. § 9. The circumcision of Jesus and his presentation in the temple. _Bethlehem_. _Jerusalem_. Luke. CH. II. 21-38. 21 And when eight days were accomplished for the circumcising of the child,(89) his name was called JESUS, which was so named of the angel before he was conceived in the womb. 22 And when the days of her purification according to the law of Moses were accomplished, they brought him to Jerusalem, to present _him_ to the Lord; 23 (As it is written in the law of the Lord,(90) Every male that openeth the womb shall be called holy to the Lord;) 24 And to offer a sacrifice according to that which is said in the law of the Lord,(91) A pair of turtle-doves, or two young pigeons. 25 And behold, there was a man in Jerusalem, whose name _was_ Simeon; and the same man _was_ just and devout, waiting for the consolation of Israel: and the Holy Ghost was upon him. 26 And it was revealed unto him by the Holy Ghost, that he should not see death, before he had seen the Lord’s Christ. 27 And he came by the Spirit into the temple; and when the parents brought in the child Jesus, to do for him after the custom of the law, 28 Then took he him up in his arms, and blessed God, and said, 29 Lord, now lettest thou thy servant depart in peace, according to thy word: 30 For mine eyes have seen thy salvation, 31 Which thou hast prepared before the face of all people; 32 A light to lighten the Gentiles, and the glory of thy people Israel. 33 And Joseph and his mother marvelled at those things which were spoken of him. 34 And Simeon blessed them, and said unto Mary his mother, Behold, this child is(92) set for the fall and rising again of many in Israel; and for a sign which shall be spoken against, 35 (Yea, a sword shall pierce through thy own soul also;) that the thoughts of many hearts may be revealed. 36 And there was one Anna, a prophetess, the daughter of Phanuel, of the tribe of Aser: she was of a great age, and had lived with a husband seven years from her virginity. 37 And she _was_ a widow of about fourscore and four years, which departed not from the temple, but served _God_ with fastings and prayers night and day. 38 And she coming in that instant, gave thanks likewise unto the Lord, and spake of him to all them that looked for redemption in Jerusalem. § 10. The Magi. _Jerusalem._ _Bethlehem._ Matthew. CH. II. 1-12. Now when Jesus was born in Bethlehem of Judea in the days of Herod the king, behold, there came wise men from the East to Jerusalem, 2 Saying, Where is he that is born king of the Jews? for we have seen his star in the east, and are come to worship him. 3 When Herod the king had heard _these things_, he was troubled,(93) and all Jerusalem with him. 4 And when he had gathered all the chief priests and scribes of the people together, he demanded of them where Christ should be born. 5 And they said unto him, in Bethlehem of Judea: for thus it is written by the prophet, 6 And(94) thou Bethlehem, in the land of Juda, art not the least among the princes of Juda: for out of thee shall come a Governor, that shall rule my people Israel. 7 Then Herod, when he had privily called the wise men, inquired of them diligently what time the star appeared. 8 And he sent them to Bethlehem, and said Go, and search diligently for the young child; and when ye have found _him_, bring me word again, that I may come and worship him also. 9 When they had heard the king, they departed; and lo, the star, which they saw in the east, went before them, till it came and stood over where the young child was. 10 When they saw the star, they rejoiced with exceeding great joy. 11 And when they were come into the house, they saw the young child with Mary his mother, and fell down, and worshipped him: and when they had opened their treasures, they presented unto him gifts; gold, and frankincense, and myrrh. 12 And being warned of God in a dream that they should not return to Herod, they departed into their own country another way. § 11. The flight into Egypt. Herod’s cruelty. The return. _Bethlehem. Nazareth_. Matthew. CH. II. 13-23. 13 And when they were departed, behold, the angel of the Lord appeareth to Joseph in a dream, saying, Arise, and take the young child and his mother, and flee into Egypt, and be thou there until I bring thee word: for Herod will seek the young child to destroy him. 14 When he arose, he took the young child and his mother by night, and departed into Egypt: 15 And was there until the death of Herod: that it might be fulfilled which was spoken of the Lord by the prophet, saying,(95) Out of Egypt have I called my Son. 16 Then Herod, when he saw that he was mocked of the wise men, was exceeding wroth, and sent forth, and slew all the children that were in Bethlehem, and in all the coasts thereof, from two years old and under, according to the time which he had diligently inquired of the wise men. 17 Then was fulfilled that which was spoken by Jeremy the prophet, saying, 18 In(96) Rama was there a voice heard, lamentation, and weeping, and great mourning, Rachel weeping for her children, and would not be comforted, because they are not. 19 But, when Herod was dead, behold, an angel of the Lord appeareth in a dream to Joseph in Egypt, 20 Saying, Arise, and take the young child and his mother, and go into the land of Israel: for they are dead which sought the young child’s life. 21 And he arose, and took the young child and his mother, and came into the land of Israel. 22 But when he heard that Archelaus did reign in Judea in the room of his father Herod, he was afraid to go thither:(97) notwithstanding, being warned of God in a dream, he turned aside into the parts of Galilee: 23 And he came and dwelt in a city called Nazareth: that it might be fulfilled which was spoken by the prophets, He shall be called a Nazarene.(98) § 12. At twelve years of age, Jesus goes to the Passover. _Jerusalem_. Luke. CH. II. 41-52. 41 Now his parents went to Jerusalem every year at the feast of the passover. 42 And when he was twelve years old(99), they went up to Jerusalem after the custom of the feast. 43 And when they had fulfilled the days, as they returned, the child Jesus tarried behind in Jerusalem; and Joseph and his mother knew not of it. 44 But they, supposing him to have been in the company,(100) went a day’s journey; and they sought him among their kinsfolk and acquaintance. 45 And when they found him not, they turned back again to Jerusalem, seeking him. 46 And it came to pass, that after three days they found him in the temple, sitting in the midst of the doctors, both hearing them, and asking them questions. 47 And all that heard him were astonished at his understanding and answers. 48 And when they saw him, they were amazed: and his mother said unto him, Son, why hast thou thus dealt with us? Behold, thy father and I have sought thee sorrowing. 49 And he said unto them, How is it that ye sought me? wist ye not that I must be about my Father’s business? 50 And they understood not the saying which he spake unto them. 51 And he went down with them, and came to Nazareth, and was subject unto them: but his mother kept all these sayings in her heart. 52 And Jesus increased in wisdom and stature, and in favour with God and man. § 13. The Genealogies. Matthew. CH. I. 1-17. The book of the generation of Jesus Christ, the son of David, the son of Abraham. 2 Abraham begat Isaac; and Isaac begat Jacob; and Jacob begat Judas and his brethren; 3 And Judas begat Phares and Zara of Thamar; and Phares begat Esrom; and Esrom begat Aram; 4 And Aram begat Aminadab; and Aminadab begat Naasson; and Naasson begat Salmon; 5 And Salmon begat Booz of Rachab; and Booz begat Obed of Ruth; and Obed begat Jesse; 6 And Jesse begat David the king; and David the king begat Solomon of her _that had been the wife_ of Urias; 7 And Solomon begat Roboam; and Roboam begat Abia; and Abia begat Asa; 8 And Asa begat Josaphat; and Josaphat begat Joram; and Joram begat Ozias; 9 And Ozias begat Joatham; and Joatham begat Achaz; and Achaz begat Ezekias; 10 And Ezekias begat Manasses; and Manasses begat Amon; and Amon begat Josias; 11 And Josias begat Jechonias and his brethren, about the time they were carried away to Babylon; 12 And after they were brought to Babylon, Jechonias begat Salathiel; and Salathiel begat Zorobabel; 13 And Zorobabel begat Abiud; and Abiud begat Eliakim; and Eliakim begat Azor; 14 And Azor begat Sadoc; and Sadoc begat Achim; and Achim begat Eliud; 15 And Eliud begat Eleazar; and Eleazar begat Matthan; and Matthan begat Jacob; 16 And Jacob begat Joseph the husband of Mary, of whom was born Jesus, who is called Christ. 17 So all the generations from Abraham to David _are_ fourteen generations; and from David until the carrying away into Babylon _are_ fourteen generations; and from the carrying away into Babylon unto Christ _are_ fourteen generations. Luke. CH. III. 23-38, INVERTED.(101) 38 _The son_ of God, _the son_ of Adam, _the son_ of Seth, _the son_ of Enos, 37 _The son_ of Cainan, _the son_ of Maleleel, _the son_ of Jared, _the son_ of Enoch, _the son_ of Mathusala, 36 _The son_ of Lamech, _the son_ of Noe, _the son_ of Sem, _the son_ of Arphaxad, _the son_ of Cainan, 35 _The son_ of Sala, _the son_ of Heber, _the son_ of Phalec, _the son_ of Ragau, _the son_ of Saruch, 34 _The son_ of Nachor, _the son_ of Thara, _the son_ of Abraham, _the son_ of Isaac, _the son_ of Jacob, 33 _The son_ of Juda, _the son_ of Phares, _the son_ of Esrom, _the son_ of Aram, _the son_ of Aminadab, 32 _The son_ of Naasson, _the son_ of Salmon, _the son_ of Booz, _the son_ of Obed, _the son_ of Jesse, 31 _The son_ of David, _the son_ of Nathan, _the son_ of Mattatha, _the son_ of Menan, _the son_ of Melea, 30 _The son_ of Eliakim, _the son_ of Jonan, _the son_ of Joseph, _the son_ of Juda, _the son_ of Simeon, 29 _The son_ of Levi, _the son_ of Matthat, _the son_ of Joram, _the son_ of Eliezer, _the son_ of Jose, 28 _The son_ of Er, _the son_ of Elmodam, _the son_ of Cosam, _the son_ of Addi, _the son_ of Melchi, 27 _The son_ of Neri, _the son_ of Salathiel, _the son_ of Zorobabel, _the son_ of Rhesa, _the son_ of Joanna, 26 _The son_ of Juda, _the son_ of Joseph, _the son_ of Semei, _the son_ of Mattathias, _the son_ of Maath, 25 _The son_ of Nagge, _the son_ of Esli, _the son_ of Naum, _the son_ of Amos, _the son_ of Mattathias, 24 _The son_ of Joseph, _the son_ of Janna, _the son_ of Melchi, _the son_ of Levi, _the son_ of Matthat, 23 _The son_ of Heli, _the son_ of Joseph,—And Jesus himself ... being (as was supposed)— Part II. Announcement And Introduction Of Our Lord’s Public Ministry. TIME. _About one year._ § 14. The Ministry of John the Baptist. _The Desert._ _The Jordan._ Matthew. Mark. CH. III. 1-12. CH. I. 1-8. In those days came John the The beginning of the gospel of Baptist, preaching in the Jesus Christ the Son of God: wilderness of Judea, 2 And saying, Repent ye; for As it is written in the the kingdom of heaven is at prophets,(102) Behold, I send hand. my messenger before thy face, which shall prepare thy way before thee; 3 For this is he that was 3 The voice of one crying in spoken of by the prophet the wilderness, Prepare ye the Esaias, saying, The voice of way of the Lord, make his one crying in the wilderness, paths straight. Prepare ye the way of the Lord, make his paths straight. 4 And the same John had his 4 John did baptize in the raiment of camel’s hair, and a wilderness, and preach the leathern girdle about his baptism of repentance, for the loins; and his meat was remission of sins. locusts and wild honey. 5 Then went out to him 5 And there went out unto him Jerusalem, and all Judea, and all the land of Judea, and all the region round about they of Jerusalem, and were Jordan. all baptized of him in the river of Jordan, confessing their sins. 6 And were baptized of him in 6 And John was clothed with Jordan, confessing their sins. camel’s hair, and with a girdle of a skin about his loins; and he did eat locusts and wild honey; 7 But when he saw many of the 7 And preached, saying, There Pharisees and Sadducees come cometh one mightier than I to his baptism, he said unto after me, the latchet of whose them, O generation of vipers, shoes I am not worthy to stoop who hath warned you to flee down and unloose. from the wrath to come? 8 Bring forth therefore fruits 8 I indeed have baptized you meet for repentance: with water: but he shall baptize you with the Holy Ghost. 9 And think not to say within yourselves, We have Abraham to our father: for I say unto you, that God is able of these stones to raise up children unto Abraham. 10 And now also the axe is laid unto the root of the trees: therefore every tree which bringeth not forth good fruit is hewn down, and cast into the fire. 11 I indeed baptize you with water unto repentance: but he that cometh after me is mightier than I, whose shoes I am not worthy to bear: he shall baptize you with the Holy Ghost, and _with_ fire: 12 Whose fan _is_ in his hand, and he will thoroughly purge his floor, and gather his wheat into the garner; but he will burn up the chaff with unquenchable fire. Luke. CH. III. 1-18. Now in the fifteenth year of the reign of Tiberius Cesar, Pontius Pilate being governor of Judea, and Herod being tetrarch of Galilee, and his brother Philip tetrarch of Iturea and of the region of Trachonitis, and Lysanias the tetrarch of Abilene. 2 Annas and Caiaphas being the high priests,(103) the word of God came unto John the son of Zacharias in the wilderness. 3 And he came into all the country about Jordan, preaching the baptism of repentance, for the remission of sins; 4 As it is written in the book of the words of Esaias the prophet, saying,(104) The voice of one crying in the wilderness, Prepare ye the way of the Lord, make his paths straight. 5 Every valley shall be filled, and every mountain and hill shall be brought low; and the crooked shall be made straight, and the rough ways shall be made smooth; 6 And all flesh shall see the salvation of God. 7 Then said he to the multitude that came forth to be baptized of him, O generation of vipers, who hath warned you to flee from the wrath to come? 8 Bring forth therefore fruits worthy of repentance, and begin not to say within yourselves, We have Abraham to _our_ father: for I say unto you, That God is able of these stones to raise up children unto Abraham. 9 And now also the axe is laid unto the root of the trees: every tree therefore which bringeth not forth good fruit, is hewn down, and cast into the fire. 10 And the people asked him, saying, What shall we do then? 11 He answereth and saith unto them, He that hath two coats, let him impart to him that hath none; and he that hath meat, let him do likewise. 12 Then came also publicans to be baptized, and said unto him, Master, what shall we do? 13 And he said unto them, Exact no more than that which is appointed you. 14 And the soldiers likewise demanded of him, saying, And what shall we do? And he said unto them, Do violence to no man, neither accuse _any_ falsely; and be content with your wages. 15 And as the people were in expectation, and all men mused in their hearts of John, whether he were the Christ, or not; 16 John answered, saying unto _them_ all, I indeed baptize you with water; but one mightier than I cometh, the latchet of whose shoes I am not worthy to unloose: he shall baptize you with the Holy Ghost, and with fire: 17 Whose fan _is_ in his hand, and he will thoroughly purge his floor, and will gather the wheat into his garner; but the chaff he will burn with fire unquenchable. 18 And many other things in his exhortation preached he unto the people. § 15. The Baptism of Jesus. _The Jordan._ Matthew. Mark. CH. III. 13-17. CH. I. 9-11. 13 Then cometh Jesus from 9 And it came to pass in those Galilee to Jordan unto John, days, that Jesus came from to be baptized of him. Nazareth of Galilee, and was baptized of John in Jordan. 14 But John forbade him, 10 And straightway coming up saying, I have need to be out of the water, he saw the baptized of thee, and comest heavens opened, and the Spirit thou to me? like a dove descending upon him. 15 And Jesus answering said 11 And there came a voice from unto him, Suffer _it to be so_ heaven _saying_, Thou art my now: for thus it becometh us beloved Son, in whom I am well to fulfil all righteousness. pleased. Then he suffered him. 16 And Jesus, when he was baptized, when up straightway out of the water: and lo, the heavens were opened unto him, and he saw the Spirit of God descending like a dove, and lighting upon him: 17 And lo, a voice from heaven, saying, This is my beloved Son, in whom I am well pleased. Luke. CH. III. 21-23. 21 Now, when all the people were baptized, it came to pass, that Jesus also being baptized, and praying, the heaven was opened, 22 And the Holy Ghost descended in a bodily shape like a dove upon him, and a voice came from heaven, which said, Thou art my beloved Son; in thee I am well pleased. 23 And Jesus himself began to be about thirty years of age. § 16. The Temptation. _Desert of Judea_ Matthew. Mark. CH. IV. 1-11. CH. I. 12-13. Then was Jesus led up of the 12 And immediately the Spirit Spirit into the wilderness to driveth him into the be tempted of the devil. wilderness. 2 And when he had fasted forty 13 And he was there in the days and forty nights, he was wilderness forty days tempted afterward an hungered. of Satan; and was with the wild beasts; and the angels ministered unto him. 3 And when the tempter came to him, he said, If thou be the Son of God, command that these stones be made bread. 4 But he answered and said, It is written(105) Man shall not live by bread alone, but by every word that proceedeth out of the mouth of God. 5 Then the devil taketh him up into the holy city, and setteth him on a pinnacle of the temple, 6 And saith unto him, If thou be the Son of God cast thyself down, for it is written(106) He shall give his angels charge concerning thee: and in _their_ hands they shall bear thee up, lest at any time thou dash thy foot against a stone. 7 Jesus said unto him, It is written again,(107) Thou shalt not tempt the Lord thy God. 8 Again, the devil taketh him up into an exceeding high mountain and sheweth him all the kingdoms of the world, and the glory of them: 9 And saith unto him, All these things will I give thee, if thou wilt fall down and worship me. 10 Then saith Jesus unto him, Get thee hence, Satan: for it is written,(108) Thou shalt worship the Lord thy God, and him only shalt thou serve. 11 Then the devil leaveth him, and behold, angels came and ministered unto him. Luke. CH. IV. 1-13.(109) And Jesus, being full of the Holy Ghost, returned from Jordan, and was led by the Spirit into the wilderness, 2 Being forty days tempted of the devil. And in those days he did eat nothing: and when they were ended, he afterward hungered. 3 And the devil said unto him, If thou be the Son of God, command this stone that it be made bread. 4 And Jesus answered him, saying, It is written, That man shall not live by bread alone, but by every word of God. 9 And he brought him to Jerusalem, and set him on a pinnacle of the temple, and said unto him, If thou be the Son of God, cast thyself down from hence: 10 For it is written, He shall give his angels charge over thee, to keep thee: 11 And in _their_ hands they shall bear thee up, lest at any time thou dash thy foot against a stone. 12 And Jesus answering, said unto him, It is said, Thou shalt not tempt the Lord thy God. 5 And the devil, taking him up into a high mountain, shewed unto him, all the kingdoms of the world in a moment of time. 6 And the devil said unto him, All this power will I give thee, and the glory of them: for that is delivered unto me, and to whomsoever I will, I give it. 7 If thou therefore wilt worship me, all shall be thine. 8 And Jesus answered and said unto him, Get thee behind me, Satan: for it is written, Thou shalt worship the Lord thy God, and him only shalt thou serve. 13 And when the devil had ended all the temptation, he departed from him for a season. § 17. Preface to John’s Gospel. John. CH. I. 1-18. In the beginning was the Word, and the Word was with God, and the Word was God. 2 The same was in the beginning with God. 3 All things were made by him; and without him was not anything made that was made. 4 In him was life; and the life was the light of men. 5 And the light shineth in darkness; and the darkness comprehended it not. 6 There was a man sent from God, whose name _was_ John. 7 The same came for a witness, to bear witness of the Light, that all _men_ through him might believe. 8 He was not that Light, but _was sent_ to bear witness of that light. 9 _That_ was the true Light, which lighteth every man that cometh into the world. 10 He was in the world, and the world was made by him, and the world knew him not. 11 He came unto his own, and his own received him not. 12 But as many as received him, to them gave he power to become the sons of God, _even_ to them that believe on his name: 13 Which were born, not of blood, nor of the will of the flesh, nor of the will of man, but of God. 14 And the Word was made flesh, and dwelt among us, (and we beheld his glory, the glory as of the only begotten of the Father,) full of grace and truth. 15 John bare witness of him, and cried, saying, This was he of whom I spake, He that cometh after me, is preferred before me; for he was before me. 16 And of his fulness have all we received, and grace for grace. 17 For the law was given by Moses, _but_ grace and truth came by Jesus Christ. 18 No man hath seen God at any time; the only begotten Son, which is in the bosom of the Father, he hath declared _him_. § 18. Testimony of John the Baptist to Jesus. _Bethany beyond Jordan_. John. CH. I. 19-34. 19 And this is the record of John, when the Jews sent priests and Levites from Jerusalem, to ask him, Who art thou? 20 And he confessed, and denied not; but confessed, I am not the Christ. 21 And they asked him, What then? Art thou Elias? And he saith, I am not. Art thou that prophet? And he answered, No.(110) 22 Then said they unto him, Who art thou? that we may give an answer to them that sent us. What sayest thou of thyself? 23 He said,(111) I am the voice of one crying in the wilderness, Make straight the way of the Lord, as said the prophet Esaias. 24 And they which were sent were of the Pharisees. 25 And they asked him, and said unto him, Why baptizest thou then, if thou be not that Christ, nor Elias, neither that prophet? 26 John answered them, saying, I baptize with water: but there standeth one among you, whom ye know not. 27 He it is, who coming after me, is preferred before me, whose shoe’s latchet I am not worthy to unloose. 28 These things were done in Bethabara beyond Jordan, where John was baptizing. 29 The next day John seeth Jesus coming unto him, and saith, Behold the Lamb of God, which taketh away the sin of the world! 30 This is he of whom I said, After me cometh a man which is preferred before me; for he was before me. 31 And I knew him not: but that he should be made manifest to Israel, therefore am I come baptizing with water. 32 And John bare record, saying, I saw the Spirit descending from heaven like a dove, and it abode upon him. 33 And I knew him not: but he that sent me to baptize with water, the same said unto me, Upon whom thou shalt see the Spirit descending and remaining on him, the same is he which baptizeth with the Holy Ghost. 34 And I saw and bare record, that this is the Son of God. § 19. Jesus gains disciples. _The Jordan. Galilee_. John. CH. I. 35-51. 35 Again the next day after, John stood, and two of his disciples; 36 And looking upon Jesus as he walked, he saith, Behold the Lamb of God! 37 And the two disciples heard him speak, and they followed Jesus. 38 Then Jesus turned, and saw them following, and saith unto them, What seek ye? They said unto him, Rabbi, (which is to say, being interpreted, Master,) where dwellest thou? 39 He saith unto them, Come and see. They came and saw where he dwelt, and abode with him that day: for it was about the tenth hour. 40 One of the two which heard John _speak_, and followed him, was Andrew, Simon Peter’s brother. 41 He first findeth his own brother Simon, and saith unto him, We have found the Messias; which is, being interpreted, the Christ. 42 And he brought him to Jesus. And when Jesus beheld him, he said, Thou art Simon the son of Jona: thou shalt be called Cephas; which is, by interpretation, a stone.(112) 43 The day following Jesus would go forth into Galilee, and findeth Philip, and saith unto him, Follow me. 44 Now Philip was of Bethsaida, the city of Andrew and Peter. 45 Philip findeth Nathanael,(113) and saith unto him, We have found him of whom Moses in the law, and the prophets, did write, Jesus of Nazareth the son of Joseph. 46 And Nathanael said unto him, Can there any good thing come out of Nazareth? Philip saith unto him, Come and see. 47 Jesus saw Nathanael coming to him, and saith of him, Behold an Israelite indeed, in whom is no guile! 48 Nathanael saith unto him, Whence knowest thou me? Jesus answered and said unto him, Before that Philip called thee, when thou wast under the fig-tree, I saw thee. 49 Nathanael answered and saith unto him, Rabbi, thou art the Son of God; thou art the King of Israel. 50 Jesus answered and said unto him, Because I said unto thee, I saw thee under the fig-tree, believest thou? thou shalt see greater things than these. 51 And he saith unto him, Verily, verily, I say unto you, Hereafter ye shall see heaven open, and the angels of God ascending and descending upon the(114) Son of man. § 20. The Marriage at Cana of Galilee. John. CH. II. 1-12. And the third day there was a marriage in Cana of Galilee; and the mother of Jesus was there. 2 And both Jesus was called, and his disciples, to the marriage. 3 And when they wanted wine, the mother of Jesus saith unto him, They have no wine. 4 Jesus saith unto her, Woman, what have I to do with thee? mine hour is not yet come. 5 His mother saith unto the servants, Whatsoever he saith unto you, do _it_. 6 And there were set there six water-pots of stone, after the manner of the purifying of the Jews, containing two or three firkins apiece. 7 Jesus saith unto them, Fill the water-pots with water. And they filled them up to the brim. 8 And he saith unto them, Draw out now, and bear unto the governor of the feast. And they bare _it_. 9 When the ruler of the feast had tasted the water that was made wine, and knew not whence it was, (but the servants which drew the water knew,) the governor of the feast called the bridegroom, 10 And saith unto him, Every man at the beginning doth set forth good wine; and when men have well drunk, then that which is worse: _but_ thou hast kept the good wine until now. 11 This beginning of miracles did Jesus in Cana of Galilee, and manifested forth his glory; and his disciples believed on him. 12 After this he went down to Capernaum, he, and his mother, and his brethren, and his disciples; and they continued there not many days. Part III. Our Lord’s First Passover, And The Subsequent Transactions Until The Second. TIME. _One year._ § 21. At the Passover Jesus drives the traders out of the Temple. _Jerusalem_. John. CH. II. 13-25. 13 And the Jews’ passover was at hand, and Jesus went up to Jerusalem. 14 And found in the temple those that sold oxen, and sheep, and doves, and the changers of money, sitting: 15 And when he had made a scourge of small cords, he drove them all out of the temple, and the sheep, and the oxen; and poured out the changers’ money, and overthrew the tables; 16 And said unto them that sold doves, Take these things hence: make not my Father’s house an house of merchandise. 17 And his disciples remembered that it was written,(115) The zeal of thine house hath eaten me up. 18 Then answered the Jews, and said unto him, What sign shewest thou unto us, seeing that thou dost these things? 19 Jesus answered and said unto them, Destroy this temple, and in three days I will raise it up. 20 Then said the Jews, Forty and six years was this temple in building, and wilt thou rear it up in three days? 21 But he spake of the temple of his body. 22 When therefore he was risen from the dead, his disciples remembered that he had said this unto them: and they believed the scripture, and the word which Jesus had said. 23 Now, when he was in Jerusalem at the passover, in the _feast-day_, many believed in his name, when they saw the miracles which he did. 24 But Jesus did not commit himself unto them, because he knew all _men_. 25 And needed not that any should testify of man: for he knew what was in man. § 22. Our Lord’s discourse with Nicodemus. _Jerusalem_. John. CH. III. 1-21. There was a man of the Pharisees named Nicodemus, a ruler of the Jews: 2 The same came to Jesus by night, and said unto him, Rabbi, we know that thou art a teacher come from God: for no man can do these miracles that thou doest, except God be with him. 3 Jesus answered and said unto him, Verily, verily, I say unto thee, Except a man be born again, he cannot see the kingdom of God. 4 Nicodemus saith unto him, How can a man be born when he is old? can he enter the second time into his mother’s womb, and be born? 5 Jesus answered, Verily, verily, I say unto thee, Except a man be born of water, and of the Spirit, he cannot enter into the kingdom of God. 6 That which is born of the flesh, is flesh; and that which is born of the Spirit, is spirit. 7 Marvel not that I said unto thee, Ye must be born again. 8 The wind bloweth where it listeth, and thou hearest the sound thereof, but canst not tell whence it cometh, and whither it goeth: so is every one that is born of the Spirit. 9 Nicodemus answered and said unto him, How can these things be? 10 Jesus answered and said unto him, Art thou a master of Israel, and knowest not these things? 11 Verily, verily, I say unto thee, We speak that we do know, and testify that we have seen; and ye receive not our witness. 12 If I have told you earthly things, and ye believe not, how shall ye believe if I tell you _of_ heavenly things? 13 And no man hath ascended up to heaven, but he that came down from heaven, _even_ the Son of man which is in heaven. 14 And as(116) Moses lifted up the serpent in the wilderness, even so must the Son of man be lifted up: 15 That whosoever believeth in him should not perish, but have eternal life. 16 For God so loved the world, that he gave his only begotten Son, that whosoever believeth in him, should not perish, but have everlasting life. 17 For God sent not his Son into the world to condemn the world, but that the world through him might be saved. 18 He that believeth on him, is not condemned: but he that believeth not, is condemned already, because he hath not believed in the name of the only begotten Son of God. 19 And this is the condemnation, that light is come into the world, and men loved darkness rather than light, because their deeds were evil. 20 For every one that doeth evil hateth the light, neither cometh to the light, lest his deeds should be reproved. 21 But he that doeth truth, cometh to the light, that his deeds may be made manifest, that they are wrought in God. § 23. Jesus remains in Judea and baptizes. Further testimony of John the Baptist. John. CH. III. 22-36. 22 After these things came Jesus and his disciples into the land of Judea; and there he tarried with them, and baptized. 23 And John also was baptizing in Ænon, near to Salim, because there was much water there: and they came, and were baptized. 24 For John was not yet cast into prison. 25 Then there arose a question between _some_ of John’s disciples and the Jews, about purifying. 26 And they came unto John and said unto him, Rabbi, he that was with thee beyond Jordan, to whom thou bearest witness, behold, the same baptizeth, and all men come to him. 27 John answered and said, A man can receive nothing, except it be given him from heaven. 28 Ye yourselves bear me witness, that I said, I am not the Christ, but that I am sent before him. 29 He that hath the bride is the bridegroom: but the friend of the bridegroom, which standeth and heareth him, rejoiceth greatly, because of the bridegroom’s voice: this my joy therefore is fulfilled. 30 He must increase, but I must decrease. 31 He that cometh from above, is above all: he that is of the earth is earthly, and speaketh of the earth: he that cometh from heaven is above all. 32 And what he hath seen, and heard, that he testifieth; and no man receiveth his testimony. 33 He that hath received his testimony, hath set to his seal that God is true. 34 For he whom God hath sent, speaketh the words of God: for God giveth not the Spirit by measure _unto him_. 35 The Father loveth the Son, and hath given all things into his hand. 36 He that believeth on the Son hath everlasting life: and he that believeth not the Son, shall not see life; but the wrath of God abideth on him. § 24. Jesus departs into Galilee after John’s imprisonment. Matthew. Mark. CH. IV. 12. CH. I. 14. 12 Now, when Jesus had heard 14 Now, after that John was that John was cast into put in prison, Jesus came into prison, he departed into Galilee. Galilee. CH. XIV. 3-5. CH. VI. 17-20. 3 For Herod had laid hold on 17 For Herod himself had sent John, and bound him, and put forth and laid hold upon John, _him_ in prison for Herodias’ and bound him in prison for sake, his brother Philip’s Herodias’ sake, his brother wife. Philip’s wife: for he had married her. 4 For John said unto him, It 18 For John had said unto is not lawful for thee to have Herod, It is not lawful for her. thee to have thy brother’s wife. 5 And when he would have put 19 Therefore Herodias had a him to death, he feared the quarrel against him, and would multitude, because they have killed him; but she could counted him as a prophet. not: 20 For Herod feared John, knowing that he was a just man and an holy, and observed him: and when he heard him, he did many things, and heard him gladly. Luke. John. CH. IV. 14. CH. IV. 1-3. When therefore the Lord knew how the Pharisees had heard that Jesus made and baptized more disciples than John, 2 (Though Jesus himself baptized not, but his disciples,) 14 And Jesus returned in the 3 He left Judea, and departed power of the Spirit into again into Galilee. Galilee: CH. III. 19, 20. 19 But Herod the tetrarch, being reproved by him for Herodias his brother Philip’s wife, and for all the evils which Herod had done, 20 Added yet this above all, that he shut up John in prison. § 25. Our Lord’s discourse with the Samaritan woman. Many Samaritans believe on him. _Shechem_ or _Neapolis_. John. CH. IV. 4-42. 4 And he must needs go through Samaria. 5 Then cometh he to a city of Samaria, which is called Sychar, near to the parcel of ground that Jacob gave to his son Joseph. 6 Now Jacob’s well was there. Jesus therefore being wearied with _his_ journey, sat thus on the well: and it was about the sixth hour. 7 There cometh a woman of Samaria to draw water; Jesus saith unto her, Give me to drink. 8 (For his disciples were gone away unto the city to buy meat.) 9 Then saith the woman of Samaria unto him, How is it that thou, being a Jew, askest drink of me, which am a woman of Samaria? for the Jews have no dealings with the Samaritans. 10 Jesus answered and said unto her, If thou knewest the gift of God, and who it is that saith to thee, Give me to drink; thou wouldest have asked of him, and he would have given thee living water. 11 The woman saith unto him, Sir, thou hast nothing to draw with, and the well is deep: from whence then hast thou that living water? 12 Art thou greater than our father Jacob, which gave us the well, and drank thereof himself, and his children, and his cattle? 13 Jesus answered and said unto her, Whosoever drinketh of this water, shall thirst again: 14 But whosoever drinketh of the water that I shall give him, shall never thirst; but the water that I shall give him, shall be in him a well of water springing up into everlasting life. 15 The woman saith unto him, Sir, give me this water, that I thirst not, neither come hither to draw. 16 Jesus saith unto her, Go call thy husband, and come hither. 17 The woman answered and said, I have no husband. Jesus said unto her, Thou hast well said, I have no husband: 18 For thou hast had five husbands, and he whom thou now hast, is not thy husband: in that saidst thou truly. 19 The woman saith unto him, Sir, I perceive that thou art a prophet. 20 Our fathers worshipped in this mountain; and ye say, that in Jerusalem is the place where men ought to worship. 21 Jesus saith unto her, Woman, believe me, the hour cometh, when ye shall neither in this mountain, nor yet at Jerusalem, worship the Father. 22 Ye worship ye know not what: we know what we worship, for salvation is of the Jews. 23 But the hour cometh, and now is, when the true worshippers shall worship the Father in spirit and in truth: for the Father seeketh such to worship him. 24 God is a Spirit: and they that worship him, must worship him in spirit and in truth. 25 The woman saith unto him, I know that the Messias cometh, which is called Christ; when he is come, he will tell us all things. 26 Jesus saith unto her, I that speak unto thee am he. 27 And upon this came his disciples, and marvelled that he talked with the woman: yet no man said, What seekest thou? or, Why talkest thou with her? 28 The woman then left her waterpot, and went her way into the city, and saith to the men, 29 Come, see a man which told me all things that ever I did: is not this the Christ? 30 Then they went out of the city, and came unto him. 31 In the meanwhile his disciples prayed him, saying, Master, eat. 32 But he said unto them, I have meat to eat that ye not know of. 33 Therefore said the disciples one to another, Hath any man brought him aught to eat? 34 Jesus saith unto them, My meat is to do the will of him that sent me, and to finish his work. 35 Say not ye, There are yet four months, and _then_ cometh harvest? behold, I say unto you, Lift up your eyes, and look on the fields; for they are white already to harvest. 36 And he that reapeth receiveth wages, and gathereth fruit unto life eternal: that both he that soweth, and he that reapeth, may rejoice together. 37 And herein is that saying true, One soweth, and another reapeth. 38 I sent you to reap that whereon ye bestowed no labour: other men laboured, and ye are entered into their labours. 39 And many of the Samaritans of that city believed on him for the saying of the woman, which testified, He told me all that ever I did. 40 So when the Samaritans were come unto him, they besought him that he would tarry with them: and he abode there two days. 41 And many more believed, because of his own word; 42 And said unto the woman, Now we believe, not because of thy saying: for we have heard _him_ ourselves, and know that this is indeed the Christ, the Saviour of the world. § 26. Jesus teaches publicly in Galilee. Matthew. Mark. CH. IV. 17. CH. I. 14, 15. 17 From that time Jesus began preaching the gospel of the to preach, and to say, Repent: kingdom of God, for the kingdom of heaven is at hand. 15 And saying, the time is fulfilled, and the kingdom of God is at hand; repent ye, and believe the gospel. Luke. John. CH. IV. 14, 15. CH. IV. 43-45. and there went out a fame of 43 Now, after two days he him through all the region departed thence, and went into round about. Galilee. 15 And he taught in their 44 For Jesus himself synagogues, being glorified of testified, that a prophet hath all. no honour in his own country. 45 Then when he was come into Galilee, the Galileans received him, having seen all the things that he did at Jerusalem at the feast: for they also went unto the feast. § 27. Jesus, again at Cana, heals the son of a nobleman lying ill at Capernaum. _Cana of Galilee_. John. CH. IV. 46-54. 46 So Jesus came again into Cana of Galilee, where he made the water wine. And there was a certain nobleman, whose son was sick at Capernaum. 47 When he heard that Jesus was come out of Judea into Galilee, he went unto him, and besought him that he would come down, and heal his son: for he was at the point of death. 48 Then said Jesus unto him, Except ye see signs and wonders, ye will not believe. 49 The nobleman saith unto him, Sir, come down ere my child die. 50 Jesus saith unto him, Go thy way; thy son liveth. And the man believed the word that Jesus had spoken unto him, and he went his way. 51 And as he was now going down, his servants met him, and told _him_, saying, Thy son liveth. 52 Then inquired he of them the hour when he began to amend. And they said unto him, Yesterday at the seventh hour the fever left him. 53 So the father knew that _it was_ at the same hour, in the which Jesus said unto him, Thy son liveth: and himself believed, and his whole house. 54 This _is_ again the second miracle _that_ Jesus did, when he was come out of Judea into Galilee. § 28. Jesus is rejected at Nazareth, and fixes his abode at Capernaum. Matthew. CH. IV. 13-16. 13 And leaving Nazareth, he came and dwelt in Capernaum, which is upon the sea-coast, in the borders of Zabulon and Napthalim; 14 That it might be fulfilled which was spoken by Esaias the prophet, saying,(117) 15 The land of Zabulon, and the land of Napthalim, _by_ the way of the sea, beyond Jordan, Galilee of the Gentiles: 16 The people which sat in darkness, saw great light; and to them which sat in the region and shadow of death, light is sprung up. Luke. CH. IV. 16-31. 16 And he came to Nazareth, where he had been brought up: and, as his custom was, he went into the synagogue on the sabbath-day, and stood up for to read. 17 And there was delivered unto him the book of the prophet Esaias. And when he had opened the book, he found the place where it was written,(118) 18 The Spirit of the Lord _is_ upon me, because he hath anointed me to preach the gospel to the poor; he hath sent me to heal the brokenhearted, to preach deliverance to the captives, and recovering of sight to the blind, to set at liberty them that are bruised, 19 To preach the acceptable year of the Lord. 20 And he closed the book, and he gave it again to the minister,(119) and sat down.(120) And the eyes of all them that were in the synagogue were fastened on him. 21 And he began to say unto them, This day is the scripture fulfilled in your ears. 22 And all bare him witness, and wondered at the gracious words which proceeded out of his mouth. And they said, Is not this Joseph’s son? 23 And he said unto them, Ye will surely say unto me this proverb, Physician, heal thyself: whatsoever we have heard done in Capernaum, do also here in thy country. 24 And he said, Verily, I say unto you, No prophet is accepted in his own country. 25 But I tell you of a truth, many widows were in Israel in the days of Elias, when the heaven was shut up three years and six months, when great famine was throughout all the land: 26 But unto none of them was Elias sent, save unto Sarepta, a _city_ of Sidon, unto a woman _that was_ a widow.(121) 27 And many lepers were in Israel in the time of Eliseus the prophet; and none of them was cleansed, saving Naaman the Syrian.(122) 28 And all they in the synagogue, when they heard these things, were filled with wrath, 29 And rose up, and thrust him out of the city, and led him unto the brow of the hill,(123) (whereon their city was built,) that they might cast him down headlong. 30 But he, passing through the midst of them, went his way, 31 And came down to Capernaum, a city of Galilee, § 29. The call of Simon Peter and Andrew, and of James and John, with the miraculous draught of fishes. _Near Capernaum_. Matthew. Mark. CH. IV. 18-22. CH. I. 16-20. 18 And Jesus, walking(124) by 16 Now as he walked by the sea the sea of Galilee, saw two of Galilee, he saw Simon, and brethren, Simon called Peter, Andrew his brother, and Andrew his brother, casting a net into the sea; casting a net into the sea: for they were fishers. for they were fishers. 19 And he saith unto them, 17 And Jesus said unto them, Follow me, and I will make you Come ye after me, and I will fishers of men. make you to become fishers of men. 20 And they straightway left 18 And straightway they _their_ nets, and followed forsook their nets, and him. followed him. 21 And going on from thence, 19 And when he had gone a he saw other two brethren, little farther thence, he saw James _the son_ of Zebedee, James the _son_ of Zebedee, and John his brother, in a and John his brother, who also ship with Zebedee their were in the ship mending their father,(125) mending their nets. nets: and he called them. 22 And they immediately left 20 And straightway he called the ship, and their father, them: and they left their and followed him. father Zebedee in the ship with the hired servants, and went after him. Luke. CH. V. 1-11. And it came to pass, that as the people pressed upon him to hear the word of God, he stood by the lake of Gennesaret, 2 And saw two ships standing by the lake: but the fishermen were gone out of them, and were washing their nets. 3 And he entered into one of the ships which was Simon’s, and prayed him that he would thrust out a little from the land. And he sat down, and taught the people out of the ship. 4 Now, when he had left speaking, he said unto Simon, Launch out into the deep, and let down your nets for a draught. 5 And Simon, answering, said unto him, Master, we have toiled all the night, and have taken nothing; nevertheless, at thy word I will let down the net. 6 And when they had this done, they enclosed a great multitude of fishes: and their net brake. 7 And they beckoned unto _their_ partners, which were in the other ship, that they should come and help them. And they came, and filled both the ships, so that they began to sink. 8 When Simon Peter saw _it_, he fell down at Jesus’ knees, saying, Depart from me; for I am a sinful man, O Lord. 9 For he was astonished, and all that were with him, at the draught of the fishes which they had taken: 10 And so was also James and John the sons of Zebedee, which were partners with Simon. And Jesus said unto Simon, Fear not: from henceforth thou shalt catch men. 11 And when they had brought their ships to land, they forsook all, and followed him. § 30. The healing of a demoniac in the Synagogue. _Capernaum_. Mark. Luke. CH. I. 21-28. CH. IV. 31-37. 21 And they went into and taught them on the Capernaum; and straightway on Sabbath-days. the sabbath-day he entered into the synagogue and taught. 22 And they were astonished at 32 And they were astonished at his doctrine: for he taught his doctrine: for his word was them as one that had with power. authority, and not as the scribes. 23 And there was in their 33 And in the synagogue there synagogue a man with an was a man which had a spirit unclean spirit; and he cried of an unclean devil; and he out, cried out with a loud voice, 24 Saying, Let us alone; what 34 Saying, Let _us_ alone; have we to do with thee, thou what have we to do with thee, Jesus of Nazareth? art thou, _thou_ Jesus of Nazareth? art come to destroy us? I know thou come to destroy us? I thee who thou art, the Holy know thee who thou art, the One of God. Holy One of God. 25 And Jesus rebuked him, 35 And Jesus rebuked him, saying, Hold thy peace, and saying, Hold thy peace, and come out of him. come out of him. And when the devil had thrown him in the midst, he came out of him, and hurt him not. 26 And when the unclean spirit 36 And they were all amazed, had torn him,(126) and cried and spake among themselves, with a loud voice, he came out saying, What a word _is_ this! of him. for with authority and power he commandeth the unclean spirits, and they come out. 27 And they were all amazed, insomuch that they questioned among themselves, saying, What thing is this? what new doctrine _is_ this? for with authority commandeth he even the unclean spirits, and they do obey him. 28 And immediately his fame 37 And the fame of him went spread abroad throughout all out into every place of the the region round about country round about. Galilee. § 31. The healing of Peter’s wife’s mother and many others. _Capernaum_. Matthew. Mark. CH. VIII. 14-17. CH. I. 29-34. 29 And forthwith, when they were come out of the synagogue, they entered into the house of Simon and Andrew, with James and John. 14 And when Jesus was come 30 But Simon’s wife’s mother into Peter’s house, he saw his lay sick of a fever; and anon wife’s mother laid, and sick they tell him of her. of a fever. 15 And he touched her hand, 31 And he came and took her by and the fever left her: and the hand, and lifted her up; she arose, and ministered unto and immediately the fever left them. her, and she ministered unto them. 16 When the even was come, 32 And at even when the sun they brought unto him many did set, they brought unto him that were possessed with all that were diseased, and devils: and he cast out the them that were possessed with spirits with _his_ word, and devils. healed all that were sick; 17 That it might be fulfilled 33 And all the city was which was spoken by Esaias the gathered together at the door. prophet, saying,(127) Himself took our infirmities, and bare _our_ sicknesses. 34 And he healed many that were sick of divers diseases, and cast out many devils; and suffered not the devils to speak, because they knew him. Luke. CH. IV. 38-41. 38 And he arose out of the synagogue, and entered into Simon’s house. And Simon’s wife’s mother was taken with a great fever; and they besought him for her. 39 And he stood over her, and rebuked the fever; and it left her: and immediately she arose and ministered unto them. 40 Now, when the sun was setting, all they that had any sick with divers diseases, brought them unto him: and he laid his hands on every one of them, and healed them. 41 And devils also came out of many, crying out, and saying, Thou art Christ the Son of God. And he, rebuking _them_, suffered them not to speak: for they knew that he was Christ. § 32. Jesus with his disciples goes from Capernaum throughout Galilee. Matthew. Mark. CH. IV. 23-25. CH. I. 35-39. 35 And in the morning, rising up a while before day, he went out and departed into a solitary place, and there prayed. 36 And Simon, and they that were with him, followed after him. 37 And when they had found him, they said unto him, All _men_ seek for thee. 38 And he said unto them, Let us go into the next towns, that I may preach there also: for therefore came I forth. 23 And Jesus went about all 39 And he preached in their Galilee, teaching in their synagogues throughout all synagogues, and preaching the Galilee, and cast out devils. gospel of the kingdom, and healing all manner of sickness, and all manner of disease among the people. 24 And his fame went throughout all Syria: and they brought unto him all sick people that were taken with divers diseases and torments, and those which were possessed with devils, and those which were lunatic, and those that had the palsy; and he healed them. 25 And there followed him great multitudes of people from Galilee, and _from_ Decapolis, and _from_ Jerusalem, and _from_ Judea, and _from_ beyond Jordan. Luke. CH. IV. 42-44. 42 And when it was day,(128) he departed, and went into a desert place; and the people sought him, and came unto him, and stayed him, that he should not depart from them. 43 And he said unto them, I must preach the kingdom of God to other cities also, for therefore am I sent. 44 And he preached in the synagogues of Galilee. § 33. The healing of a leper. _Galilee._ Matthew. Mark. CH. VIII. 2-4. CH. I. 40-45. 2 And behold, there came a 40 And there came a leper to leper and worshipped him, him, beseeching him, and saying, Lord, if thou wilt, kneeling down to him, and thou canst make me clean. saying unto him, If thou wilt, thou canst make me clean. 3 And Jesus put forth _his_ 41 And Jesus, moved with hand, and touched him, saying, compassion, put forth _his_ I will; be thou clean. And hand, and touched him, and immediately his leprosy was saith unto him, I will; be cleansed. thou clean. 42 And as soon as he had spoken, immediately the leprosy departed from him, and he was cleansed. 4 And Jesus saith unto him, 43 And he straitly charged See thou tell no man:(129) but him, and forthwith sent him go thy way, shew thyself to away; the priest, and offer the gift that Moses commanded, for a testimony unto them.(130) 44 And saith unto him, See thou say nothing to any man; but go thy way, shew thyself to the priest, and offer for thy cleansing those things which Moses commanded, for a testimony unto them. 45 But he went out, and began to publish it much, and to blaze abroad the matter, insomuch that Jesus could no more openly enter into the city, but was without in desert places: and they came to him from every quarter. Luke. CH. V. 12-16. 12 And it came to pass, when he was in a certain city, behold, a man full of leprosy: who, seeing Jesus, fell on _his_ face, and besought him, saying, Lord, if thou wilt, thou canst make me clean. 13 And he put forth his hand and touched him, saying, I will: Be thou clean. And immediately the leprosy departed from him. 14 And he charged him to tell no man: but go, and shew thyself to the priest, and offer for thy cleansing, according as Moses commanded, for a testimony unto them. 15 But so much the more went there a fame abroad of him: and great multitudes came together to hear and to be healed by him of their infirmities. 16 And he withdrew himself into the wilderness, and prayed. § 34. The healing of a paralytic. _Capernaum_. Matthew. Mark. CH. IX. 2-8. CH. II. 1-12. And again he entered into Capernaum, after some days; and it was noised that he was in the house. 2 And straightway many were gathered together, insomuch that there was no room to receive _them_, no, not so much as about the door: and he preached the word unto them. 2 And behold, they brought to 3 And they come unto him, him a man sick of the palsy, bringing one sick of the lying on a bed: and Jesus, palsy, which was borne of seeing their faith, said unto four. the sick of the palsy, Son, be of good cheer; thy sins be forgiven thee. 4 And when they could not come nigh unto him for the press, they uncovered the roof where he was: and when they had broken _it_ up, they let down the bed wherein the sick of the palsy lay. 5 When Jesus saw their faith, he said unto the sick of the palsy, Son, thy sins be forgiven thee. 3 And behold, certain of the 6 But there were certain of scribes said within the scribes sitting there, and themselves, This _man_ reasoning in their hearts, blasphemeth. 7 Why doth this man thus speak blasphemies? who can forgive sins but God only? 4 And Jesus, knowing their 8 And immediately, when Jesus thoughts, said, Wherefore perceived in his spirit, that think ye evil in your hearts? they so reasoned within themselves, he said unto them, Why reason ye these things in your hearts? 5 For whether is easier to 9 Whether is it easier to say say, _Thy_ sins be forgiven to the sick of the palsy, thee; or to say, Arise, and _Thy_ sins be forgiven thee; walk? or to say, Arise, and take up thy bed, and walk? 6 But that ye may know that 10 But that ye may know that the Son of man hath power on the Son of man hath power on earth to forgive sins, (then earth to forgive sins (he saith he to the sick of the saith to the sick of the palsy,) Arise, take up thy palsy,) bed, and go unto thy house. 7 And he arose, and departed 11 I say unto thee, Arise, and to his house. take up thy bed, and go thy way into thy house. 8 But when the multitude saw 12 And immediately he arose, _it_, they marvelled, and took up the bed, and went glorified God, which had given forth before them all; such power unto men. insomuch that they were all amazed, and glorified God, saying, We never saw it on this fashion. Luke. CH. V. 17-26. 17 And it came to pass on a certain day, as he was teaching, that there were Pharisees and doctors of the law sitting by, which were come out of every town of Galilee, and Judea, and Jerusalem: and the power of the Lord was _present_ to heal them. 18 And behold, men brought in a bed a man which was taken with a palsy: and they sought _means_ to bring him in, and to lay _him_ before him. 19 And when they could not find by what way they might bring him in, because of the multitude, they went upon the house-top, and let him down through the tiling with _his_ couch, into the midst before Jesus. 20 And when he saw their faith, he said unto him, Man, thy sins are forgiven thee. 21 And the scribes and the Pharisees began to reason, saying, Who is this which speaketh blasphemies? Who can forgive sins but God alone? 22 But when Jesus perceived their thoughts, he, answering, said unto them, What reason ye in your hearts? 23 Whether is easier, to say, Thy sins be forgiven thee; or to say, Rise up and walk? 24 But that ye may know that the Son of man hath power upon earth to forgive sins, (he said unto the sick of the palsy,) I say unto thee, Arise, and take up thy couch, and go unto thine house. 25 And immediately he arose up before them, and took up that whereon he lay, and departed to his own house, glorifying God. 26 And they were all amazed, and they glorified God, and were filled with fear, saying, We have seen strange things to-day. § 35. The call of Matthew. _Capernaum_. Matthew. Mark. CH. IX. 9. CH. II. 13, 14. 9 And as Jesus passed forth 13 And he went forth again by from thence, he saw a man the sea-side; and all the named Matthew, sitting at the multitude resorted unto him, receipt of custom: and he and he taught them. saith unto him, Follow me. And he arose, and followed him. 14 And as he passed by, he saw Levi(131) the _son_ of Alpheus, sitting at the receipt of custom, and said unto him, Follow me. And he arose, and followed him. Luke. CH. V. 27, 28. 27 And after these things he went forth, and saw a publican named Levi, sitting at the receipt of custom: and he said unto him, Follow me. 28 And he left all, rose up, and followed him. Part IV. Our Lord’s Second Passover, And The Subsequent Transactions Until The Third. TIME. _One year_. § 36. The pool of Bethesda; the healing of the infirm man; and our Lord’s subsequent discourse. _Jerusalem_. John. CH. V. 1-47. After this there was a feast of the Jews: and Jesus went up to Jerusalem. 2 Now there is at Jerusalem, by the sheep _market_, a pool, which is called in the Hebrew tongue, Bethesda,(132) having five porches. 3 In these lay a great multitude of impotent folk, of blind, halt, withered, waiting for the moving of the water. 4 For an angel went down at a certain season into the pool, and troubled the water: whosoever then first after the troubling of the water stepped in, was made whole of whatsoever disease he had. 5 And a certain man was there, which had an infirmity thirty and eight years. 6 When Jesus saw him lie, and knew that he had been now a long time _in that case_, he saith unto him, Wilt thou be made whole? 7 The impotent man answered him, Sir, I have no man, when the water is troubled, to put me into the pool: but while I am coming, another steppeth down before me. 8 Jesus saith unto him, Rise, take up thy bed, and walk. 9 And immediately the man was made whole, and took up his bed, and walked: and on the same day was the sabbath. 10 The Jews therefore said unto him that was cured, It is the sabbath-day; it is not lawful for thee to carry _thy_ bed. 11 He answered them, He that made me whole, the same said unto me, Take up thy bed, and walk. 12 Then asked they him, What man is that which said unto thee, Take up thy bed, and walk? 13 And he that was healed wist not who it was: for Jesus had conveyed himself away, a multitude being in _that_ place. 14 Afterward Jesus findeth him in the temple, and said unto him, Behold, thou art made whole; sin no more, lest a worse thing come unto thee. 15 The man departed, and told the Jews that it was Jesus which had made him whole. 16 And therefore did the Jews persecute Jesus, and sought to slay him, because he had done things things on the sabbath-day. 17 But Jesus answered them, My Father worketh hitherto, and I work. 18 Therefore the Jews sought the more to kill him, because he not only had broken the sabbath, but said also, hat God was his Father, making himself equal with God. 19 Then answered Jesus, and said unto them, Verily, verily, I say unto you, The Son can do nothing of himself, but what he seeth the Father do: for what things soever he doeth, these also doeth the Son likewise. 20 For the Father loveth the Son, and sheweth him all things that himself doeth: and he will shew him greater works than these, that ye may marvel. 21 For as the Father raiseth up the dead, and quickeneth _them_; even so the Son quickeneth whom he will. 22 For the Father judgeth no man; but hath committed all judgment unto the Son: 23 That all _men_ should honour the Son, even as they honour the Father. He that honoureth not the Son, honoureth not the Father which has sent him. 24 Verily, verily, I say unto you, He that heareth my word, and believeth on him that sent me, hath everlasting life, and shall not come into condemnation; but is passed from death into life. 25 Verily, verily, I say unto you, The hour is coming, and now is, when the dead shall hear the voice of the Son of God: and they that hear shall live. 26 For as the Father hath life in himself, so hath he given to the Son to have life in himself; 27 And hath given him authority to execute judgment also, because he is the Son of man. 28 Marvel not at this: for the hour is coming, in the which all that are in the graves shall hear his voice, 29 And shall come forth; they that have done good, unto the resurrection of life; and they that have done evil, unto the resurrection of damnation. 30 I can of mine own self do nothing: as I hear, I judge: and my judgment is just; because I seek not mine own will, but the will of the Father which hath sent me. 31 If I bear witness of myself, my witness is not true. 32 There is another that beareth witness of me, and I know that the witness which he witnesseth of me is true. 33 Ye sent unto John, and he bare witness unto the truth. 34 But I receive not testimony from man: but these things I say, that ye might be saved. 35 He was a burning and a shining light: and ye were willing for a season to rejoice in his light. 36. But I have greater witness than that of John: for the works which the Father hath given me to finish, the same works that I do, bear witness of me, that the Father hath sent me. 37 And the Father himself which hath sent me, hath borne witness of me. Ye have neither heard his voice(133) at any time, nor seen his shape. 38 And ye have not his word abiding in you: for whom he hath sent, him ye believe not. 39 Search the scriptures; for in them ye think ye have eternal life: And they are they which testify of me. 40 And ye will not come to me, that ye might have life. 41 I receive not honour from men. 42 But I know you, that ye have not the love of God in you. 43 I am come in my Father’s name, and ye receive me not: if another shall come in his own name, him ye will receive. 44 How can ye believe, which receive honour one of another, and seek not the honour that _cometh_ from God only? 45 Do not think that I will accuse you to the Father: there is _one_ that accuseth you, _even Moses_, in whom ye trust. 46 For had ye believed Moses, ye would have believed me: for he wrote of me. 47 But if ye believe not his writings, how shall ye believe my words? § 37. The disciples pluck ears of grain on the Sabbath. _On the way to Galilee?_ Matthew. Mark. CH. XII. 1-8. CH. II. 23-28. At that time Jesus went on the 23 And it came to pass, that sabbath-day through the corn, he went through the and his disciples were a corn-fields on the hungered, and began to pluck sabbath-day; and his disciples the ears of corn, and to began, as they went, to pluck eat.(134) the ears of Corn. 2 But when the Pharisees saw 24 And the Pharisees said unto _it_, they said unto him, him, Behold, why do they on Behold, thy disciples do that the sabbath-day that which is which is not lawful to do upon not lawful? the sabbath-day.(135) 3 But he said unto them, Have 25 And he said unto them, Have ye not read what David did ye never read what David when he was a hungered, and did,(136) when he had need, they that were with him; and was a hungered, he and they that were with him? 4 How he entered into the 26 How he went into the house house of God, and did eat the of God, in the days of shew-bread, which was not Abiathar(137) the high priest, lawful for him to eat, neither and did eat the shew-bread, for them which were with him, which is not lawful to eat, but only for the priests? but for the priests, and gave also to them which were with him? 5 Or have ye not read in the law how that on the sabbath-days the priests in the temple profane the sabbath, and are blameless?(138) 6 But I say unto you, that in this place is _one_ greater than the temple. 7 But if ye had known what 27 And he said unto them, The _this_ meaneth,(139) I will sabbath was made for man, and have mercy, and not sacrifice, not man for the sabbath: ye would not have condemned the guiltless. 8 For the Son of man is Lord 28 Therefore, the Son of man even of the sabbath-day. is Lord also of the sabbath. Luke. CH. VI. 1-5. And it came to pass on the second sabbath after the first, that he went through the corn-fields; and his disciples plucked the ears of corn, and did eat, rubbing _them_ in _their_ hands. 2 And certain of the Pharisees said unto them, Why do ye that which is not lawful to do on the sabbath-days? 3 And Jesus, answering them, said, Have ye not read so much as this, what David did, when himself was a hungered, and they which were with him; 4 How he went into the house of God, and did take and eat the shewbread, and gave also to them that were with him, which it is not lawful to eat but for the priests alone? 5 And he said unto them, That the Son of man is Lord also of the sabbath. § 38. The healing of the withered hand on the Sabbath. _Galilee_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XII. 9-14. CH. III. 1-6. 9 And when he was departed And he entered again into the thence, he went into their synagogue; and there was a man synagogue. there which had a withered hand. 10 And behold, there was a man 2 And they watched him, which had _his_ hand withered. whether he would heal him on And they asked him, saying, Is the sabbath-day; that they it lawful to heal on the might accuse him. sabbath-days? that they might accuse him. 11 And he said unto them, What 3 And he saith unto the man man shall there be among you, which had the withered hand, that shall have one sheep, and Stand forth. if it fall into a pit on the sabbath-day, will he not lay hold of it, and lift _it_ out? 4 And he saith unto them, Is it lawful to do good on the sabbath-days, or to do evil? to save life, or to kill? But they held their peace. 12 How much then is a man 5 And when he had looked round better than a sheep? wherefore about on them with anger, it is lawful to do well on the being grieved for the hardness sabbath-days. of their hearts, he saith unto the man, Stretch forth thy hand. And he stretched it out: and his hand was restored whole as the other. 13 Then saith he to the man, 6 And the Pharisees went Stretch forth thy hand. And he forth, and straightway took stretched _it_ forth; and _it_ counsel with the Herodians was restored whole, like as against him, how they might the other. destroy him. Luke. CH. VI. 6-11. 6 And it came to pass also on another sabbath, that he entered into the synagogue, and taught: and there was a man whose right hand was withered: 7 And the scribes and Pharisees watched him, whether he would heal on the sabbath-day; that they might find an accusation against him. 8 But he knew their thoughts, and said to the man which had the withered hand, Rise up, and stand forth in the midst. And he arose, and stood forth. 9 Then said Jesus unto them, I will ask you one thing; Is it lawful on the sabbath-days to do good, or to do evil? to save life, or to destroy _it_? 10 And looking round about upon them all, he said unto the man, Stretch forth thy hand. And he did so: and his hand was restored whole as the other. 11 And they were filled with madness; and communed one with another what they might do to Jesus. § 39. Jesus arrives at the sea of Tiberias, and is followed by multitudes. _Lake of Galilee_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XII. 15-21. CH. III. 7-12. 15 But when Jesus knew _it_, 7 But Jesus withdrew himself he withdrew himself from with his disciples to the sea: thence: and great multitudes and a great multitude from followed him, and he healed Galilee followed him, and from them all. Judea, 16 And charged them that they 8 And from Jerusalem, and from should not make him known: Idumea, and _from_ beyond Jordan; and they about Tyre and Sidon, a great multitude, when they had heard what great things he did, came unto him. 17 That it might be fulfilled which was spoken by Esaias the prophet,(140) saying, 18 Behold my servant, whom I 9 And he spake to his have chosen; my beloved, in disciples, that a small ship whom my soul is well pleased: should wait on him, because of I will put my Spirit upon him, the multitude, lest they and he shall shew judgment to should throng him. the Gentiles. 19 He shall not strive, nor 10 For he had healed many; cry; neither shall any man insomuch that they pressed hear his voice in the streets. upon him for to touch him, as many as had plagues. 20 A bruised reed shall he not 11 And unclean spirits, when break, and smoking flax,(141) they saw him, fell down before shall he not quench, till he him, and cried, saying, Thou send forth judgment unto art the Son of God. victory. 21 And in his name shall the 12 And he straightly charged Gentiles trust. them, that they should not make him known. § 40. Jesus withdraws to the Mountain and chooses the Twelve; multitudes follow him. _Near Capernaum_. Matthew. Mark. CH. X. 2-4. CH. III. 13-19. 13 And he goeth up into a mountain, and called _unto him_ whom he would: and they came unto him. 14 And he ordained twelve, that they should be with him, and that he might send them forth to preach. 15 And to have power to heal sicknesses, and to cast out devils. 2 Now the names of the twelve 16 And Simon he surnamed apostles are these; The first, Peter. Simon, who is called Peter, and Andrew his brother; James _the son_ of Zebedee, and John his brother; 17 And James the _son_ of Zebedee, and John the brother of James, (and he surnamed them Boanerges, which is, The sons of thunder,) 3 Philip, and Bartholomew; 18 And Andrew, and Philip, and Thomas, and Matthew the Bartholomew, and James the publican;(142) James _the son_ _son_ of Alpheus, and of Alpheus, and Lebbeus,(143) Thaddeus, and Simon the whose surname was Thaddeus; Canaanite, 4 Simon the Canaanite, and 19 And Judas Iscariot, which Judas Iscariot, who also also betrayed him: and they betrayed him. went into a house. Luke. CH. VI. 12-19. 12 And it came to pass in those days, that he went out into a mountain to pray, and continued all night in prayer to God. 13 And when it was day, he called _unto him_ his disciples: and of them he chose twelve, whom also he named Apostles; 14 Simon (whom he also named Peter) and Andrew his brother, James and John, Philip and Bartholomew, 15 Matthew and Thomas, James the _son_ of Alpheus, and Simon called Zelotes, 16 And Judas _the brother_ of James, and Judas Iscariot, which also was the traitor. 17 And he came down with them, and stood in the plain; and the company of his disciples, and a great multitude of people out of all Judea and Jerusalem, and from the sea-coast of Tyre and Sidon, which came to hear him, and to be healed of their diseases; 18 And they that were vexed with unclean spirits: and they were healed. 19 And the whole multitude sought to touch him; for there went virtue out of him, and healed _them_ all. § 41. The Sermon on the Mount. _Near Capernaum_. Matthew. Luke. CH. V. VI. VII. VIII. 1. CH. VI. 20-49. And seeing the multitudes, he went up into a mountain: and when he was set, his disciples came unto him.(144) 2 And he opened his mouth, and 20 And he lifted up his eyes taught them, saying, on his disciples, and said, Blessed _be ye_ poor; for yours is the kingdom of God. 3 Blessed _are_ the poor in 21 Blessed _are ye_ that spirit: for theirs is the hunger now: for ye shall be kingdom of heaven. filled. Blessed _are ye_ that weep now: for ye shall laugh. 4 Blessed _are_ they that 22 Blessed are ye when men mourn: for they shall be shall hate you, and when they comforted. shall separate you _from their company_, and shall reproach _you_, and cast out your name as evil, for the Son of man’s sake. 5 Blessed _are_ the meek: for they shall inherit the earth. 6 Blessed _are_ they which do hunger and thirst after righteousness: for they shall be filled. 7 Blessed _are_ the merciful: for they shall obtain mercy. 8 Blessed _are_ the pure in heart: for they shall see God. 9 Blessed _are_ the peace-makers: for they shall be called the children of God. 10 Blessed _are_ they which are persecuted for righteousness’ sake: for theirs is the kingdom of heaven. 11 Blessed _are_ ye when _men_ shall revile you, and persecute _you_, and shall say all manner of evil against you falsely, for my sake. 12 Rejoice, and be exceeding 23 Rejoice ye in that day, and glad: for great _is_ your leap for joy: for behold, your reward in heaven: for so reward _is_ great in heaven: persecuted they the prophets for in the like manner did which were before you. their fathers unto the prophets. 24 But wo unto you that are rich! for ye have received your consolation. 25 Wo unto you that are full! for ye shall hunger. Wo unto you that laugh now! for ye shall mourn and weep. 26 Wo unto you, when all men shall speak well of you! for so did their fathers to the false prophets. 13 Ye are the salt of the earth: but if the salt have lost his savour, wherewith shall it be salted? it is thenceforth good for nothing, but to be cast out, and to be trodden under foot of men. 14 Ye are the light of the world. A city that is set on a hill cannot be hid. 15 Neither do men light a candle, and put it under a bushel, but on a candlestick: and it giveth light unto all that are in the house. 16 let your light so shine before men, that they may see your good works, and glorify your Father which is in heaven. 17 Think not that I am come to destroy the law, or the prophets: I am not come to destroy, but to fulfil. 18 For verily, I say unto you, Till heaven and earth pass, one jot or one tittle shall in no wise pass from the law, till all be fulfilled. 19 Whosoever therefore shall break one of these least commandments, and shall teach men so, he shall be called the least in the kingdom of heaven: but whosoever shall do, and teach _them_, the same shall be called great in the kingdom of heaven. 20 For I say unto you, That except your righteousness shall exceed _the righteousness_ of the scribes and Pharisees, ye shall in no case enter into the kingdom of heaven. 21 Ye have heard that it was said by them of old time, Thou shalt not kill; and whosoever shall kill, shall be in danger of the judgment: 22 But I say unto you, That whosoever is angry with his brother, without a cause, shall be in danger of the judgment: and whosoever shall say to his brother, Raca, shall be in danger of the council: but whosoever shall say, Thou fool, shall be in danger of hell-fire. 23 Therefore, if thou bring thy gift to the altar, and there rememberest that thy brother hath aught against thee, 24 Leave there thy gift before the altar, and go thy way, first be reconciled to thy brother, and then come and offer thy gift. 25 Agree with thine adversary quickly, while thou art in the way with him; lest at any time the adversary deliver thee to the judge, and the judge deliver thee to the officer, and thou be cast into prison. 26 Verily, I say unto thee, Thou shall by no means come out thence, till thou hast paid the uttermost farthing. 27 Ye have heard that it was said by them of old time, Thou shalt not commit adultery: 28 But I say unto you, That whosoever looketh on a woman to lust after her, hath committed adultery with her already in his heart. 29 And if thy right eye offend thee, pluck it out, and cast _it_ from thee: for it is profitable for thee that one of thy members should perish, and not _that_ thy whole body should be cast into hell. 30 And if thy right hand offend thee, cut it off, and cast _it_ from thee: for it is profitable for thee that one of thy members should perish, and not _that_ thy whole body should be cast into hell. 31 It hath been said, Whosoever shall put away his wife, let him give her a writing of divorcement: 32 But I say unto you, That whosoever shall put away his wife, saving for the cause of fornication, causeth her to commit adultery: and whosoever shall marry her that is divorced, committeth adultery. 33 Again, ye have heard that it hath been said by them of old time, Thou shalt not forswear thyself, but shalt perform unto the Lord thine oaths: 34 But I say unto you, Swear not at all: neither by heaven; for it is God’s throne: 35 Nor by the earth; for it is his footstool: neither by Jerusalem; for it is the city of the great King: 36 Neither shalt thou swear by thy head; because thou canst not make one hair white or black. 37 But let your communication be, Yea, yea; Nay, nay: for whatsoever _is_ more than these cometh of evil. 38 Ye have heard that it hath been said, An eye for an eye, and a tooth for a tooth. 39 But I say unto you, That ye resist not evil: but whosoever shall smite thee on thy right cheek, turn to him the other also. 40 And if any man will sue thee at the law, and take away thy coat, let him have _thy_ cloak also. 41 And whosoever shall compel thee(145) to go a mile, go with him twain. 42 Give to him that asketh thee, and from him that would borrow of thee, turn not thou away. 43 Ye have heard that it hath been said, Thou shalt love thy neighbour, and hate thine enemy: 44 But I say unto you, Love 27 But I say unto you which your enemies, bless them that hear, Love your enemies, do curse you, do good to them good to them which hate you, that hate you, and pray for them which despitefully use you, and persecute you; 28 Bless them that curse you, and pray for them which despitefully use you. 29 And unto him that smiteth thee on the _one cheek_, offer also the other; and him that taketh away thy cloak, forbid not _to take thy_ coat also. 30 Give to every man that asketh of thee; and of him that taketh away thy goods ask _them_ not again. 45 That ye may be the children 31 And as ye would that men of your Father which is in should do to you, do ye also heaven: for he maketh his sun to them likewise. to rise on the evil and on the good, and sendeth rain on the just and on the unjust. 46 For if ye love them which 32 For if ye love them which love you, what reward have ye? love you, what thank have ye? do not even the publicans the for sinners also love those same? that love them. 47 And if ye salute your 33 And if ye do good to them brethren only, what do ye more which do good to you, what _than others_? do not even the thank have ye? for sinners publicans so? also do even the same. 34 And if ye lend _to them_ of whom ye hope to receive, what thank have ye? for sinners also lend to sinners, to receive as much again. 35 But love ye your enemies, and do good, and lend, hoping for nothing again; and your reward shall be great, and ye shall be the children of the Highest: for he is kind unto the unthankful and _to_ the evil. 36 Be ye therefore merciful, as your Father also is merciful. 48 Be ye therefore perfect, even as your Father which is in heaven is perfect. CH. VI. Take heed that ye do not your alms before men, to be seen of them: otherwise ye have no reward of your Father which is in heaven. 2 Therefore, when thou doest _thine_ alms, do not sound a trumpet before thee, as the hypocrites do, in the synagogues, and in the streets, that they may have glory of men. Verily, I say unto you, They have their reward. 3 But when thou doest alms, let not thy left hand know what thy right hand doeth; 4 That thine alms may be in secret: and thy Father which seeth in secret, himself shall reward thee openly. 5 And when thou prayest, thou shalt not be as the hypocrites _are_; for they love to pray standing in the synagogues, and in the corners of the streets, that they may be seen of men. Verily, I say unto you, They have their reward. 6 But thou, when thou prayest, enter into thy closet, and when thou hast shut thy door, pray to thy Father which is in secret; and thy Father, which seeth in secret, shall reward thee openly. 7 But when ye pray, use not vain repetitions, as the heathen do: for they think that they shall be heard for their much speaking. 8 Be not yet therefore like unto them: for your Father knoweth what things ye have need of before ye ask him. 9 After this manner therefore pray ye: Our Father which art in heaven, Hallowed be thy name. 10 Thy kingdom come. Thy will be done in earth as _it is_ in heaven. 11 Give us this day our daily bread. 12 And forgive us our debts, as we forgive our debtors. 13 And lead us not into temptation, but deliver us from evil. For thine is the kingdom, and the power, and the glory, for ever. Amen. 14 For, if ye forgive men their trespasses, your heavenly Father will also forgive you: 15 But, if ye forgive not men their trespasses, neither will your Father forgive your trespasses. 16 Moreover, when ye fast, be not as the hypocrites, of a sad countenance: for they disfigure their faces, that they may appear unto men to fast. Verily, I say unto you, They have their reward. 17 But thou, when thou fastest, anoint thy head, and wash thy face; 18 That thou appear not unto men to fast, but unto thy Father, which is in secret: and thy Father, which seeth in secret, shall reward thee openly. 19 Lay not up for yourselves treasures upon earth, where moth and rust doth corrupt, and where thieves break through and steal: 20 But lay up for yourselves treasures in heaven, where neither moth nor rust doth corrupt, and where thieves do not break through nor steal. 21 For where your treasure is, there will your heart be also. 22 The light of the body is the eye: if therefore thine eye be single, thy whole body shall be full of light. 23 But if thine eye be evil, thy whole body shall be full of darkness. If therefore the light that is in thee be darkness, how great _is_ that darkness! 24 No man can serve two masters: for either he will hate the one, and love the other; or else he will hold to the one, and despise the other. Ye cannot serve God and mammon. 25 Therefore I say unto you, Take no thought for your life, what ye shall eat, or what ye shall drink; nor yet for your body, what ye shall put on. Is not the life more than meat, and the body than raiment? 26 Behold the fowls of the air: for they sow not, neither do they reap, nor gather into barns; yet your heavenly Father feedeth them. Are ye not much better than they? 27 Which of you by taking thought can add one cubit unto his stature? 28 And why take ye thought for raiment? Consider the lilies of the field how they grow; they toil not, neither do they spin; 29 And yet I say unto you, That even Solomon, in all his glory, was not arrayed like one of these. 30 Wherefore, if God so clothe the grass of the field, which to-day is, and to-morrow is cast into the oven, _shall he_ not much more _clothe_ you, O ye of little faith? 31 Therefore take no thought, saying, What shall we eat? or, what shall we drink? or, wherewithal shall we be clothed? 32 (For after all these things do the Gentiles seek) for your heavenly Father knoweth that ye have need of all these things. 33 But seek ye first the kingdom of God, and his righteousness, and all these things shall be added unto you. 34 Take therefore no thought for the morrow: for the morrow shall take thought for the things of itself. Sufficient unto the day _is_ the evil thereof. CH. VII. CH. VI. 20-49. Judge not, that ye be not 37 Judge not, and ye shall not judged. be judged: condemn not, and ye shall not be condemned: forgive, and ye shall be forgiven: 2 For with what judgment ye judge, ye shall be judged: and with what measure ye mete, it shall be measured to you again. 38 Give, and it shall be given unto you; good measure, pressed down, and shaken together, and running over, shall men give into your bosom. For with the same measure that ye mete withal, it shall be measured to you again. 39 And he spake a parable unto them; Can the blind lead the blind? shall they not both fall into the ditch? 40 The disciple is not above his master: but every one that is perfect, shall be as his master. 3 And why beholdest thou the 41 And why beholdest thou the mote that is in thy brother’s mote that is in thy brother’s eye, but considerest not the eye, but perceivest not the beam that is in thine own eye? beam that is in thine own eye? 4 Or how wilt thou say to thy 42 Either how canst thou say brother, Let me pull out the to thy brother, Brother, let mote out of thine eye; and me pull out the mote that is behold a beam _is_ in thine in thine eye, when thou own eye? thyself beholdest not the beam that is in thine own eye? Thou hypocrite, cast out first the beam out of thine own eye, and then shalt thou see clearly to pull out the mote that is in thy brother’s eye. 5 Thou hypocrite, first cast out the beam out of thine own eye; and then shalt thou see clearly to cast out the mote out of thy brother’s eye. 6 Give not that which is holy unto the dogs, neither cast ye your pearls before swine, lest they trample them under their feet, and turn again and rend you. 7 Ask, and it shall be given you; seek, and ye shall find; knock, and it shall be opened unto you: 8 For every one that asketh receiveth; and he that seeketh, findeth; and to him that knocketh, it shall be opened. 9 Or what man is there of you, whom if his son ask bread, will he give him a stone? 10 Or if he ask a fish, will he give him a serpent? 11 If ye then being evil know how to give good gifts unto your children, how much more shall your Father which is in heaven give good things to them that ask him? 12 Therefore all things whatsoever ye would that men should do to you, do ye even so to them: for this is the law and the prophets. 13 Enter ye in at the strait gate; for wide _is_ the gate, and broad _is_ the way, that leadeth to destruction, and many there be which go in thereat: 14 Because, strait _is_ the gate, and narrow _is_ the way, which leadeth unto life, and few there be that find it. 15 Beware of false prophets, which come to you in sheep’s clothing, but inwardly they are ravening wolves. 16 Ye shall know them by their fruits: Do men gather grapes of thorns, or figs of thistles? 17 Even so every good tree 43 For a good tree bringeth bringeth forth good fruit; but not forth corrupt fruit; a corrupt tree bringeth forth neither doth a corrupt tree evil fruit. bring forth good fruit. 18 A good tree cannot bring 44 For every tree is known by forth evil fruit, neither can his own fruit: for of thorns a corrupt tree bring forth men do not gather figs, nor of good fruit. a bramble-bush gather they grapes. 19 Every tree that bringeth not forth good fruit is hewn down, and cast into the fire. 20 Wherefore, by their fruits ye shall know them. 45 A good man out of the good treasure of his heart, bringeth forth that which is good; and an evil man, out of the evil treasure of his heart, bringeth forth that which is evil: for of the abundance of the heart his mouth speaketh. 21 Not every one that saith 46 And why call ye me Lord, unto me, Lord, Lord, shall Lord, and do not the things enter into the kingdom of which I say? heaven; but he that doeth the will of my father which is in heaven. 22 Many will say to me in that 47 Whosoever cometh to me, and day, Lord, Lord, have we not heareth my sayings, and doeth prophesied in thy name? and in them, I will shew you to whom thy name have cast out devils? he is like. and in thy name done many wonderful works? 23 And then will I profess unto them, I never knew you: depart from me, ye that work iniquity. 24 Therefore, whosoever 48 He is like a man which heareth these sayings of mine, built a house, and digged and doeth them, I will liken deep, and laid the foundation him unto a wise man, which on a rock: and when the flood built his house upon a rock: arose, the stream beat vehemently upon that house, and could not shake it: for it was founded upon a rock. 25 And the rain descended, and the floods came, and the winds blew, and beat upon that house, and it fell not: for it was founded upon a rock: 26 And every one that heareth 49 But he that heareth and these sayings of mine, and doeth not, is like a man that doeth them not, shall be without a foundation built a likened unto a foolish man, house upon the earth, against which built his house upon the which the stream did beat sand: vehemently, and immediately it fell, and the ruin of that house was great. 27 And the rain descended, and the floods came, and the winds blew, and beat upon that house; and it fell: and great was the fall of it. 28 And it came to pass when Jesus had ended these sayings, the people were astonished at his doctrine. 29 For he taught them as _one_ having authority, and not as the scribes. CH. VIII. When he was come down from the mountain, great multitudes followed him. § 42. The healing of the centurion’s servant. _Capernaum_. Matthew. Luke. CH. VIII. 5-13. CH. VII. 1-10. 5 And when Jesus was entered Now, when he had ended all his into Capernaum, there came sayings in the audience of the unto him(146) a centurion, people, he entered into beseeching him, Capernaum, 6 And saying, Lord, my servant 2 And a certain centurion’s lieth at home sick of the servant, who was dear unto palsy, grievously tormented. him, was sick, and ready to die. 3 And when he heard of Jesus, he sent unto him the elders of the Jews, beseeching him that he would come and heal his servant. 7 And Jesus saith unto him, I 4 And when they came to Jesus, will come and heal him. they besought him instantly, saying, That he was worthy for whom he should do this: 5 For he loveth our nation, and he hath built us a synagogue. 8 The centurion answered and 6 Then Jesus went with them. said, Lord, I am not worthy And when he was now not far that thou shouldest come under from the house, the centurion my roof: but speak the word sent friends to him, saying only, and my servant shall be unto him, Lord, trouble not healed. thyself; for I am not worthy that thou shouldest enter under my roof; 9 For I am a man under 8 For I also am a man set authority, having soldiers under authority, having under under me: and I say to this me soldiers, and I say unto man, Go, and he goeth; and to one, Go, and he goeth; and to another, Come, and he cometh; another, Come, and he cometh; and to my servant, Do this, and to my servant, Do this, and he doeth _it_. and he doeth _it_. 10 When Jesus heard _it_, he 9 When Jesus heard these marvelled, and said to them things, he marvelled at him, that followed, Verily, I say and turned him about and said unto you, I have not found so unto the people that followed great faith, no, not in him, I say unto you, I have Israel. not found so great faith, no, not in Israel. 11 And I say unto you, That 7 Wherefore neither thought I many shall come from the east myself worthy to come unto and west, and shall sit down thee; but say in a word, and with Abraham, and Isaac, and my servant shall be healed. Jacob, in the kingdom of heaven: 12 But the children of the kingdom shall be cast out into outer darkness: there shall be weeping and gnashing of teeth. 13 And Jesus said unto the 10 And they that were sent, centurion, Go thy way; and as returning to the house, found thou hast believed, _so_ be it the servant whole that had done unto thee. And his been sick. servant was healed in the self-same hour. § 43. The raising of the widow’s son. _Nain_. Luke. CH. VII. 11-17. 11 And it came to pass the day after, that he went into a city called Nain: and many of his disciples went with him, and much people. 12 Now, when he came nigh to the gate of the city, behold, there was a dead man carried out, the only son of his mother, and she was a widow: and much people of the city was with her. 13 And when the Lord saw her, he had compassion on her, and said unto her, Weep not. 14 And he came and touched the bier: and they that bare _him_ stood still. And he said, Young man, I say unto thee, Arise. 15 And he that was dead sat up, and began to speak: and he delivered him to his mother. 16 And there came a fear on all: and they glorified God, saying, That a great prophet is risen up among us; and, That God hath visited his people. 17 And this rumour of him went forth throughout all Judea, and throughout all the region round about. § 44. John the Baptist, in prison, sends disciples to Jesus. _Galilee. Capernaum?_ Matthew. Luke CH. XI. 2-19. 2 Now when John had heard in 18 And the disciples of John the prison the works of shewed him of all these Christ, he sent two of his things. disciples, 3 And said unto him. Art thou 19 And John calling _unto him_ he that should come,(147) or two of his disciples, sent do we look for another? _them_ to Jesus, saying, Art thou he that should come? or look we for another? 20 When the men were come unto him, they said, John Baptist hath sent us unto thee, saying, Art thou he that should come? or look we for another? 21 And in that same hour he cured many of _their_ infirmities, and plagues, and of evil spirits; and unto many _that were_ blind he gave sight. 4 Jesus answered and said unto 22 Then Jesus answering, said them, Go and shew John again unto them, Go your way, and those things which ye do hear tell John what things ye have and see: seen and heard; how that the blind see, the lame walk, the lepers are cleansed, the deaf hear, the dead are raised, to the poor the gospel is preached. 5 The blind receive their 23 And blessed is _he_, sight, and the lame walk, the whosoever shall not be lepers are cleansed, and the offended in me. deaf hear, the dead are raised up, and the poor have the gospel preached to them.(148) 6 And blessed is _he_ whosoever shall not be offended in me. 7 And as they departed, Jesus 24 And when the messengers of began to say unto the John were departed, he began multitudes concerning John, to speak unto the people What went ye out into the concerning John, What went ye wilderness to see? A reed out into the wilderness for to shaken with the wind? see? A reed shaken with the wind? 8 But what went ye out for to 25 But what went ye out for to see? A man clothed in soft see? A man clothed in soft raiment? Behold, they that raiment? Behold, they which wear soft _clothing_ are in are gorgeously apparelled, and kings’ houses. live delicately, are in kings’ courts. 9 But what went ye out for to 26 But what went ye out for to see? A prophet? yea, I say see? A prophet? Yea, I say unto you, and more than a unto you, and much more than a prophet. prophet. 10 For this is he of whom it 27 This is _he_, of whom it is is written,(149) Behold, I written, Behold, I send my send my messenger before thy messenger before thy face, face, which shall prepare thy which shall prepare thy way way before thee. before thee. 11 Verily, I say unto you, 28 For I say unto you, Among Among them that are born of those that are born of women, women, there hath not risen a there is not a greater prophet greater than John the Baptist: than John the Baptist: but he notwithstanding, he that is that is least in the kingdom least in the kingdom of of God, is greater than he. heaven, is greater than he. 29 And all the people that heard him, and the publicans, justified God, being baptized with the baptism of John. 30 But the Pharisees and lawyers rejected the council of God against themselves, being not baptized of him. 12 And from the days of John the Baptist, until now, the kingdom of heaven suffereth violence, and the violent take it by force. 13 For all the prophets and the law prophesied until John. 14 And if ye will receive _it_, this is Elias which was for to come.(150) 15 He that hath ears to hear, let him hear. 16 But whereunto shall I liken 31 And the Lord said, this generation? It is like Whereunto then shall I liken unto children sitting in the the men of this generation? markets, and calling unto and to what are they like? their fellows. 32 They are like unto children sitting in the market-place, and calling one to another, and saying, We have piped unto you, and ye have not danced; we have mourned to you, and ye have not wept. 17 And saying, We have piped unto you, and ye have not danced; we have mourned unto you, and ye have not lamented. 18 For John came neither 33 For John the Baptist came eating nor drinking, and they neither eating bread, nor say, He hath a devil. drinking wine; and ye say, He hath a devil. 19 The Son of man came eating 34 The Son of man is come and drinking, and they say, eating and drinking; and ye Behold a man gluttonous, and a say, Behold a gluttonous man, wine-bibber, a friend of and a wine-bibber, a friend of publicans and sinners. But publicans and sinners! Wisdom is justified of her children. 35 But Wisdom is justified of all her children. § 45. Reflections of Jesus on appealing to his mighty works. _Capernaum_. Matthew. CH. XI. 20-30. 20 Then began he to upbraid the cities wherein most of his mighty works were done, because they repented not. 21 Wo unto thee, Chorazin! wo unto thee, Bethsaida! for if the mighty works which were done in you had been done in Tyre and Sidon, they would have repented long ago in sackcloth and ashes. 22 But I say unto you, It shall be more tolerable for Tyre and Sidon at the day of judgment, than for you. 23 And thou, Capernaum, which art exalted unto heaven, shalt be brought down to hell: for if the mighty works which have been done in thee, had been done in Sodom, it would have remained until this day. 24 But I say unto you, That it shall be more tolerable for the land of Sodom, in the day of judgment, than for thee. 25 At that time Jesus answered and said, I thank thee, O Father, Lord of heaven and earth, because thou hast hid these things from the wise and prudent, and hast revealed them unto babes. 26 Even so, Father, for so it seemed good in thy sight. 27 All things are delivered unto me of my Father; and no man knoweth the Son, but the Father; neither knoweth any man the Father, save the Son, and _he to_ whomsoever the Son will reveal _him_. 26 Come unto me, all _ye_ that labour, and are heavy laden, and I will give you rest. 29 Take my yoke upon you, and learn of me: for I am meek and lowly in heart; and ye shall find rest unto your souls. 30 For my yoke _is_ easy, and my burden is light. § 46. While sitting at meat with a Pharisee, Jesus is anointed by a woman who had been a sinner. _Capernaum_? Luke. CH. VII. 36-50. 36 And one of the Pharisees desired him that he would eat with him. And he went into the Pharisee’s house, and sat down to meat. 37 And behold, a woman in the city, which was a sinner, when she knew that _Jesus_ sat at meat in the Pharisee’s house, brought an alabaster-box of ointment, 38 And stood at his feet behind _him_ weeping, and began to wash his feet with tears, and did wipe _them_ with the hairs of her head, and kissed his feet, and anointed _them_ with the ointment. 39 Now, when the Pharisee which had bidden him, saw _it_, he spake within himself, saying, This man, if he were a prophet, would have known who, and what manner of woman _this is_ that toucheth him: for she is a sinner. 40 And Jesus answering, said unto him, Simon, I have somewhat to say unto thee. And he saith, Master, say on. 41 There was a certain creditor, which had two debtors: the one owed five hundred pence, and the other fifty. 42 And when they had nothing to pay, he frankly forgave them both. Tell me, therefore, which of them will love him most? 43 Simon answered and said, I suppose that _he_, to whom he forgave most. And he said unto him, Thou hast rightly judged. 44 And he turned to the woman, and said unto Simon, Seest thou this woman? I entered into thine house, thou gavest me no water for my feet: but she hath washed my feet with tears, and wiped _them_ with the hairs of her head. 45 Thou gavest me no kiss: but this woman, since the time I came in, hath not ceased to kiss my feet. 46 My head with oil thou didst not anoint: but this woman hath anointed my feet with ointment. 47 Wherefore I say unto thee, Her sins which are many, are forgiven; for she loved much: but to whom little is forgiven, _the same_ loveth little. 48 And he said unto her, Thy sins are forgiven. 49 And they that sat at meat with him, began to say within themselves, Who is this that forgiveth sins also? 50 And he said to the woman, Thy faith hath saved thee; go in peace. § 47. Jesus, with the Twelve, makes a second circuit in Galilee. Luke. CH. VIII. 1-3. And it came to pass afterward, that he went throughout every city and village, preaching and shewing the glad tidings of the kingdom of God: and the twelve were with him. 2 And certain women, which had been healed of evil spirits and infirmities, Mary called Magdalene, out of whom went seven devils, 3 And Joanna the wife of Chuza, Herod’s steward, and Susanna, and many others, which ministered unto him of their substance. § 48. The healing of a demoniac. The Scribes and Pharisees blaspheme. _Galilee_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XII. 22-37. CH. III. 19-30. 19 —— and they went into a house. 20 And the multitude cometh together again, so that they could not so much as eat bread. 21 And when his friends heard _of it_, they went out to lay hold on him: for they said, He is beside himself. 22 Then was brought unto him one possessed with a devil, blind and dumb; and he healed him, insomuch that the blind and dumb,(151) both spake and saw. 23 And all the people were amazed(152) and said, Is not this the son of David? 24 But when the Pharisees 22 And the scribes which came heard _it_ they said, This down from Jerusalem, said, He _fellow_ doth not cast out hath Beelzebub, and by the devils, but by Beelzebub the prince of the devils casteth prince of the devils. he out devils. 25 And Jesus knew their 23 And he called them _unto thoughts, and said unto them, him_, and said unto them in Every kingdom divided against parables, How can Satan cast itself, is brought to out Satan? desolation; and every city or house divided against itself, shall not stand. 26 And if Satan cast out 24 And if a kingdom be divided Satan, he is divided against against itself, that kingdom himself; how shall then his cannot stand. kingdom stand? 25 And if a house be divided against itself, that house cannot stand. 27 And if I by Beelzebub cast 26 And if Satan rise up out devils, by whom do your against himself, and be children cast _them_ out? divided, he cannot stand but therefore they shall be your hath an end. judges. 28 But if I cast out devils by 27 No man can enter into a the Spirit of God, then the strong man’s house and spoil kingdom of he will first bind his goods, except he will the strong man; first bind the strong man; and then he will spoil his house. 29 Or else, how can one enter 28 Verily, I say unto you, All into a strong man’s house, and sins shall be forgiven unto spoil his goods, except he the sons of men, the first bind the strong man? and blasphemies wherewith soever then he will spoil his house. they shall blaspheme: 30 He that is not with me is 29 But he that shall blaspheme against me; and he that against the Holy Ghost hath gathereth not with me, never forgiveness, but is in scattereth abroad. danger of eternal damnation: 31 Wherefore I say unto you, 30 Because they said, he hath All manner of sin and an unclean spirit. blasphemy shall be forgiven unto men: but the blasphemy _against_ the _Holy_ Ghost shall not be forgiven unto men. 32 And whosoever speaketh a word against the Son of man, it shall be forgiven him: but whosoever speaketh against the Holy Ghost, it shall not be forgiven him, neither in this world, neither in the _world_ to come. 33 Either make the tree good, and his fruit good; or else make the tree corrupt, and his fruit corrupt: for the tree is known by _his_ fruit. 34 O generation of vipers, how can ye, being evil, speak good things? for out of the abundance of the heart the mouth speaketh. 35 A good man, out of the good treasure of the heart, bringeth forth good things: and an evil man, out of the evil treasure, bringeth forth evil things. 36 But I say unto you, That every idle word that men shall speak, they shall give account thereof in the day of judgment. 37 For by thy words thou shalt be justified, and by thy words thou shalt be condemned. Luke. CH. XI. 14, 15, 17-23. 14 And he was casting out a devil, and it was dumb. And it came to pass when the devil was gone out, the dumb spake; and the people wondered. 15 But some of them said, He casteth out devils through Beelzebub, the chief of the devils. 17 But he, knowing their thoughts, said unto them, Every kingdom divided against itself, is brought to desolation; and a house _divided_ against a house, falleth. 18 If Satan also be divided against himself, how shall his kingdom stand? because ye say that I cast out devils through Beelzebub. 19 And if I by Beelzebub cast out devils, by whom do your sons cast _them_ out? therefore shall they be your judges. 20 But if I with the finger of God cast out devils, no doubt the kingdom of God is come upon you. 21 When a strong man armed keepeth his palace, his goods are in peace: 22 But when a stronger than he shall come upon him, and overcome him, he taketh from him all his armour, wherein he trusted, and divideth his spoils. 23 He that is not with me, is against me: and he that gathereth not with me scattereth. § 49. The Scribes and Pharisees seek a sign. Our Lord’s reflection. _Galilee_. Matthew. Luke. CH. XII. 38-45. CH. XI. 16, 24-36. 38 Then certain of the scribes And others tempting _him_, and of the Pharisees answered, sought of him a sign from saying, Master, we would see a heaven. sign from thee. 39 But he answered and said to 29 And when the people had them, An evil and adulterous gathered thick together, he generation seeketh after a began to say, This is an evil sign, and there shall no sign generation: they seek a sign, be given(153) to it, but the and there shall no sign be sign of the prophet Jonas. given it, but the sign of Jonas the prophet. 40 For as Jonas was three days and three nights in the whale’s belly,(154) so shall the Son of man be three days and three nights in the heart of the earth. 41 The men of Nineveh shall 30 For as Jonas was a sign rise in judgment with this unto the Ninevites so shall generation, and shall condemn also the Son of man be to this it: because they repented at generation. the preaching of Jonas,(155) and behold, a greater than Jonas _is_ here. 42 The queen of the south 31 The queen of the south shall rise up in the judgment shall rise up in the judgment with this generation, and with the men of this shall condemn it: for she came generation, and condemn them: from the uttermost parts of for she came from the utmost the earth to hear the wisdom parts of the earth, to hear of Solomon;(156) and behold, a the wisdom of Solomon; and greater than Solomon _is_ behold, a greater than Solomon here. _is_ here 32 The men of Nineveh shall rise up in the judgment with this generation, and shall condemn it: for they repented at the preaching of Jonas; and behold, a greater than Jonas _is_ here. 33 No man when he hath lighted a candle putteth _it_ in a secret place, neither under a bushel, but on a candlestick, that they which come in may see the light. 34 The light of the body is thy eye: therefore when thine eye is single, thy whole body also is full of light; but when _thine eye_ is evil, thy body also _is_ full of darkness. 35 Take heed therefore, that the light which is in thee be not darkness. 36 If thy whole body therefore _be_ full of light, having no part dark, the whole shall be full of light; as when the bright shining of a candle doth give thee light. 43 When the unclean spirit is 24 When the unclean spirit is gone out of a man, he walketh gone out of a man, he walketh through dry places, seeking through dry places, seeking rest, and findeth none. rest: and finding none, he saith, I will return unto my house whence I came out. 44 Then he saith, I will 25 And when he cometh, he return into my house from findeth _it_ swept and whence I came out; and when he garnished. is come, he findeth _it_ empty, swept, and garnished. 45 Then goeth he, and taketh 26 Then goeth he, and taketh with himself seven other _to him_ seven other spirits spirits more wicked than more wicked than himself; and himself, and they enter in and they enter in, and dwell dwell there: and the _last there: and the _last state_ of state_ of that man is worse that man is worse than the than the first. Even so shall first. it be also unto this wicked generation. 27 And it came to pass, as he spake these things, a certain woman of the company lifted up her voice, and said unto him, Blessed _is_ the womb that bare thee, and the paps which thou hast sucked. 28 But he said, Yea, rather blessed are they that hear the word of God, and keep it. § 50. The true disciples of Christ his nearest relatives. _Galilee_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XII. 46-50. CH. III. 31-35. 46 While he yet talked to the 31 There came then his people, behold, _his_ mother brethren and his mother, and and his brethren stood standing without, sent unto without, desiring to speak him, calling him. with him. 47 Then one said unto him, 32 And the multitude sat about Behold, thy mother and thy him; and they said unto him, brethren stand without, Behold, thy mother and thy desiring to speak with thee. brethren without seek for thee. 48 But he answered and said 33 And he answered them, unto him that told him, Who is saying, Who is my mother, or my mother? and who are my my brethren? and who are my brethren? brethren? 49 And he stretched forth his 34 And he looked round about hand toward his disciples, and on them which sat about him, said, Behold my mother and my and said, Behold, my mother brethren! and my brethren! 50 For whosoever shall do the 35 For whosoever shall do the will of my Father which is in will of God, the same is my heaven, the same is my brother, and my sister, and brother, and sister, and mother. mother. Luke. CH. VIII. 19-21. 19 Then came to him _his_ mother and his brethren, and could not come at him for the press. 20 And it was told him _by certain_, which said, Thy mother and thy brethren stand without, desiring to see thee. 21 And he answered and said unto them, My mother and my brethren are these which hear the word of God, and do it. § 51. At a Pharisee’s table, Jesus denounces woes against the Pharisees and others. _Galilee_. Luke. CH. XI. 37-54 37 And as he spake, a certain Pharisee besought him to dine with him: and he went in and sat down to meat. 38 And when the Pharisee saw _it_, he marvelled that he had not first washed(157) before dinner. 39 And the Lord said unto him, Now do ye Pharisees make clean the outside of the cup and the platter; but your inward part is full of ravening and wickedness. 40 Ye fools, did not he that made that which is without, make that which is within also? 41 But rather give alms of such things as ye have; and behold, all things are clean unto you. 42 But wo unto you, Pharisees! for ye tithe mint, and rue, and all manner of herbs, and pass over judgment and the love of God: these ought ye to have done, and not to leave the other undone. 43 Wo unto you, Pharisees! for ye love the uppermost seats in the synagogues, and greetings in the markets. 44 Wo unto you, scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites! for ye are as graves which appear not, and the men that walk over _them_ are not aware _of them_. 45 Then answered one of the lawyers, and said unto him, Master, thus saying, thou reproachest us also. 46 And he said, Wo unto you also, _ye_ lawyers! for ye lade men with burdens grievous to be borne, and ye yourselves touch not the burdens with one of your fingers. 47 Wo unto you! for ye build the sepulchres of the prophets, and your fathers killed them. 48 Truly ye bear witness, that ye allow the deeds of your fathers: for they indeed killed them, and ye build their sepulchres. 49 Therefore also said the wisdom of God, I will send them prophets and apostles, and _some_ of them they shall slay and persecute: 50. That the blood of all the prophets, which was shed from the foundation of the world, may be required of this generation; 51 From the blood of Abel(158) unto the blood of Zacharias, which perished between the altar and the temple: verily, I say unto you, It shall be required of this generation. 52 Wo unto you, lawyers! for ye have taken away the key of knowledge: ye entered not in yourselves, and them that were entering in ye hindered. 53 And as he said these things unto them, the scribes and the Pharisees began to urge _him_ vehemently, and to provoke him to speak of many things; 54 Laying wait for him, and seeking to catch something out of his mouth, that they might accuse him. § 52. Jesus discourses to his disciples and the multitude. _Galilee._ Luke. CH. XII. 1-59. In the mean time, when there were gathered together an innumerable multitude of people, insomuch that they trode one upon another, he began to say unto his disciples first of all, Beware ye of the leaven of the Pharisees, which is hypocrisy. 2 For there is nothing covered, that shall not be revealed; neither hid, that shall not be known. 3 Therefore, whatsoever ye have spoken in darkness, shall be heard in the light; and that which ye have spoken in the ear in closets, shall be proclaimed upon the house-tops. 4 And I say unto you, my friends, Be not afraid of them that kill the body, and after that, have no more that they can do. 5 But I will forewarn you whom ye shall fear; Fear him, which, after he hath killed, hath power to cast into hell; yea, I say unto you, Fear him. 6 Are not five sparrows sold for two farthings, and not one of them is forgotten before God? 7 But even the very hairs of your head are all numbered. Fear not therefore: ye are of more value than many sparrows. 8 Also I say unto you, Whosoever shall confess me before men, him shall the Son of man also confess before the angels of God. 9 But he that denieth me before men, shall be denied before the angels of God. 10 And whosoever shall speak a word against the Son of man, it shall be forgiven him: but unto him that blasphemeth against the Holy Ghost, it shall not be forgiven. 11 And when they bring you unto the synagogues, and _unto magistrates_, and powers, take ye no thought how or what thing ye shall answer, or what ye shall say: 12 For the Holy Ghost shall teach you in the same hour what ye ought to say. 13 And one of the company said unto him, Master, speak to my brother, that he divide the inheritance with me. 14 And he said unto him, Man, who made me a judge, or a divider over you? 15 And he said unto them, Take heed, and beware of covetousness: for a man’s life consisteth not in the abundance of the things which he possesseth. 16 And he spake a parable unto them, saying, The ground of a certain rich man brought forth plentifully: 17 And he thought within himself, saying, What shall I do, because I have no room where to bestow my fruits? 18 And he said, This will I do: I will pull down my barns, and build greater; and there will I bestow all my fruits and my goods. 19 And I will say to my soul, Soul, thou hast much goods laid up for many years; take thine ease, eat, drink, _and_ be merry. 20 But God said unto him, Thou fool, this night thy soul shall be required of thee: then whose shall those things be, which thou hast provided? 21 So _is_ he that layeth up treasure for himself, and is not rich toward God. 22 And he said unto his disciples, Therefore I say unto you, Take no thought for your life, what ye shall eat; neither for the body, what ye shall put on. 23 The life is more than meat, and the body _is more_ than raiment. 24 Consider the ravens: for they neither sow nor reap: which neither have store-house, nor barn; and God feedeth them. How much more are ye better than the fowls? 25 And which of you with taking thought can add to his stature one cubit? 26 If ye then be not able to do that thing which is least, why take ye thought for the rest? 27 Consider the lilies how they grow: they toil not, they spin not; and yet I say unto you, that Solomon in all his glory was not arrayed like one of these. 28 If then God so clothe the grass, which is to-day in the field, and to-morrow is cast into the oven; how much more _will he clothe_ you, O ye of little faith? 29 And seek not ye what ye shall eat, or what ye shall drink, neither be ye of doubtful mind. 30 For all these things do the nations of the world seek after: and your Father knoweth that ye have need of these things. 31 But rather seek ye the kingdom of God, and all these things shall be added unto you. 32 Fear not, little flock; for it is your Father’s good pleasure to give you the kingdom. 33 Sell that ye have, and give alms: provide yourselves bags which wax not old, a treasure in the heavens that faileth not, where no thief approacheth, neither moth corrupteth. 34 For where your treasure is, there will your heart be also. 35 Let your loins be girded about, and _your_ lights burning; 36 And ye yourselves like unto men that wait for their lord, when he will return from the wedding; that, when he cometh and knocketh, they may open unto him immediately. 37 Blessed _are_ those servants, whom the lord when he cometh shall find watching: verily, I say unto you, that he shall gird himself, and make them to sit down to meat, and will come forth and serve them. 38 And if he shall come in the second watch, or come in the third watch, and find _them_ so, blessed are those servants. 39 And this know, that if the good man of the house had known what hour the thief would come, he would have watched, and not have suffered his house to be broken through. 40 Be ye therefore ready also: for the Son of man cometh at an hour when ye think not. 41 Then Peter said unto him, Lord, speakest thou this parable unto us, or even to all? 42 And the Lord said, Who then is that faithful and wise steward, whom his lord shall make ruler over his household, to give _them their_ portion of meat in due season? 43 Blessed _is_ that servant, whom his lord when he cometh shall find so doing. 44 Of a truth I say unto you, That he will make him ruler over all that he hath. 45 But and if that servant say in his heart, My lord delayeth his coming; and shall begin to beat the men-servants, and maidens, and to eat and drink, and to be drunken; 46 The lord of that servant will come in a day when he looketh not for _him_, and at an hour when he is not aware, and will cut him in sunder, and will appoint him his portion with the unbelievers. 47 And that servant which knew his lord’s will, and prepared not _himself_, neither did according to his will, shall be beaten with many _stripes_. 48 But he that knew not, and did commit things worthy of stripes, shall be beaten with few _stripes_. For unto whomsoever much is given, of him shall much be required; and to whom men have committed much, of him they will ask the more. 49 I am come to send fire on the earth, and what will I, if it be already kindled? 50 But I have a baptism to be baptized with; and how am I straitened till it be accomplished! 51 Suppose ye that I am come to give peace on earth? I tell you, Nay; but rather division: 52 For from henceforth there shall be five in one house divided, three against two, and two against three. 53 The father shall be divided against the son, and the son against the father; the mother against the daughter, and the daughter against the mother; the mother-in-law against her daughter-in-law, and the daughter-in-law against her mother-in-law. 54 And he said also to the people, When ye see a cloud rise out of the west,(159) straightway ye say, There cometh a shower; and so it is. 55 And when _ye see_ the south wind blow, ye say, There will be heat; and it cometh to pass. 56 Ye hypocrites, ye can discern the face of the sky and of the earth; but how is it, that ye do not discern this time? 57 Yea, and why even of yourselves judge ye not what is right? 58 When thou goest with thine adversary to the magistrate, _as thou art_ in the way, give diligence that thou mayest be delivered from him; lest he hale thee to the judge, and the judge deliver thee to the officer, and the officer cast thee into prison. 59 I tell thee, thou shalt not depart thence, till thou hast paid the very last mite. § 53. The slaughter of certain Galileans. Parable of the barren fig-tree. _Galilee_. Luke. CH. XIII. 1-9. There were present at that season some that told him of the Galileans, whose blood Pilate had mingled with their sacrifices. 2 And Jesus answering, said unto them, Suppose ye that these Galileans were sinners above all the Galileans, because they suffered such things? 3 I tell you, Nay; but, except ye repent, ye shall all likewise perish. 4 Or those eighteen, upon whom the tower in Siloam fell, and slew them, think ye that they were sinners above all men that dwelt in Jerusalem? 5 I tell you, Nay; but, except ye repent, ye shall all likewise perish. 6 He spake also this parable: A certain _man_ had a fig-tree planted in his vineyard; and he came and sought fruit thereon, and found none. 7 Then said he unto the dresser of his vineyard, Behold, these three years I come seeking fruit on this fig-tree, and find none: cut it down; why cumbereth it the ground? 8 And he answering, said unto him, Lord, let it alone this year also, till I shall dig about it, and dung _it_: 9 And if it bear fruit, _well_: and if not, _then_ after that thou shalt cut it down. § 54. The parable of the sower. _Lake of Galilee. Near Capernaum_? Matthew. Mark. CH. XIII. 1-23. CH. IV. 1-25. The same day went Jesus out of And he began again to teach by the house, and sat by the the sea-side: and there was sea-side. gathered unto him a great multitude, so that he entered into a ship, and sat in the sea; and the whole multitude was by the sea, on the land. 2 And great multitudes were gathered together unto him, so that he went into a ship, and sat; and the whole multitude stood on the shore. 3 And he spake many things 2 And he taught them many unto them in parables, saying, things by parables, and said Behold, a sower went forth to unto them in his doctrine, sow; 3 Hearken; Behold, there went out a sower to sow. 4 And when he sowed, some 4 And it came to pass as he _seeds_ fell by the way-side, sowed, some fell by the and the fowls came and way-side, and the fowls of the devoured them up: air came and devoured it up. 5 Some fell upon stony places 5 And some fell on stony where they had not much earth: ground, where it had not much and forthwith they sprung up, earth; and immediately it because they had no deepness sprang up, because it had no of earth: depth of earth: 6 And when the sun was up, 6 But when the sun was up it they were scorched; and was scorched; and because it because they had no root, they had no root, it withered away. withered away. 7 And some fell among thorns; 7 And some fell among thorns, and the thorns sprung up, and and the thorns grew up, and choked them: choked it, and it yielded no fruit. 8 But other fell into good 8 And other fell on good ground, and brought forth ground, and did yield fruit fruit, some a hundred-fold, that sprang up, and increased, some sixty-fold, some and brought forth, some thirty-fold. thirty, and some sixty, and some a hundred. 9 Who hath ears to hear, let 9 And he said unto them, He him hear. that hath ears to hear, let him hear. 10 And the disciples came, and 10 And when he was alone, they said unto him, Why speakest that were about him, with the thou unto them in parables? twelve, asked of him the parable. 11 He answered and said unto 11 And he said unto them, Unto them, Because it is given unto you it is given to know the you to know the mysteries of mystery of the kingdom of God: the kingdom of heaven, but to but unto them that are them it is not given. without, all _these_ things are done in parables: 12 For whosoever hath, to him 12 That seeing they may see, shall be given, and he shall and not perceive; and hearing have more abundance: but they may hear, and not whosoever hath not, from him understand; lest at any time shall be taken away even that they should be converted, and he hath. _their_ sins should be forgiven them. 13 Therefore speak I to them in parables: because they seeing, see not; and hearing, they hear not; neither do they understand. 14 And in them is fulfilled the prophecy of Esaias,(160) which saith, By hearing ye shall hear, and shall not understand; and seeing ye shall see, and shall not perceive: 15 For this people’s heart is waxed gross, and _their_ ears are dull of hearing, and their eyes they have closed; lest at any time they should _see_ with _their_ eyes, and hear with _their_ ears, and should understand with _their_ heart, and should be converted, and I should heal them. 16 But _blessed are_ your eyes, for they see: and your ears, for they hear. 17 For, verily I say unto you, That many prophets and righteous _men_ have desired to see _those things_ which ye see, and have not seen _them_; and to hear _those things_ which ye hear, and have not heard _them_. 18 Hear ye therefore the 13 And he said unto them, Know parable of the sower. ye not this parable? and how then will ye know all parables? 19 When any one heareth the 14 The sower soweth the word. word of the kingdom, and understandeth _it_ not, then cometh the wicked _one_, and catcheth away that which was sown in his heart. This is he which received seed by the way-side. 15 And these are they by the way-side, where the word is sown; but when they have heard, Satan cometh immediately, and taketh away the word that was sown in their hearts. 20 But he that received the 16 And these are they likewise seed into stony places, the which are sown on stony same is he that heareth the ground; who, when they have word, and anon with joy heard the word, immediately receiveth it; receive it with gladness; 21 Yet hath he not root in 17 And have no root in himself, but dureth for a themselves, and so endure but while: for when tribulation or for a time: afterward, when persecution ariseth because of affliction or persecution the word, by and by he is ariseth for the word’s sake, offended. immediately they are offended. 22 He also that received seed 18 and these are they which among the thorns is he that are sown among thorns; such as heareth the word; and the care hear the word, of this world, and the deceitfulness of riches, choke the word, and he becometh unfruitful. 19 And the cares of this world, and the deceitfulness of riches, and the lusts of other things entering in, choke the word, and it becometh unfruitful. 23 But he that received seed 20 And these are they which into the good ground is he are sown on good ground; such that heareth the word, and as hear the word, and receive understandeth _it_; which also it, and bring forth fruit, beareth fruit, and bringeth some thirty-fold, some sixty, forth, some a hundred-fold, and some a hundred. some sixty, some thirty. 21 And he said unto them, Is a candle brought to be put under a bushel, or under a bed? and not to be set on a candlestick? 22 For there is nothing hid, which shall not be manifested; neither was any thing kept secret, but that it should come abroad. 23 If any man have ears to hear, let him hear. 24 And he said unto them, Take heed what ye hear: With what measure ye mete, it shall be measured to you: and unto you that hear shall more be given. 25 For he that hath, to him shall be given: and he that hath not, from him shall be taken even that which he hath. Luke. CH. VIII. 4-18. 4 And when much people were gathered together, and were come to him out of every city, he spake by a parable: 5 A sower went out to sow his seed: and as he sowed, some fell by the way-side; and it was trodden down, and the fowls of the air devoured it. 6 And some fell upon a rock; and as soon as it was sprung up, it withered away, because it lacked moisture. 7 And some fell among thorns; and the thorns sprang up with it, and choked it. 8 And other fell on good ground, and sprang up, and bare fruit a hundred-fold. And when he had said these things, he cried, He that hath ears to hear, let him hear. 9 And his disciples asked him, saying, What might this parable be? 10 And he said, Unto you it is given to know the mysteries of the kingdom of God: but to others in parables; that seeing they might not see, and hearing they might not understand. 11 Now the parable is this: The seed is the word of God. 12 Those by the way-side, are they that hear: then cometh the devil, and taketh away the word out of their hearts, lest they should believe and be saved. 13 They on the rock _are they_, which, when they hear, receive the word with joy; and these have no root, which for a while believe, and in times of temptation fall away. 14 And that which fell among thorns, are they, which, when they have heard, go forth, and are choked with cares, and riches, and pleasures of _this_ life, and bring no fruit to perfection. 15 But that on the good ground are they, which, in an honest and good heart, having heard the word, keep _it_, and bring forth fruit with patience. 16 No man, when he hath lighted a candle, covereth it with a vessel, or putteth _it_ under a bed; but setteth _it_ on a candlestick, that they which enter in may see the light. 17 For nothing is secret, that shall not be made manifest; neither _anything_ hid, that shall not be known, and come abroad. 18 Take heed therefore how ye hear: for whosoever hath, to him shall be given: and whosoever hath not, from him shall be taken even that which he seemeth to have. § 55. Parable of the tares. Other parables. _Near Capernaum_? Matthew. Mark. CH. XIII. 24-53. CH. IV. 26-34. 24 Another parable put he forth unto them, saying, The kingdom of heaven is likened unto a man which sowed good seed in his field: 25 But while men slept, his enemy came and sowed tares among the wheat, and went his way. 26 But when the blade was sprung up, and brought forth fruit, then appeared the tares also. 27 So the servants of the householder came and said unto him, Sir, didst not thou sow good seed in thy field? from whence then hath it tares? 28 He said unto them, An enemy 26 And he said, So is the hath done this. The servant kingdom of God, as if a man said unto him, Wilt thou then should cast seed into the that we go and gather them up? ground; 29 But he said, Nay; lest 27 And should sleep, and rise while ye gather up the tares, night and day, and the seed ye root up also the wheat with should spring and grow up, he them. knoweth not how. 30 Let both grow together 28 For the earth bringeth until the harvest: and in the forth fruit of herself; first time of harvest I will say to the blade, then the ear, after the reapers, Gather ye that the full corn in the ear. together first the tares, and bind them in bundles to burn them: but gather the wheat into my barn. 29 But when the fruit is brought forth, immediately he putteth in the sickle, because the harvest is come. 31 Another parable put he 30 And he said, Whereunto forth unto them, saying, The shall we liken the kingdom of kingdom of heaven is like to a God? or with what comparison grain of mustard-seed, which a shall we compare it? man took, and sowed in his field: 32 Which indeed is the least 31 It _is_ like a grain of of all seeds: but when it is mustard-seed, which when it is grown, it is the greatest sown in the earth, in less among herbs, and becometh a than all the seeds that be in tree, so that the birds of the the earth: air come and lodge in the branches thereof. 33 Another parable spake he 32 But when it is sown, it unto them; The kingdom of groweth up, and becometh heaven is like unto leaven, greater than all herbs, and which a woman took, and hid in shooteth out great branches; three measures of meal, till so that the fowls of the air the whole was leavened. may lodge under the shadow of it. 34 All these things spake 33 And with many such parables Jesus unto the multitude in spake he the word unto them, parables; and without a as they were able to hear parable spake he not unto _it_. them: 35 That it might be fulfilled 34 But without a parable spake which was spoken by the he not unto them: and when prophet,(161) saying, I will they were alone, he expounded open my mouth in parables; I all things to his disciples. will utter things which have been kept secret from the foundation of the world. 36 Then Jesus sent the multitude away, and went into the house: and his disciples came unto him, saying, Declare unto us the parable of the tares of the field. 37 He answered and said unto them, He that soweth the good seed is the Son of man; 38 The field is the world; the good seed are the children of the kingdom; but the tares are the children of the wicked _one_; 39 The enemy that sowed them is the devil; the harvest is the end of the world; and the reapers are the angels. 40 As therefore the tares are gathered and burned in the fire; so shall it be in the end of this world. 41 The Son of man shall send forth his angels, and they shall gather out of his kingdom all things that offend, and them which do iniquity; 42 And shall cast them into a furnace of fire; there shall be wailing and gnashing of teeth. 43 Then shall the righteous shine forth as the sun in the kingdom of their Father. Who hath ears to hear, let him hear. 44 Again, The kingdom of heaven is like unto treasure hid in a field; the which when a man hath found, he hideth, and for joy thereof goeth and selleth all that he hath, and buyeth that field. 45 Again, The kingdom of heaven is like unto a merchant-man seeking goodly pearls: 46 Who, when he had found one pearl of great price, went and sold all that he had, and bought it. 47 Again, The kingdom of heaven is like unto a net, that was cast into the sea, and gathered of every kind: 48 Which, when it was full, they drew to shore, and sat down, and gathered the good into vessels, but cast the bad away. 49 So shall it be at the end of the world: the angels shall come forth, and sever the wicked from among the just, 50 And shall cast them into the furnace of fire: there shall be wailing and gnashing of teeth. 51 Jesus saith unto them, Have ye understood all these things? They say unto him, Yea, Lord. 52 Then said he unto them, Therefore every scribe _which is_ instructed unto the kingdom of heaven, is like unto a man _that is_ a householder, which bringeth forth out of his treasure _things_ new and old. 53 And it came to pass, _that_ when Jesus had finished these parables, he departed thence. § 56. Jesus directs to cross the lake. Incidents. The tempest stilled. _Lake of Galilee_. Matthew. Mark. CH. VIII. 18-27. CH. IV. 35-41. 18 Now when Jesus saw great And the same day, when the multitudes about him, he gave even was come, he saith unto commandment to depart unto the them, Let us pass over unto other side. the other side. 19 And a certain scribe came, and said unto him, Master, I will follow thee whithersoever thou goest. 20 And Jesus saith unto him, The foxes have holes, and the birds of the air _have_ nests; but the Son of man hath not where to lay _his_ head. 21 And another of his disciples said unto him, Lord, suffer me first to go and bury my father. 22 But Jesus said unto him, Follow me; and let the dead bury their dead. 23 And when he was entered 36 And when they had sent away into a ship, his disciples the multitude, they took him followed him. even as he was in the ship. And there were also with him other little ships. 24 And behold, there arose a 37 And there arose a great great tempest in the sea, storm of wind, and the waves insomuch that the ship was beat into the ship, so that it covered with the waves: but he was now full. was asleep. 25 And his disciples came to 38 And he was in the hinder _him_, and awoke him, saying, part of the ship, asleep on a Lord, save us: we perish. pillow: and they awake him, and say unto him, Master, carest thou not that we perish? 26 And he saith unto them, Why 39 And he arose and rebuked are ye fearful, O ye of little the wind, and said unto the faith? Then he arose, and sea, Peace, be still: and the rebuked the winds and the sea; wind ceased, and there was a and there was a great calm. great calm. 40 And he said unto them, Why are ye so fearful? how is that ye have no faith? 27 But the men marvelled, 41 And they feared saying, What manner of man is exceedingly, and said one to this, that even the winds and another, What manner of man is the sea obey him! this, that even the wind and the sea obey him? Luke. CH. VIII. 22-25. CH. IX. 57-62. 22 Now it came to pass on a certain day, that he went into a ship with his disciples: and he said unto them, Let us go over unto the other side of the lake. CH. IX. 57 And it came to pass, that as they went in the way, a certain _man_ said unto him, Lord, I will follow thee whithersoever thou goest. 58 And Jesus said unto him, Foxes have holes, and birds of the air _have_ nests; but the Son of man hath not where to lay _his_ head. 59 And he said unto another, Follow me. But he said, Lord, suffer me first to go and bury my father. 60 Jesus said unto him, Let the dead bury their dead: but go thou and preach the kingdom of God. 61 And another also said, Lord, I will follow thee; but let me first go bid them farewell which are at home at my house. 62 And Jesus said unto him, No man having put his hand to the plough, and looking back, is fit for the kingdom of God. CH. VIII. 22 And they launched forth. 23 But as they sailed, he fell asleep: and there came down a storm of wind on the lake; and they were filled _with water_, and were in jeopardy. 24 And they came to him, and awoke him, saying, Master, Master, we perish. Then he arose, and rebuked the wind, and the raging of the water: and they ceased, and there was a calm. 25 And he said unto them, Where is your faith? And they being afraid, wondered, saying one to another, What manner of man is this! for he commandeth even the winds and water, and they obey him. § 57. The two demoniacs of Gadara. _S. E. coast of the Lake of Galilee_. Matthew. Mark. CH. VIII. 28-34. CH. V. 1-21. CH. IX. 1. 28 And when he was come to the And they came over unto the other side, into the country other side of the sea, into of the Gegesenes,(162) there the country of the Gadarenes. met him two possessed with devils, coming out of the tombs, exceeding fierce, so that no man might pass by that way. 2 And when he was come out of the ship, immediately there met him out of the tombs a man with an unclean spirit, 3 Who had _his_ dwelling among the tombs; and no man could bind him, no, not with his chains: 4 Because that he had been often bound with fetters and chains, and the chains had been plucked asunder by him, and the fetters broken in pieces: neither could any _man_ tame him. 5 And always, night and day, he was in the mountains, and in the tombs, crying, and cutting himself with stones. 6 But when he saw Jesus afar off, he ran and worshipped him, 7 And cried with a loud voice, and said, What have I to do with thee, Jesus, _thou_ Son of the most high God? I adjure thee by God, that thou torment me not. 8 (For he said unto him, Come out of the man, _thou_ unclean spirit.) 29 And behold, they cried out, 9 And he asked him, What _is_ saying, What have we to do thy name? And he answered, with thee, Jesus, thou Son of saying, My name _is_ Legion: God? art thou come hither to for we are many. torment us before the time? 10 And he besought him much that he would not send them away out of the country. 30 And there was a good way 11 Now there was there nigh off(163) from them a herd of unto the mountains a great many swine, feeding. herd of swine(164) feeding. 31 So the devils besought him, 12 And all the devils besought saying If thou cast us out, him, saying, Send us into the suffer us to go away into the swine, that we may enter into herd of swine. them. 32 And he said unto them, Go. 13 And forthwith Jesus gave And when they were come out, them leave. And the unclean they went into the herd of spirits went out, and entered swine: and behold, the whole into the swine: and the herd herd of swine ran violently ran violently down a steep down a steep place into the place into the sea, (they were sea, and perished in the about two thousand) and were waters. choked in the sea. 33 And they that kept them, 14 And they that fed the swine fled, and went their ways into fled and told _it_ in the the city, and told everything; city, and in the country. And and what was befallen to the they went out to see what it possessed of the devils. was that was done. 34 And behold, the whole city 15 And they come to Jesus, and came out to meet Jesus: and see him that was possessed when they saw him, they with the devil, and had the besought him that he would legion, sitting, and clothed, depart out of their coasts. and in his right mind: and they were afraid. 16 And they that saw _it_ told them how it befell to him that was possessed with the devil, and also concerning the swine. 17 And they began to pray him to depart out of their coasts. CH. IX. And he entered into a ship, 18 And when he was come into and passed over, and came into the ship, he that had been his own city. possessed with the devil prayed him that he might be with him. 19 Howbeit Jesus suffered him not, but saith unto him, Go home to thy friends, and tell them how great things the Lord hath done for thee, and hath had compassion on thee. 20 And he departed, and began to publish in Decapolis how great things Jesus had done for him. And all _men_ did marvel. 21 And when Jesus was passed over again by ship unto the other side, much people gathered unto him: and he was nigh unto the sea. Luke. CH. VIII. 26-40. 26 And they arrived at the country of the Gadarenes, which is over against Galilee. 27 And when he went forth to land, there met him out of the city a certain man, which had devils long time, and ware no clothes, neither abode in _any_ house, but in the tombs. 28 When he saw Jesus, he cried out, and fell down before him, and with a loud voice said, What have I to do with thee, Jesus, _thou_ Son of God most high? I beseech thee torment me not. 29 (For he had commanded the unclean spirit to come out of the man. For oftentimes it had caught him: and he was kept bound with chains, and in fetters; and he brake the bands, and was driven of the devil into the wilderness.) 30 And Jesus asked him, saying, What is thy name? And he said, Legion: because many devils were entered into him. 31 And they besought him, that he would not command them to go out into the deep. 32 And there was there a herd of many swine feeding on the mountain: and they besought him that he would suffer them to enter into them. And he suffered them. 33 Then went the devils out of the man, and entered into the swine: and the herd ran violently down a steep place into the lake, and were choked. 34 When they that fed _them_ saw what was done, they fled, and went and told _it_ in the city and in the country. 35 Then they went out to see what was done; and came to Jesus, and found the man out of whom the devils were departed, sitting at the feet of Jesus,(165) clothed, and in his right mind: and they were afraid. 36 They also which saw _it_, told them by what means he that was possessed of the devils was healed. 37 Then the whole multitude of the country of the Gadarenes round about, besought him to depart from them; for they were taken with great fear. And he went up into the ship, and returned back again. 38 Now, the man out of whom the devils were departed, besought him that he might be with him. But Jesus sent him away, saying, 39 Return to thine own house, and shew how great things God hath done unto thee. And he went his way and published throughout the whole city, how great things Jesus had done unto him. 40 And it came to pass, that, when Jesus was returned, the people _gladly_ received him: for they were all waiting for him. § 58. Levi’s feast. _Capernaum_. Matthew. Mark. CH. IX. 10-17. CH. II. 15-22. 10 And it came to pass, as 15 And it came to pass, that Jesus sat at meat in the as Jesus sat at meat in his house,(166) behold, many house, many publicans and publicans and sinners came and sinners sat also together with sat down with him and his Jesus and his disciples; for disciples. there were many, and they followed him. 11 And when the Pharisees saw 16 And when the scribes and _it_, they said unto his Pharisees saw him eat with disciples, Why eateth your publicans and sinners, they Master with publicans and said unto his disciples, How sinners? is it that he eateth and drinketh with publicans and sinners? 12 But when Jesus heard 17 When Jesus heard _it_, he _that_, he said unto them, saith unto them, They that are They that be whole need not a whole, have no need of the physician, but they that are physician, but they that are sick. sick: I came not to call the righteous, but sinners to repentance. 13 But go ye and learn what 18 And the disciples of John, _that_ meaneth,(167) I will and of the Pharisees, used to have mercy, and not sacrifice: fast: and they come, and say for I am not come to call the unto unto him, Why do the righteous, but sinners to disciples of John, and of the repentance. Pharisees fast, but thy disciples fast not? 14 Then came to him the disciples of John, saying, Why do we and the Pharisees fast oft, but thy disciples fast not? 15 And Jesus said unto them, 19 And Jesus said unto them, Can the children of the Can the children of the bride-chamber mourn, as long bride-chamber fast, while the as the bridegroom is with bridegroom is with them? As them? but the days will come, long as they have the when the bridegroom shall be bridegroom with them, they taken from them, and then cannot fast. shall they fast. 20 But the days will come, when the bridegroom shall be taken away from them, and then shall they fast in those days. 16 No man putteth a piece of 21 No man also seweth a piece new cloth unto an old garment: of new cloth on an old for that which is put in to garment: else the new piece fill it up, taketh from the that filled it up, taketh away garment, and the rent is made from the old, and the rent is worse. made worse. 17 Neither do men put new wine 22 And no man putteth new wine into old bottles: else the into old bottles: else the new bottles break, and the wine wine doth burst the bottles, runneth out, and the bottles and the wine is spilled, and perish: but they put new wine the bottles will be marred: into new bottles, and both are but new wine must be put into preserved. new bottles. Luke. CH. V. 29-39. 29 And Levi made him a great feast in his own house; and there was a great company of publicans, and of others that sat down with publicans and sinners? 30 But their scribes and Pharisees murmured against his disciples, saying, Why do you eat and drink with publicans and sinners? 31 And Jesus answering, said unto them, They that are whole need not a physician; but they that are sick. 32 I came not to call the righteous, but sinners to repentance. 33 And they said unto him, Why do the disciples of John fast often, and make prayers, and likewise _the disciples_ of the Pharisees; but thine eat and drink? 34 And he said unto them, Can ye make the children of the bride-chamber fast, while the bridegroom is with them? 35 But the days will come, when the bridegroom shall be taken away from them, and then shall they fast in those days. 36 And he spake also a parable unto them; No man putteth a piece of a new garment upon an old: if otherwise, then both the new maketh a rent, and the piece that was _taken_ out of the new, agreeth not with the old. 37 And no man putteth new wine into old bottles; else the new wine will burst the bottles, and be spilled, and the bottles shall perish. 38 But new wine must be put into new bottles, and both are preserved. 39 No man also having drunk old _wine_, straightway desireth new: for he saith, The old is better. § 59. The raising of Jairus’s daughter. The woman with a bloody flux. _Capernaum_. Matthew. Mark. CH. IX. 18-26. CH. V. 22-43. 18 While he spake these things 22 And behold, there cometh unto them, behold, there came one of the rulers of the a certain ruler, and synagogue, Jairus by name; and worshipped him, saying, My when he saw him, he fell at daughter is even now dead: but his feet. come and lay thy hand upon her, and she shall live. 19 And Jesus arose, and 23 And besought him greatly, followed him, and _so did_ his saying, My little daughter disciples. lieth at the point of death: _I pray thee_, come and lay thy hands on her, that she may be healed; and she shall live. 20 And behold, a woman which 24 And _Jesus_ went with him; was diseased with an issue of and much people followed him, blood twelve years, came and thronged him. behind _him_, and touched the hem of his garment. 21 For she said within 25 And a certain woman which herself, If I may but touch had an issue of blood twelve his garment, I shall be whole. years, 22 But Jesus turned him about, 26 And had suffered many and when he saw her, he said, things of many physicians, and Daughter, be of good comfort: had spent all that she had, thy faith hath made thee and was nothing bettered, but whole. And the woman was made rather grew worse, whole from that hour. 27 When she had heard of Jesus, came in the press behind, and touched his garment: 28 For she said, If I may touch but his clothes, I shall be whole. 29 And straightway the fountain of her blood was dried up; and she felt in _her_ body that she was healed of that plague. 30 And Jesus, immediately knowing in himself that virtue had gone out of him, turned him about in the press, and said, Who touched my clothes? 31 And his disciples said unto him, Thou seest the multitude thronging thee, and sayest thou, Who touched me? 32 And he looked round about to see her that had done this thing. 33 But the woman, fearing and trembling, knowing what was done in her, came and fell down before him, and told him all the truth. 34 And he said unto her, Daughter, thy faith hath made thee whole; go in peace, and be whole of thy plague. 35 While he yet spake, there came from the ruler of the synagogue’s _house certain_ which said, Thy daughter is dead: why troublest thou the Master any further? 36 As soon as Jesus heard the word that was spoken, he saith unto the ruler of the synagogue, Be not afraid, only believe. 37 And he suffered no man to follow him, save Peter, and James, and John the brother of James. 23 And when Jesus came into 38 And he cometh to the house the ruler’s house, and saw the of the ruler of the synagogue, minstrels and the people and seeth the tumult, and them making a noise, that wept and wailed greatly. 24 He said unto them, Give 39 And when he was come in, he place: for the maid is not saith unto them, Why make ye dead, but sleepeth. And they this ado, and weep? the damsel laughed him to scorn. is not dead, but sleepeth. 25 But when the people were 40 And they laughed him to put forth, he went in, and scorn. But, when he had put took her by the hand, and the them all out, he taketh the maid arose. father and the mother of the damsel, and them that were with him, and entereth in where the damsel was lying. 26 And the fame hereof went 41 And he took the damsel by abroad into all that land. the hand, and said unto her, Talitha-cumi: which is, being interpreted, Damsel, (I say unto thee) arise. 42 And straightway the damsel arose, and walked; for she was _of the age_ of twelve years. And they were astonished with a great astonishment. 43 And he charged them straitly that no man should know it; and commanded that something should be given her to eat. Luke. CH. VIII. 41-56. 41 And behold, there came a man named Jairus, and he was a ruler of the synagogue: and he fell down at Jesus’ feet, and besought him that he would come into his house: 42 For he had one only daughter, about twelve years of age, and she lay a-dying. But as he went, the people thronged him. 43 And a woman having an issue of blood twelve years, which had spent all her living upon physicians, neither could be healed of any, 44 Came behind _him_ and touched the border of his garment: and immediately her issue of blood stanched. 45 And Jesus said, Who touched me? When all denied, Peter, and they that were with him, said, Master, the multitude throng thee, and press _thee_, and sayest thou, Who touched me? 46 And Jesus said, Somebody hath touched me: for I perceive that virtue is gone out of me. 47 And when the woman saw that she was not hid, she came trembling, and falling down before him, she declared unto him before all the people for what cause she had touched him, and how she was healed immediately. 48 And he said unto her, Daughter, be of good comfort: thy faith hath made thee whole; go in peace. 49 While he yet spake, there cometh one from the ruler of the _synagogue’s house_, saying to him, Thy daughter is dead: trouble not the Master. 50 But when Jesus heard _it_, he answered him, saying, Fear not: believe only, and she shall be made whole. 51 And when he came into the house, he suffered no man to go in, save Peter, and James, and John, and the father and the mother of the maiden. 52 And all wept and bewailed her: but he said, Weep not: she is not dead, but sleepeth. 53 And they laughed him to scorn, knowing that she was dead. 54 And he put them all out, and took her by the hand, and called, saying, Maid, arise. 55 And her spirit came again, and she arose straightway: and he commanded to give her meat. 56 And her parents were astonished: but he charged them that they should tell no man what was done. § 60. Two blind men healed, and a dumb spirit cast out. _Capernaum_. Matthew. CH. IX. 27-34. 27 And when Jesus departed thence, two blind men followed him, crying, and saying, _Thou_ son of David, have mercy on us. 28 And when he was come into the house, the blind men came to him: and Jesus saith unto them, Believe ye that I am able to do this? They said unto him, Yea, Lord. 29 Then touched he their eyes, saying, According to your faith, be it unto you. 30 And their eyes were opened; and Jesus straitly charged them, saying, See _that_ no man know _it_. 31 But they, when they were departed, spread abroad his fame in all that country. 32 As they went out, behold, they brought to him a dumb man possessed with a devil. 33 And when the devil was cast out, the dumb spake: and the multitudes marvelled, saying, It was never so seen in Israel. 34 But the Pharisees said, He casteth out devils, through the prince of the devils. § 61. Jesus again at Nazareth, and again rejected. Matthew. Mark. CH. XIII. 54-58. CH. VI. 1-6. 54 And when he was come into And he went out from thence, his own country, he taught and came into his own county; them in their synagogue, and his disciples follow him. insomuch that they were astonished, and said, Whence hath this _man_ this wisdom, and _these_ mighty works? 55 Is not this the carpenter’s 2 And when the sabbath-day was son? is not his mother called come, he began to teach in the Mary? and his brethren, James, synagogue: and many hearing and Joses, and Simon, and _him_ were astonished, saying, Judas? From whence hath this _man_ these things? and what wisdom _is_ this which is given unto him, that even such mighty works are wrought by his hands? 56 And his sisters, are they 3 Is not this the carpenter, not all with us? Whence then the son of Mary,(168) the hath this _man_ all these brother of James, and Joses, things? and of Juda, and Simon? and are not his sisters here with us? And they were offended at him. 57 And they were offended in 4 But Jesus said unto them, A him. But Jesus said unto them, prophet is not without honour, A prophet is not without but in his own country, and honour, save in his own among his own kin, and in his country, and in his own house. own house. 5 And he could there do mighty work, save that he laid his hands upon a few sick folk, and healed _them_. 58 And he did not many mighty 6 And he marvelled because of works there, because of their their unbelief. unbelief. § 62. A third circuit in Galilee. The Twelve instructed and sent forth. _Galilee_. Matthew. Mark. CH. IX. 35-38. CH. X. 1, 5-42. CH. VI. 6-13. CH. XI. 1. 35 And Jesus went about all the cities and villages, teaching in their synagogues, and preaching the gospel of the kingdom, and healing every sickness, and every disease among the people. 36 But when he saw the multitudes, he was moved with compassion on them, because they fainted, and were scattered abroad as sheep having no shepherd. 37 Then saith he unto his disciples, The harvest truly _is_ plenteous, but the labourers _are_ few. 38 Pray ye therefore the Lord of the harvest, that he will send forth labourers into his harvest. CHAP. X. And when he had called unto 7 And he called _unto him_ the _him_ his twelve disciples, he twelve, and began to send them gave them power _against_ forth by two and two, and gave unclean spirits, to cast them them power over unclean out, and to heal all manner of spirits; sickness, and all manner of disease. 5 These twelve Jesus sent 8 And commanded them that they forth, and commanded them, should take nothing for saying, Go not into the way of _their_ journey, save a staff the Gentiles, and into _any_ only; no scrip, no bread, no city of the Samaritans, enter money in _their_ purse: ye not. 6 But go rather to the lost 9 But _be_ shod with sandals; sheep of the house of Israel. and not put on two coats. 7 And as ye go, preach, 10 And he said unto them, In saying, The kingdom of heaven what place soever ye enter is at hand. into a house, there abide till ye depart from that place. 8 Heal the sick, cleanse the lepers, raise the dead, cast out devils: freely ye have received, freely give. 9 Provide neither gold, nor silver, nor brass in your purses; 10 Nor scrip for _your_ journey, neither two coats, neither shoes,(169) nor yet staves: (for the workman is worthy of his meat.) 11 And into whatever city or town ye shall enter, inquire who in it is worthy; and there abide till ye go thence. 12 And when ye come into a house, salute it. 13 And if the house be worthy, let your peace come upon it: but if it be not worthy, let your peace return to you. 14 And whosoever shall not 11 And whosoever shall not receive you, nor hear your receive you, nor hear you, words, when ye depart out of when ye depart thence, shake that house, or city, shake off off the dust under your feet, the dust of your feet. for a testimony against them. Verify, I say unto you, it shall be more tolerable for Sodom and Gomorrah in the day of judgment, then for that city. 15 Verily, I say unto you, It shall be more tolerable for the land of Sodom and Gomorrah, in the day of judgment, than for that city. 16 Behold, I send you forth as sheep in the midst of wolves: be ye therefore wise as serpents, and harmless as doves. 17 But beware of men: for they will deliver you up to the councils, and they will scourge you in their synagogues.(170) 18 And ye shall be brought before governors and kings for my sake, for a testimony against them and the Gentiles. 19 But when they deliver you up, take no thought how or what ye shall speak, for it shall be given you in that same hour what ye shall speak. 20 For it is not ye that speak, but the Spirit of your Father which speaketh in you. 21 And the brother shall deliver up the brother to death, and the father the child: and the children shall rise up against _their_ parents, and cause them to be put to death. 22 And ye shall be hated of all men for my name’s sake: but he that endureth to the end shall be saved. 23 But when they persecute you in this city, flee ye into another: for verily I say unto you, Ye shall not have gone over the cities of Israel till the Son of man be come. 24 The disciple is not above _his_ master, nor the servant above his lord. 25 It is enough for the disciple that he be as his master, and the servant as his lord: if they have called the master of the house Beelzebub, how much more _shall they call_ them of his household? 26 Fear them not therefore: for there is nothing covered, that shall not be revealed; and hid, that shall not be known. 27 What I tell you in darkness, _that_ speak ye in light: and what ye hear in the ear, _that_ preach ye upon the house-tops. 28 And fear not them which kill the body, but are not able to kill the soul: but rather fear him which is able to destroy both soul and body in hell. 29 Are not two sparrows sold for a farthing? and one of them shall not fall on the ground without your Father. 30 But the very hairs of your head are all numbered. 31 Fear ye not therefore, ye are of more value than many sparrows. 32 Whosoever therefore shall confess me before men, him will I confess also before my Father which is in heaven. 33 But whosoever shall deny me before men, him will I also deny before my Father which is in heaven. 34 Think not that I am come to send peace on earth; I came not to send peace, but a sword. 35 For I am come to set a man at variance against his father, and the daughter against her mother, and the daughter-in-law against her mother-in-law. 36 And a man’s foes _shall be_ they of his own household.(171) 37 He that loveth father or mother more than me, is not worthy of me: and he that loveth son or daughter more than me, is not worthy of me. 38 And he that taketh not his cross, and followeth after me, is not worthy of me. 39 He that findeth his life shall lose it: and he that loseth his life for my sake, shall find it. 40 He that receiveth you, receiveth me; and he that receiveth me, receiveth him that sent me. 41 He that receiveth a prophet in the name of a prophet, shall receive a prophet’s reward; and he that receiveth a righteous man in the name of a righteous man, shall receive a righteous man’s reward. 42 And whosoever shall give to drink unto one of these little ones, a cup of cold _water_ only, in the name of a disciple, verily, I say unto you, he shall in no wise lose his reward. CH. XI. And it came to pass when Jesus And he went round about the had made an end of commanding villages teaching. his twelve disciples, he departed thence to teach and to preach in their cities. 12 And they went out, and preached that men should repent. 13 And they cast out many devils, and anointed with oil many that were sick, and healed them. Luke. CH. IX. 1-6. Then he called his twelve disciples together, and gave them power and authority over all devils, and to cure diseases. 2 And he sent them to preach the kingdom of God, and to heal the sick. 3 And he said unto them, Take nothing for _your_ journey, neither staves, nor scrip, neither bread, neither money; neither have two coats apiece. 4 And whatsoever house ye enter into, there abide, and thence depart. 5 And whosoever will not receive you, when ye go out of that city, shake off the very dust from your feet for a testimony against them. 6 And they departed, and went through the towns, preaching the gospel, and healing everywhere. § 63. Herod holds Jesus to be John the Baptist, whom he had just before beheaded. _Galilee? Perea_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XIV. 1, 2, 6-12. CH. VI. 14-16, 21-29. At that time Herod the 14 And king Herod heard _of tetrarch heard of the fame of him_, (for his name was spread Jesus, abroad,) and he said, That John the Baptist was risen from the dead, and therefore mighty works do shew forth themselves in him. 2 And said unto his 15 Others said, That it is servants,(172) This is John Elias. And others said, That the Baptist; he is risen from it is a prophet, or as one of the dead; and therefore mighty the prophets. works do shew forth themselves in him. 16 But when Herod heard _thereof_, he said, It is John, whom I beheaded: he is risen from the dead. 6 But when Herod’s birth-day 21 And when a convenient day was kept,(173) the daughter of was come, that Herod on his Herodias danced before them, birth-day made a supper to his and pleased Herod. lords, high captains, and chief _estates_ of Galilee: 22 And when the daughter of the said Herodias came in, and danced, and pleased Herod, and them that sat with him, the king said unto the damsel, Ask of me whatsoever thou wilt, and I will give _it_ thee. 7 Whereupon he promised with 23 And he sware unto her, an oath to give her whatsoever Whatsoever thou shalt ask of she would ask. me, I will give _it_ thee, unto the half of my kingdom. 24 And she went forth, and said unto her mother, What shall I ask? And she said, The head of John the Baptist. 8 And she, being before 25 And she came in straightway instructed of her mother, with haste unto the king, and said, Give me here John asked, saying, I will that Baptist’s head in a charger. thou give me, by and by, in a charger, the head of John the Baptist. 9 And the king was sorry: 26 And the king was exceeding nevertheless for the oath’s sorry; _yet_ for his oath’s sake, and them which sat with sake, and for their sakes him at meat, he commanded _it_ which sat with him, he would to be given _her_. not reject her. 10 And he sent, and beheaded 27 And immediately the king John in the prison. sent an executioner, and commanded his head to be brought: and he went and beheaded him in the prison; 11 And his head was brought in 28 And brought his head in a a charger, and given to the charger, and gave it to the damsel: and she brought _it_ damsel; and the damsel gave it to her mother. to her mother. 12 And his disciples came, and 29 And when his disciples took up the body, and buried heard _of it_, they came and it, and went and told Jesus. took up his corpse, and laid it in a tomb. Luke. CH. IX. 7-9. 7 Now Herod the tetrarch heard of all that was done by him: and he was perplexed, because that it was said of some, that John was risen from the dead; 8 And of some, that Elias had appeared; and of others, that one of the old prophets was risen again. 9 And Herod said, John have I beheaded; but who is this of whom I hear such things? And he desired to see him. § 64. The Twelve return. Jesus retires with them across the lake. Five thousand are fed. _Capernaum. N. E. coast of the lake_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XIV. 13-21. CH. VI. 30-44. 13 When Jesus heard _of it_, 30 And the apostles gathered he departed thence by ship themselves together unto into a desert place apart: and Jesus, and told him all when the people had heard things, both what they had _thereof_, they followed him done, and what they had on foot out of the cities. taught. 14 And Jesus went forth, and 31 And he said unto them, Come saw a great multitude, and was ye yourselves apart into a moved with compassion toward desert place, and rest awhile: them, and he healed their for there were many coming and sick. going,(174) and they had no leisure so much as to eat. 32 And they departed into a desert place by ship privately. 33 And the people saw them departing, and many knew him, and ran afoot thither out of all cities, and outwent them, and came together unto him. 34 And Jesus, when he came out, saw much people, and was moved with compassion toward them, because they were as sheep not having a shepherd: and he began to teach them many things. 15 And when it was evening his 35 And when the day was now disciples came to him, saying, far spent, his disciples came This is a desert place, and unto him, and said, This is a the time is now past; send the desert place, and now the time multitude away, that they may _is_ far passed: go into the villages, and buy themselves victuals. 36 Send them away, that they may go into the country round about, and into the villages, and buy themselves bread: for they have nothing to eat. 16 But Jesus said unto them, 37 He answered and said unto They need not depart; give ye them, Give ye them to eat. And them to eat. they say unto him, Shall we go and buy two hundred pennyworth of bread, and give them to eat? 17 And they say unto him, We have here but five loaves, and two fishes. 18 He said, Bring them hither 38 He saith unto them, How to me. many loaves have ye? go and see. And when they knew, they say, Five, and two fishes. 19 And he commanded the 39 And he commanded them to multitude to sit down on the make all sit down by companies grass, and took the five upon the green grass. loaves, and the two fishes, and looking up to heaven, he blessed, and brake, and gave the loaves to _his_ disciples, and the disciples to the multitude. 40 And they sat down in ranks, by hundreds, and by fifties. 41 And when he had taken the five loaves, and the two fishes, he looked up to heaven, and blessed, and brake the loaves, and gave _them_ to his disciples to set before them; and the two fishes divided he among them all. 20 And they did all eat, and 42 And they did all eat, and were filled: and they took up were filled. of the fragments that remained twelve baskets full. 43 And they took up twelve baskets full of the fragments, and of the fishes. 21 And they that had eaten 44 And they that did eat of were about five thousand men, the loaves, were about five besides women and children. thousand men. Luke. John. CH. IX. 10-17. CH. VI. 1-14. 10 And the apostles, when they After these things Jesus went were returned, told him all over the sea of Galilee, which that they had done. And he is _the sea_ of Tiberias. took them, and went aside privately into a desert place, belonging to the city called Bethsaida. 2 And a great multitude followed him, because they saw his miracles which he did on them that were diseased. 11 And the people, when they 3 And Jesus went up into a knew _it_, followed him: and mountain, and there he sat he received them, and spake with his disciples. unto them of the kingdom of God, and healed them that had need of healing. 4 And the passover, a feast of the Jews, was nigh. 5 When Jesus then lifted up his eyes, and saw a great company come unto him, he saith unto Philip,(175) Whence shall we buy bread that these may eat? 6 (And this he said to prove him: for he himself knew what he would do.) 12 And when the day began to 7 Philip answered him, Two wear away, then came the hundred pennyworth of bread is twelve, and said unto him, not sufficient for them, that Send the multitude away, that every one of them may take a they may go into the towns and little. country round about, and lodge, and get victuals: for we are here in a desert place. 8 One of his disciples, Andrew, Simon Peter’s brother, saith unto him, 9 There is a lad here, which hath five barley loaves, and two small fishes: but what are they among so many? 13 But he said unto them, Give 10 And Jesus said, Make the ye them to eat. And they said, men sit down. (Now there was We have no more but five much grass in the place.) So loaves and two fishes; except the men sat down in number we should go and buy meat for about five thousand. all this people. 14 (For they were about five 11 And Jesus took the loaves; thousand men.) And he said to and when he had given thanks, his disciples, Make them sit he distributed to the down by fifties(176) in a disciples, and the disciples company. to them that were set down; and likewise of the fishes, as much as they would. 15 And they did so, and made 12 When they were filled, he them all sit down. said unto his disciples, Gather up the fragments that remain, that nothing be lost. 16 Then he took the five 13 Therefore they gathered loaves, and the two fishes, them together, and filled and looking up to heaven, he twelve baskets with the blessed them, and brake, and fragments of the five barley gave to the disciples to set loaves, which remained over before the multitude. and above unto them that had eaten. 17 And they did eat, and were 14 Then those men, when they all filled: and there was had seen the miracle that taken up of fragments that Jesus did, said, This is of a remained to them twelve truth that Prophet that should baskets. come into the world. § 65. Jesus walks upon the water. _Lake of Galilee. Gennesaret_. Matthew. Mark. Ch. XIV. 22-36. CH. VI. 45-56. 22 And straightway Jesus 45 And straightway he constrained his disciples to constrained his disciples to get into a ship, and to go get into the ship, and to go before him unto the other to the other side before unto side, while he sent the Bethsaida, while he sent away multitudes away. the people. 23 And when he had sent the 46 And when he had sent them multitudes away, he went up away, he departed into a into a mountain apart to pray: mountain to pray. and when the evening was come, he was there alone. 24 But the ship was now in the 47 And when even was come, the midst of the sea, tossed with ship was in the midst of the waves: for the wind was sea, and he alone on the land. contrary. 25 And in the fourth watch of 48 And he saw them toiling in the night Jesus went unto rowing; for the wind was them, walking on the sea. contrary unto them: and about the fourth watch of the night he cometh unto them, walking upon the sea, and would have passed by them. 26 And when the disciples saw 49 But when they saw him him walking on the sea, they walking upon the sea, they were troubled, saying, It is a supposed it had been a spirit, spirit; and they cried out for and cried out. fear. 27 But straightway Jesus spake 50 (For they all saw him, and unto them, saying, Be of good were troubled.) And cheer; it is I; be not afraid. immediately he talked with them, and saith unto them, Be of good cheer: it is I; be not afraid. 28 And Peter answered him and said, Lord, if it be thou, bid me come unto thee on the water. 29 And he said, Come. And when Peter was come down out of the ship, he walked on the water, to go to Jesus. 30 But when he saw the wind 51 And he went up unto them boisterous, he was afraid; and into the ship; and the wind beginning to sink, he cried, ceased; and they were sore saying, Lord, save me. amazed in themselves beyond measure, and wondered. 31 And immediately Jesus 52 For they considered not stretched forth _his_ hand, _the miracle_ of the loaves; and caught him, and said unto for their heart was hardened. him, O thou of little faith, wherefore didst thou doubt? 32 And when they were come 53 And when they had passed into the ship, the wind over, they came into the land ceased. of Gennesaret, and drew to the shore. 33 Then they that were in the 54 And when they were come out ship came and worshipped him, of the ship, straightway they saying, Of a truth thou art knew him, the Son of God. 34 And when they were gone 55 And ran through that whole over, they came into the land region round about, and began of Gennesaret. to carry about in beds those that were sick, where they heard he was. 35 And when the men of that 56 And whithersoever he place had knowledge of him, entered, into villages, or they sent out into all that cities, or country, they laid country round about, and the sick in the streets, and brought unto him all that were besought him that they might diseased; touch, if it were but the border of his garment: and as many as touched him were made whole. 36 And besought him that they might only touch the hem of his garment: and as many as touched him were made perfectly whole. John. CH. VI. 15-21. When Jesus therefore perceived that they would come and take him by force, to make him a king, he departed again into a mountain himself alone. 16 And when even was _now_ come, his disciples went down unto the sea, 17 And entered into a ship, and went over the sea toward Capernaum. And it was now dark, and Jesus was not come to them. 18 And the sea arose by reason of a great wind that blew. 19 So when they had rowed about five and twenty or thirty furlongs, they see Jesus walking on the sea, and drawing nigh unto the ship: and they were afraid. 20 But he saith unto them, It is I; be not afraid. 21 Then they willingly received him into the ship: and immediately the ship was at the land whither they went. § 66. Our Lord’s discourse in the Synagogue at Capernaum. Many disciples turn back. Peter’s profession of faith. _Capernaum_. John. CH. VI. 22-71. CH. VII. 1. 22 The day following, when the people which stood on the other side of the sea saw that there was none other boat there, save that one whereinto his disciples were entered, and that Jesus went not with his disciples into the boat, but _that_ his disciples were gone away alone; 23 (Howbeit there came other boats from Tiberias nigh unto the place where they did eat bread, after that the Lord had given thanks:) 24 When the people therefore saw that Jesus was not there, neither his disciples, they also took shipping, and came to Capernaum, seeking for Jesus. 25 And when they had found him on the other side of the sea, they said unto him, Rabbi, when camest thou hither?(177) 26 Jesus answered them and said, Verily, verily, I say unto you, Ye seek me, not because ye saw the miracles, but because ye did eat of the loaves, and were filled. 27 Labour not for the meat which perisheth, but for that meat which endureth unto everlasting life, which the Son of man shall give unto you: for him hath God the Father sealed. 28 Then said they unto him, What shall we do, that we might work the works of God? 29 Jesus answered and said unto them, This is the work of God, that ye believe on him whom he hath sent. 30 They said therefore unto him, What sign shewest thou then, that we may see, and believe thee? what dost thou work? 31 Our fathers did eat manna in the desert; as it is written,(178) He gave them bread from heaven to eat. 32 Then Jesus said unto them, Verily, verily, I say unto you, Moses gave you not that bread from heaven; but my Father giveth you the true bread from heaven. 33 For the bread of God is he which cometh down from heaven, and giveth life unto the world. 34 Then said they unto him, Lord, evermore give us this bread. 35 And Jesus said unto them, I am the bread of life: he that cometh to me, shall never hunger; and he that believeth on me, shall never thirst. 36 But I said unto you, That ye also have seen me, and believe not. 37 All that the Father giveth me, shall come to me; and him that cometh to me, I will in no wise cast out. 38 For I came down from heaven, not to do mine own will, but the will of him that sent me. 39 And this is the Father’s will which hath sent me, that of all which he hath given me, I should lose nothing, but should raise it up again at the last day. 40 And this is the will of him that sent me, that every one which seeth the Son, and believeth on him, may have everlasting life: and I will raise him up at the last day. 41 The Jews then murmured at him, because he said, I am the bread which came down from heaven. 42 And they said, Is not this Jesus the son of Joseph, whose father and mother we know? how is it then that he saith, I came down from heaven? 43 Jesus therefore answered and said unto them, Murmur not among yourselves. 44 No man can come to me, except the Father which hath sent me draw him: and I will raise him up at the last day. 45 It is written in the prophets,(179) And they shall be all taught of God. Every man therefore that hath heard, and hath learned of the Father, cometh unto me. 46 Not that any man hath seen the Father, save he which is of God, he hath seen the Father. 47 Verily, verily, I say unto you, He that believeth on me hath everlasting life. 48 I am that bread of life.(180) 49 Your fathers did eat manna in the wilderness, and are dead. 50 This is the bread which cometh down from heaven, that a man may eat therof, and not die. 51 I am the living bread which came down from heaven: if any man eat of this bread, he shall live for ever: and the bread that I will give is my flesh, which I will give for the life of the world. 52 The Jews therefore strove among themselves, saying, How can this man give us _his_ flesh to eat? 53 Then Jesus said unto them, Verily, verily, I say unto you, Except ye eat the flesh of the Son of man, and drink his blood, ye have no life in you. 54 Whoso eateth my flesh, and drinketh my blood, hath eternal life; and I will raise him up at the last day. 55 For my flesh is meat indeed, and my blood is drink indeed. 56 He that eateth my flesh, and drinketh my blood, dwelleth in me, and I in him. 57 As the living Father hath sent me, and I live by the Father: so he that eateth me, even he shall live by me. 58 This is that bread which came down from heaven: not as your fathers did eat manna, and are dead: he that eateth of this bread shall live for ever. 59 These things said he in the synagogue, as he taught in Capernaum. 60 Many therefore of his disciples, when they had heard _this_, said, This is a hard saying; who can hear it? 61 When Jesus knew in himself that his disciples murmured at it, he said unto them, Doth this offend you? 62 _What_ and if ye shall see the Son of man ascend up where he was before? 63 It is the Spirit that quickeneth; the flesh profiteth nothing: the words that I speak unto you, _they_ are spirit, and _they_ are life. 64 But there are some of you that believe not. For Jesus knew from the beginning who they were that believe not, and who should betray him. 65 And he said, Therefore said I unto you, that no man can come unto me, except it were given unto him of my Father. 66 From that _time_ many of his disciples went back,(181) and walked no more with him. 67 Then said Jesus unto the twelve, Will ye also go away? 68 Then Simon Peter answered him, Lord, to whom shall we go? thou hast the words of eternal life. 69 And we believe, and are sure that thou art that Christ, the Son of the living God. 70 Jesus answered them, Have not I chosen you twelve, and one of you is a devil?(182) 71 He spake of Judas Iscariot _the son_ of Simon: for he it was that should betray him, being one of the twelve. CH. VII. After these things Jesus walked in Galilee: for he would not walk in Jewry, because the Jews sought to kill him. Part V. From Our Lord’s Third Passover, Until His Final Departure From Galilee, At The Festival Of Tabernacles. TIME. _Six months_. § 67. Our Lord justifies his Disciples for eating with unwashen hands. Pharisaic traditions. _Capernaum_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XV. 1-20. CH. VII. 1-23. Then came to Jesus scribes and Then came together unto him Pharisees, which were of the Pharisees, and certain of Jerusalem, saying, the scribes, which came from Jerusalem. 2 Why do thy disciples 2 And when they saw some of transgress the tradition of his disciples eat bread with the elders?(183) for they wash defiled (that is to say, with not their hands when they eat unwashen) hands, they found bread. fault. 3 For the Pharisees, and all the Jews, except they wash _their_ hands oft, eat not, holding the tradition of the elders. 4 And _when they come_ from the market, except they wash, they eat not. And many other things there be, which they have received to hold, as the washing of cups, and pots, and brazen vessels, and tables.(184) 5 Then the Pharisees and scribes asked him, Why walk not thy disciples according to the tradition of the elders, but eat bread with unwashen hands? 3 But he answered and said 6 He answered and said unto unto them, Why do ye also them, Well hath Esaias transgress the commandment of prophesied of you hypocrites, God by your tradition? as it is written, This people honoureth me with _their_ lips, but their heart is far from me. 4 For God commanded,(185) 7 Howbeit, in vain do they saying, Honour thy father and worship me, teaching _for_ mother: and, He that curseth doctrines the commandments of father or mother, let him die men. the death. 5 But ye say, Whosoever shall 8 For, laying aside the say to _his_ father or _his_ commandment of God, ye hold mother, _It is_ a gift, by the tradition of men, _as_ the whatsoever thou mightest be washing of pots and cups: and profited by me; many other such like things ye do. 6 And honour not his father or 9 And he said unto them, Full his mother, _he shall be well ye reject the commandment free_. Thus ye made the of God, that ye may keep your commandment of God of none own tradition. effect by your tradition. 7 _Ye_ hypocrites, well did 10 For Moses said, Honour thy Esaias prophesy of you,(186) father and thy mother; and, saying, Whoso curseth father or mother, let him die the death. 8 This people draweth nigh 11 But ye say, If a man shall unto me with their mouth, and say to his father or mother, honoureth me with _their_ _It is_ Corban, that is to lips; but their heart is far say, a gift, by whatsoever from me. thou mightest be profited by me; _he shall be free_. 9 But in vain they do worship 12 And ye suffer him no more me, teaching _for_ doctrines to do aught for his father or the commandments of men. his mother; 13 Making the word of God of none effect through your tradition, which ye have delivered: and many such like things do ye. 10 And he called the 14 And when he had called all multitude, and said unto them, the people _unto him_, he said Hear, and understand: unto them, Hearken unto me every one _of you_, and understand. 11 Not that which goeth into 15 There is nothing from the mouth defileth a man; but without a man, that entering that which cometh out of the into him, can defile him: but mouth, this defileth a man. the things which come out of him, those are they that defile the man. 12 Then came his disciples, 16 If any man have ears to and said unto him, Knowest hear, let him hear. thou that the Pharisees were offended after they heard this saying? 13 But he answered and said, Ever plant, which my heavenly Father hath not planted, shall be rooted up. 14 Let them alone: they be blind leaders of the blind. And if the blind lead the blind, both shall fall into the ditch. 15 Then answered Peter and 17 And when he was entered said unto him, Declare unto us into the house from the this parable. people, his disciples asked him concerning the parable. 16 And Jesus said, Are ye also 18 And he saith unto them, Are yet without understanding? ye so without understanding also? Do ye not perceive, that whatsoever thing from without entereth into the man, _it_ cannot defile him: 17 Do not ye yet understand, that whatsoever entereth in at the mouth goeth into the belly, and is cast out into the draught? 18 But those things which 19 Because it entereth not proceed out of the mouth come into his heart, but into the forth from the heart; and they belly, and goeth out into the defile the man. draught, purging all meats? 19 For out of the heart 20 And he said, That which proceed evil thoughts, cometh heart of the man, that murders, adulteries, defileth the man. fornications, thefts, false witness, blasphemies: 20 These _are the things_ 21 For from within, out of the which defile a man: but to eat heart of men, proceed evil with unwashen hands defileth thoughts, adulteries, not a man. fornications, murders, 22 Thefts, covetousness, wickedness, deceit, lasciviousness, an evil eye, blasphemy, pride, foolishness; 23 All these evil things come from within, and defile the man. § 68. The daughter of a Syrophenician woman is healed. _Region of Tyre and Sidon_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XV. 21-28. CH. VII. 24-30. 21 Then Jesus went thence, and 24 And from thence he arose, departed into the coasts of and went into the borders of Tyre and Sidon. Tyre and Sidon, and entered into a house, and would have no man know _it_: but he could not be hid. 22 And behold, a woman of 25 For a _certain_ woman, Canaan came out of the same whose young daughter had an coasts, and cried unto him, unclean spirit, heard of him, saying, Have mercy on me, O and came and fell at his feet: Lord, _thou_ son of David; my daughter is grievously vexed with a devil. 23 But he answered her not a 26 (The woman was a Greek, a word. And his disciples came Syrophenician(187) by nation,) and besought him, saying, Send and she besought him that he her away; for she crieth after would cast forth the devil out us. of her daughter. 24 But he answered and said, I 27 But Jesus said unto her, am not sent but unto the lost Let the children first be sheep of the house of Israel. filled: for it is not meet to take the children’s bread, and to cast it unto the dogs. 25 Then came she and worshipped him, saying, Lord, help me. 26 But he answered and said, 28 And she answered and said It is not meet to take the unto him, Yes, Lord: yet the children’s bread and to _cast dogs under the table eat of it_ to dogs. the children’s crumbs. 27 And she said, Truth, Lord: 29 And he said unto her, For yet the dogs eat of the crumbs this saying, go thy way; the which fall from their master’s devil is gone out of thy table. daughter. 28 Then Jesus answered and 30 And when she was come to said unto her, O woman, great her house, she found the devil _is_ thy faith: be it unto gone out, and her daughter thee even as thou wilt. And laid upon the bed. her daughter was made whole from that very hour. § 69. A deaf and dumb man healed; also many others. Four thousand are fed. _The Decapolis_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XV. 29-38. CH. VII. 31-37. CH. VIII. 1-9. 29 And Jesus departed from 31 And again departing from thence, and came nigh unto the the coasts of Tyre and Sidon, sea of Galilee; and went up he came unto the sea of into a mountain, and sat down Galilee, through the midst of there. the coasts of Decapolis. 30 And great multitudes came 32 And they bring unto him one unto him, having with them that was deaf, and had an _those that were_ lame, blind, impediment in his speech; and dumb, maimed, and many others, they beseech him to put his and cast them down at Jesus’ hand upon him. feet; and he healed them: 33 And he took him aside from the multitude, and put his fingers into his ears, and he spit, and touched his tongue: 34 And looking up to heaven, he sighed, and saith unto him, Ephphatha, that is, Be opened. 35 And straightway his ears were opened, and the string of his tongue was loosed, and he spake plain. 36 And he charged them that they should tell no man: but the more he charged them, so much the more a great deal they published _it_; 31 Insomuch that the multitude 37 And were beyond measure wondered, when they saw the astonished, saying, He hath dumb to speak, the maimed to done all things well; he be whole, the lame to walk, maketh both the deaf to hear, and the blind to see: and they and the dumb to speak. glorified the God of Israel. CH. VIII. 32 Then Jesus called his In those days the multitude disciples _unto him_, and being very great, and having said, I have compassion on the nothing to eat, Jesus called multitude, because they his disciples _unto him_, and continue with me now three saith unto them, days, and have nothing to eat: and I will not send them away fasting, lest they faint in the way. 2 I have compassion on the multitude, because they have now been with me three days, and have nothing to eat: 3 And if I send them away fasting to their own houses, they will faint by the way: for divers of them came from far. 33 And his disciples say unto 4 And his disciples answered him, Whence should we have so him, From whence can a man much bread in the wilderness, satisfy these _men_ with bread as to fill so great a here in the wilderness? multitude? 34 And Jesus saith unto them, 5 And he asked them, How many How many loaves have ye? And loaves have ye? And they said, they said, Seven, and a few Seven. little fishes. 35 And he commanded the 6 And he commanded the people multitude to sit down on the to sit down on the ground: and ground. he took the seven loaves, and gave thanks, and brake, and gave to his disciples to set before _them_; and they did set _them_ before the people. 36 And he took the seven 7 And they had a few small loaves and the fishes, and fishes: and he blessed, and gave thanks, and brake _them_, commanded to set them also and gave to his disciples, and before _them_. the disciples to the multitude. 37 And they did all eat, and 8 So they did eat, and were were filled: and they took up filled: and they took up of of the broken _meat_ that was the broken _meat_ that was left seven baskets full. left, seven baskets. 38 And they that did eat were 9 And they that had eaten were four thousand men, besides about four thousand: and he women and children. sent them away. § 70. The Pharisees and Sadducees again require a sign. _Near Magdala._ Matthew. Mark. CH. XV. 39. CH. XVI. 1-4. CH. VIII. 10-12. 39 And he sent away the 10 And straightway he entered multitude, and took ship, and into a ship with his came into the coasts of disciples, and came into the Magdala.(188) parts of Dalmanutha. The Pharisees also with the 11 And the Pharisees came Sadducees came, and, tempting, forth, and began to question desired him that he would shew with him, seeking of him a them a sign from heaven. sign from heaven, tempting him. 2 He answered and said unto them, When it is evening, ye say, _It will be_ fair weather: for the sky is red. 3 And in the morning, _It will be_ foul weather to-day: for the sky is red and lowering. O _ye_ hypocrites, ye can discern the face of the sky; but can ye not discern the signs of the times? 4 A wicked and adulterous 12 And he sighed deeply in his generation seeketh after a spirit, and saith, Why doth sign; and there shall no sign this generation seek after a be given unto it, but the sign sign? Verily I say unto you, of the prophet Jonas. There shall no sign be given unto this generation. § 71. The disciples cautioned against the leaven of the Pharisees, &c. _N. E. coast of the lake of Galilee_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XVI. 4-12. CH. VIII. 13-21. 4 And he left them, and 13 And he left them, and departed. entering into the ship again, departed to the other side. 5 And when his disciples were 14 Now _the disciples_ had come to the other side, they forgotten to take bread, had forgotten to take bread. neither had they in the ship with them more than one loaf. 6 Then Jesus said unto them, 15 And he charged them, Take heed and beware of the saying, Take heed, beware of leaven of the Pharisees and of the leaven of the Pharisees, the Sadducees. and _of_ the leaven of Herod. 7 And they reasoned among 16 And they reasoned among themselves, saying, _It is_ themselves, saying, _It is_ because we have taken no because we have no bread. bread. 8 _Which_ when Jesus 17 And when Jesus knew _it_, perceived, he said unto them, he saith unto them, Why reason O ye of little faith, why ye, because ye have no bread? reason ye among yourselves, perceive ye not yet, neither because ye have brought no understand? have ye your heart bread? yet hardened? 18 Having eyes, see ye not? and having ears, hear ye not? and do ye not remember? 9 Do ye not yet understand, 19 When I brake the five neither remember the five loaves among five thousand, loaves of the five thousand, how many baskets full of and how many baskets ye took fragments took ye up? They say up? unto him, Twelve. 10 Neither the seven loaves of 20 And when the seven among the four thousand, and how four thousand, how many many baskets ye took up? baskets full of fragments took ye up? And they said, Seven.(189) 11 How is it that ye do not 21 And he said unto them, How understand that I spake _it_ is it that ye do not not to you concerning bread, understand? that ye should beware of the leaven of the Pharisees and of the Sadducees? 12 Then understood they how that he bade _them_ not beware of the leaven of bread, but of the doctrine of the Pharisees and of the Sadducees. § 72. A blind man healed. _Bethsaida. (Julias.)_ Mark. CH. VIII. 22-26. 22 And he cometh to Bethsaida; and they bring a blind man unto him, and besought him to touch him. 23 And he took the blind man by the hand, and led him out of the town;(190) and when he had spit on his eyes, and put his hands upon him, he asked him if he saw aught. 24 And he looked up, and said, I see men as trees walking. 25 After that, he put _his_ hands again upon his eyes, and made him look up: and he was restored, and saw every man clearly. 26 And he sent him away to his house, saying, Neither go into the town, nor tell _it_ to any in the town. § 73. Peter and the others again profess their faith in Christ. _Region of Cesarea Philippi_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XVI. 13-20. CH. VIII. 27-30. 13 When Jesus came into the 27 And Jesus went out, and his coasts of Cesarea Philippi, he disciples, into the towns of asked his disciples, saying, Cesarea Philippi: and by the Whom do men say that I, the way he asked his disciples, Son of man, am? saying unto them, Whom do men say that I am? 14 And they said, Some _say 28 And they answered, John the that thou art_ John the Baptist: but some _say_, Baptist: some, Elias; and Elias; and others, One of the others, Jeremias, or one of prophets. the prophets. 15 He saith unto them, But 29 And he saith unto them, But whom say ye that I am? whom say ye that I am? And Peter answereth and saith unto him, Thou art the Christ. 16 And Simon Peter answered and said, Thou art the Christ, the Son of the living God. 17 And Jesus answered and said unto him, Blessed art thou, Simon Bar-jona: for flesh and blood hath not revealed _it_ unto thee, but my Father which is in heaven. 18 And I say also unto thee, That thou art Peter, and upon this rock I will build my church: and the gates of hell shall not prevail against it. 19 And I will give unto thee the keys of the kingdom of heaven: and whatsoever thou shalt bind on earth, shall be bound in heaven; and whatsoever thou shalt loose on earth, shall be loosed in heaven. 20 Then charged he his 30 And he charged them that disciples that they should they should tell no man of tell no man that he was Jesus him. the Christ. Luke. CH. IX. 18-21. 18 And it came to pass, as he was alone praying, his disciples were with him; and he asked them, saying, Whom say the people that I am? 19 They, answering, said, John the Baptist; but some _say_, Elias; and others say, That one of the old prophets is risen again. 20 He said unto them, But whom say ye that I am? Peter, answering, said, The Christ of God. § 74. Our Lord foretells his own death and resurrection, and the trials of his followers. _Region of Cesarea Philippi_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XVI. 21-28. CH. VIII. 31-38. CH. IX. 1. 21 From that time forth began 31 And he began to teach them, Jesus to shew unto his that the Son of man must disciples, how that he must go suffer many things, and be unto Jerusalem, and suffer rejected of the elders, and many things of the elders, and _of_ the chief priests, and chief priests, and scribes, scribes, and be killed, and and be killed, and be raised after three days rise again. again the third day.(191) 22 Then Peter took him, and 32 And he spake that saying began to rebuke him, saying, openly And Peter took him, and Be it far from thee, Lord: began to rebuke him. this shall not be unto thee. 23 But he turned, and said 33 But when he had turned unto Peter, Get thee behind about, and looked on his me, Satan; thou art an offence disciples, he rebuked Peter, unto me: for thou savourest saying, Get thee behind me, not the things that be of God, Satan: for thou savourest not but those that be of men. the things that be of God, but the things that be of men. 24 Then said Jesus unto his 34 And when he had called the disciples If any _man_ will people _unto him_, with his come after me, let him deny disciples also, he said unto himself, and take up his them, Whosoever will come cross, and follow me. after me, let him deny himself, and take up his cross, and follow me. 25 For whosoever will save his 35 For whosoever will save his life, shall lose it: and life, shall lose it; but whosoever will lose his life whosoever shall lose his life for my sake, shall find it. for my sake and the gospel’s, the same shall save it. 26 For what is a man profited, 36 For what shall it profit a if he shall gain the whole man, if he shall gain the world, and lose his own soul? whole world, and lose his own or what shall a man give in soul? exchange for his soul? 37 Or what shall a man give in exchange for his soul? 27 For the Son of man shall 38 Whosoever therefore shall come in the glory of his be ashamed of me, and of my Father, with his angels; and words, in this adulterous and then he shall reward every man sinful generation, of him also according to his works. shall the Son of man be ashamed, when he cometh in the glory of his Father with the holy angels. 28 Verily I say unto you, 1 And he said unto them, There be some standing here, Verily, I say unto you, That which shall not taste of there be some of them that death, till they see the Son stand here which shall not of man coming in his kingdom. taste of death, till they have seen the kingdom of God come with power. Luke. CH. IX. 22-27. 22 Saying, The Son of man must suffer many things, and be rejected of the elders, and chief priests, and scribes, and be slain, and be raised the third day. 23 And he said to _them_ all, If any _man_ will come after me, let him deny himself, and take up his cross daily, and follow me. 24 For whosoever will save his life, shall lose it: but whosoever will lose his life for my sake, the same shall save it. 25 For what is a man advantaged, if he gain the whole world, and lose himself, or be cast away? 26 For whosoever shall be ashamed of me, and of my words, of him shall the Son of man be ashamed, when he shall come in his own glory, and _in his_ Father’s, and of the holy angels. 27 But I tell you of a truth, there be some standing here which shall not taste of death till they see the Kingdom of God. § 75. The Transfiguration. Our Lord’s subsequent discourse. with the three disciples. _Region of Cesarea Philippi_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XVII. 1-13. CH. IX. 2-13. And after six days,(192) Jesus 2 And after six days, Jesus taketh Peter, James, and John taketh _with him_ Peter, and his brother, and bringeth them James, and John, and leadeth up into a high mountain apart. them up into a high mountain apart by themselves; and he was transfigured before them. 2 And was transfigured before 3 And his raiment became them: and his face did shine shining, exceeding white as as the sun, and his raiment snow; so as no fuller on earth was white as the light. can white them. 3 And behold there appeared 4 And there appeared unto them unto them Moses and Elias Elias, with Moses: and they talking with him. were talking with Jesus. 4 Then answered Peter, and 5 And Peter answered and said said unto Jesus, Lord, it is to Jesus, Master, it is good good for us to be here: if for us to be here: and let us thou wilt, let us make here make three tabernacles; one three tabernacles; one for for thee, and one for Moses, thee, and one for Moses, and and one for Elias. one for Elias. 6 For he wist not what to say: for they were sore afraid. 5 While he yet spake, behold, 7 And there was a cloud that a bright cloud overshadowed overshadowed them: and a voice them: and behold, a voice out came out of the cloud, saying, of the cloud, which said, This This is my beloved Son: hear is my beloved Son, in whom I him. am well pleased: hear ye him. 6 And when the disciples heard _it_, they fell on their face, and were sore afraid. 7 And Jesus came and touched them, and said, Arise, and be not afraid. 8 And when they had lifted up 8 And suddenly, when they had their eyes, they saw no man, looked round about, they saw save Jesus only. no man any more, save Jesus only with themselves. 9 And as they came down from 9 And as they came down from the mountain, Jesus charged the mountain, he charged them them, saying, Tell the vision that they should tell no man to no man, until the Son of what things they had seen, man be risen again from the till the Son of man were risen dead. from the dead. 10 And they kept that saying with themselves, questioning one with another what the rising from the dead should mean. 10 And his disciples asked 11 And they asked him, saying, him, saying, Why then say the Why say the scribes that Elias scribes, that Elias must first must first come? come? 11 And Jesus answered and said 12 And he answered and told unto them, Elias truly shall them, Elias verily cometh first come, and restore all first, and restoreth all things: things; and how it is written of the Son of man, that he must suffer many things, and be set at naught. 12 But I say unto you, That 13 But I say unto you, That Elias is come already, and Elias is indeed come, and they they knew him not, but have have done unto him whatsoever done unto him whatsoever they they listed, as it is written listed: likewise shall also of him. the Son of man suffer of them. 13 Then the disciples understood that he spake unto them of John the Baptist. Luke. CH. IX. 28-36. 28 And it came to pass, about an eight days after these sayings, he took Peter, and John, and James, and went up into a mountain to pray. 29 And as he prayed, the fashion of his countenance was altered, and his raiment _was_ white _and_ glistering. 30 And behold, there talked with him two men, which were Moses and Elias: 31 Who appeared in glory, and spake of his decease which he should accomplish at Jerusalem. 32 But Peter and they that were with him were heavy with sleep: and when they were awake, they saw his glory, and the two men that stood with him. 33 And it came to pass, as they departed from him, Peter said unto Jesus, Master, it is good for us to be here: and let us make three tabernacles; one for thee, and one for Moses, and one for Elias: not knowing what he said. 34 While he thus spake, there came a cloud, and overshadowed them: and they feared as they entered into the cloud. 35 And there came a voice out of the cloud, saying, This is my beloved Son: hear him. 36 And when the voice was past, Jesus was found alone. And they kept _it_ close, and told no man(193) in those days any of those things which they had seen. § 76. The healing of a demoniac, whom the disciples could not heal. _Region of Cesarea Philippi_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XVII. 14-21. CH. IX. 14-29. 14 And when they were come to 14 And when he came to _his_ the multitude, there came to disciples, he saw a great him a _certain_ man kneeling multitude about them, and the down to him, and saying, scribes questioning with them. 15 Lord, have mercy on my son; 15 And straightway all the for he is lunatic, and sore people, when they beheld him, vexed, for oft-times he were greatly mazed, and, falleth into the fire, and oft running to _him, saluted him._ into the water. 16 And I brought him to thy 16 And he asked the scribes, disciples, and they could not What question ye with them? cure him. 17 And one of the multitude answered and said, Master, I have brought unto thee my son, which hath a dumb spirit; 18 And wheresoever he taketh him, he teareth him; and he foameth and gnasheth with his teeth, and pineth away; and I spake to thy disciples that they should cast him out, and they could not. 17 Then Jesus answered and 19 He answereth him, and said, O faithless and perverse saith, O faithless generation, generation, how long shall I how long shall I be with you? be with you? how long shall I how long shall I suffer you? suffer you? Bring him hither Bring him unto me. to me. 20 And they brought him unto him: and when he saw him, straightway the spirit tare him; and he fell on the ground, and wallowed, foaming. 21 And he asked his father, How long is it ago since this came unto him? And he said, Of a child. 22 And oft-times it hath cast him into the fire, and into the waters to destroy him: but if thou canst do any thing, have compassion on us, and help us. 23 Jesus said unto him, If thou canst believe, all things are possible to him that believeth. 24 And straightway the father of the child cried out, and said with tears, Lord, I believe: help thou mine unbelief. 25 When Jesus saw that the people came running together, he rebuked the foul spirit, saying unto him, _Thou_ dumb and deaf spirit, I charge thee, come out of him, and enter no more into him. 26 And _the spirit_ cried, and rent him sore, and came out of him: and he was as one dead; insomuch that many said, He is dead. 18 And Jesus rebuked the 27 But Jesus took him by the devil, and he departed out of hand, and lifted him up; and him: and the child was cured he arose. from that very hour. 19 Then came the disciples to 28 And when he was come into Jesus apart, and said, Why the house, his disciples asked could not we cast him out? him privately, Why could we not cast him out? 20 And Jesus said unto them, 29 And he said unto them, This Because of your unbelief: for kind can come forth by verily I say unto you, if ye nothing, but by prayer and have faith as a grain of fasting. mustard-seed, ye shall say unto this mountain, Remove hence to yonder place; and it shall remove; and nothing shall be impossible unto you. 21 Howbeit, this kind goeth not out, but by prayer and fasting. Luke. CH. IX. 37-43. 37 And it came to pass, that on the next day, when they were come down from the hill, much people met him. 38 And behold, a man of the company cried out, saying, Master, I beseech thee look upon my son: for he is mine only child. 39 And lo, a spirit taketh him, and he suddenly crieth out; and it teareth him that he foameth again, and, bruising him, hardly departeth from him. 40 And I besought thy disciples to cast him out, and they could not. 41 And Jesus, answering, said, O faithless and perverse generation, how long shall I be with you, and suffer you? Bring thy son hither. 42 And as he was yet a coming, the devil threw him down, and tare _him_. And Jesus rebuked the unclean spirit, and healed the child, and delivered him again to his father. 43 And they were all amazed at the mighty power of God. § 77, Jesus again foretells his own death and resurrection. (See § 74.) _Galilee_. Matthew. Mark. CH. xvii. 22, 23. CH. ix. 30-32. 30 And they departed thence, and passed through Galilee; and he would not that any man should know it. 22 And while they abode in 31 For he taught his Galilee, Jesus said unto them, disciples, and said unto them, The Son of man shall be The Son of man is delivered betrayed into the hands of into the hands of men, and men: they shall kill him; and after that he is killed, he shall rise the third day. 23 And they shall kill him, 32 But they understood not and the third day he shall be that saying, and were afraid raised again. And they were to ask him. exceeding sorry. Luke. CH. IX. 43-45. 43 But while they wondered every one at all things which Jesus did, he said unto his disciples, 44 Let these sayings sink down into your ears: for the Son of man shall be delivered into the hands of men. 45 But they understood not this saying, and it was hid from them, that they perceived it not: and they feared to ask him of that saying. § 78. The tribute-money miraculously provided. _Capernaum_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XVII. 24-27. CH. IX. 33. 24 And when they were come to 33 And he came to Capernaum: Capernaum, they that received tribute-_money_,(194) came to Peter, and said, Doth not your Master pay tribute? 25 He saith, Yes. And when he was come into the house, Jesus prevented him, saying, What thinkest thou, Simon? of whom do the kings of the earth take custom or tribute? of their own children, or of strangers? 26 Peter saith unto him, Of strangers. Jesus saith unto him, Then are the children free. 27 Notwithstanding, lest we should offend them, go thou to the sea, and cast a hook, and take up the fish that first cometh up: and when thou hast opened his mouth, thou shalt find a piece of money: that take, and give unto them for me and thee. § 79. The disciples contend who should be the greatest. Jesus exhorts to humility, forbearance and brotherly love. _Capernaum_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XVIII. 1-35. CH. IX. 33-50. 33 And being in the house, he asked them, What was it that ye disputed among yourselves by the way? At the same time came the 34 But they held their peace: disciples unto Jesus, saying, for by the way they had Who is the greatest in the disputed among themselves, who kingdom of heaven? _should be_ the greatest. 35 And he sat down, and called the twelve, and saith unto them, if any man desire to be first, _the same_ shall be last of all, and servant of all. 2 And Jesus called a little 36 And he took a child, and child unto him, and set him in set him in the midst of them: the midst of them, and when he had taken him in his arms, he said unto them, 3 And said, Verily, I say unto 37 Whosoever shall receive one you, Except ye be converted, of such children in my name, and become as little children, receiveth me: and whosoever ye shall not enter into the shall receive me, receiveth kingdom of heaven. not me, but him that sent me. 4 Whosoever therefore shall 38 And John answered him, humble himself as this little saying, Master, we saw one child, the same is greatest in casting out devils in thy the kingdom of heaven. name, and he followeth not us; and we forbade him, because he followeth not us. 5 And whoso shall receive one such little child in my name, receiveth me. 6 But whoso shall offend one 39 But Jesus said, Forbid him of these little ones which not: for there is no man which believe in me, it were better shall do a miracle in my name, for him that a millstone were that can lightly speak evil of hanged about his neck, and me. _that_ he were drowned in the depth of the sea. 40 For he that is not against us, is on our part. 7 Wo unto the world because of 41 for whosoever shall give offences! for it must needs be you a cup of water to drink in that offences come; but wo to my name, because ye belong to that man by whom the offence Christ, verily I say unto you, cometh: he shall not lose his reward. 8 Wherefore, if thy hand or 42 And whosoever shall offend thy foot offend thee, cut them one of _these_ little ones off, and cast _them_ from that believe in me, it is thee; it is better for thee to better for him that a enter into life halt or millstone were hanged about maimed, rather than having two his neck, and he were cast hands or two feet, to be cast into the sea. into everlasting fire. 9 And if thine eye offend 43 And if thy hand offend thee, pluck it out, and cast thee, cut it off: It is better _it_ from thee: it is better for thee to enter into life for thee to enter into life maimed, than having two hands with one eye, rather than to go into hell, into the fire having two eyes, to be cast that never shall be quenched: into hell-fire. 10 Take heed that ye despise 44 Where their worm dieth not, not one of these little ones: and the fire is not quenched. for I say unto you, That in heaven their angels do always behold the face of my Father which is in heaven. 11 For the Son of man is come 45 And if thy foot offend to save that which was lost. thee, cut it off: it is better for thee to enter halt into life, than having two feet to be cast into hell, into the fire that never shall be quenched. 12 How think ye? If a man have 46 Where their worm dieth not, a hundred sheep, and one of and the fire is not quenched. them be gone astray, doth he not leave the ninety and nine, and goeth into the mountains, and seeketh that which is gone astray? 13 And if so be that he find 47 And if thine eye offend it, verily I say unto you, he thee, pluck it out: it is rejoiceth more of that better for thee to enter into _sheep_, than of the ninety the kingdom of God with one and nine which went not eye, than having two eyes, to astray. be cast into hell-fire: 14 Even so it is not the will 48 Where their worm dieth not, of your Father which is in and the fire is not quenched. heaven, that one of these little ones should perish. 15 Moreover, if thy brother 49 For every one shall be shall trespass against thee, salted with fire, and every go and tell him his fault sacrifice shall be salted with between thee and him alone; if salt. he shall hear thee, thou hast gained thy brother. 16 But if he will not hear 50 Salt _is_ good: but if the _thee, then_ take with thee salt have lost his saltness, one or two more, that in the wherewith will ye season it? mouth of two or three Have salt in yourselves, and witnesses every word may be have peace one with another. established. 17 And if he shall neglect to hear them, tell _it_ unto the church: but if he neglect to hear the church, let him be unto thee as a heathen man and a publican. 18 Verily, I say unto you, Whatsoever ye shall bind on earth, shall be bound in heaven: and whatsoever ye shall loose on earth, shall be loosed in heaven. 19 Again I say unto you, That if two of you shall agree on earth, as touching anything that they shall ask, it shall be done for them of my Father which is in heaven. 20 For where two or three are gathered together in my name, there am I in the midst of them. 21 Then came Peter to him, and said, Lord, how oft shall my brother sin against me, and I forgive him? till seven times? 22 Jesus saith unto him, I say not unto thee, Until seven times: but, Until seventy times seven. 23 Therefore is the kingdom of heaven likened unto a certain king which would take account of his servants. 24 And when he had begun to reckon, one was brought unto him which owed him ten thousand talents. 25 But forasmuch as he had not to pay, his lord commanded him to be sold, and his wife and children, and all that he had, and payment to be made. 26 The servant therefore fell down, and worshipped him, saying, Lord, have patience with me, and I will pay thee all. 27 Then the lord of that servant was moved with compassion, and loosed him, and forgave him the debt 28 But the same servant went out, and found one of his fellow-servants, which owed him a hundred pence: and he laid hands on him, and took _him_ by the throat, saying, Pay me that thou owest. 20 And his fellow-servant fell down at his feet, and besought him, saying, Have patience with me, and I will pay thee all. 30 And he would not: but went and cast him into prison, till he should pay the debt. 31 So when his fellow-servants saw what was done, they were very sorry, and came and told unto their lord all that was done. 32 Then his lord, after that he had called him, said unto him, O thou wicked servant, I forgave thee all that debt, because thou desiredst me: 33 Shouldest not thou also have had compassion on thy fellow-servant, even as I had pity on thee? 34 And his lord was wroth, and delivered him to the tormentors, till he should pay all that was due unto him. 35 So likewise shall my heavenly Father do also unto you, if ye from your hearts forgive not every one his brother their trespasses. Luke. CH. IX. 46-50. 46 Then there arose a reasoning among them, which of them should be greatest. 47 And Jesus perceiving the thought of their heart, took a child, and set him by him, 48 And said unto them, Whosoever shall receive this child in my name, receiveth me; and whosoever shall receive me, receiveth him that sent me: for he that is least among you all, the same shall be great. 49 And John answered and said, Master, we saw one casting out devils(195) in thy name; and we forbade him, because he followeth not with us. 50 And Jesus said unto him, Forbid _him_ not: for he that is not against us, is for us.(196) § 80. The Seventy instructed, and sent out. _Capernaum_. Luke. CH. X. 1-16. After these things, the Lord appointed other seventy also, and sent them two and two before his face into every city, and place, whither he himself would come. 2 Therefore said he unto them, The harvest truly _is_ great, but the labourers _are_ few: pray ye therefore the Lord of the harvest, that he would send forth labourers into his harvest. 3 Go your ways: behold, I send you forth as lambs among wolves. 4 Carry neither purse, nor scrip, nor shoes: and salute no man by the way.(197) 5 And into whatsoever house ye enter, first say, Peace _be_ to this house. 6 And if the son of peace be there, your peace shall rest upon it: if not, it shall turn to you again. 7 And in the same house remain, eating and drinking such things as they give: for the labourer _is_ worthy of his hire. Go not from house to house. 8 And into whatsoever city ye enter, and they receive you, eat such things as are set before you. 9 And heal the sick that are therein, and say unto them, The kingdom of God is come nigh unto you. 10 But into whatsoever city ye enter, and they receive you not, go your ways out into the streets of the same, and say, 11 Even the very dust of your city which cleaveth on us, we do wipe off against you: notwithstanding, be ye sure of this, that the kingdom of God is come nigh unto you. 12 But I say unto you, That it shall be more tolerable in that day for Sodom than for that city. 13 Wo unto thee, Chorazin! wo unto thee, Bethsaida! for if the mighty works had been done in Tyre and Sidon, which have been done in you, they had a great while ago repented, sitting in sackcloth and ashes. 14 But it shall be more tolerable for Tyre and Sidon at the judgment, than for you. 15 And thou, Capernaum, which art exalted to heaven, shall be thrust down to hell. 16 He that heareth you, heareth me; and he that despiseth you, despiseth me; and he that despiseth me, despiseth him that sent me. § 81. Jesus goes up to the feast of tabernacles. His final departure from Galilee. Incidents in Samaria. Luke. John. CH. IX. 51-56. CH. VII. 2-10. 51 And it came to pass, when 2 Now the Jews’ feast of the time was come that he tabernacles was at hand. should be received up, he steadfastly set his face to go to Jerusalem, 52 And sent messengers before 3 His brethren therefore said his face: and they went and unto him, Depart hence, and go entered into a village of the into Judea, that thy disciples Samaritans, to make ready for also may see the works that him. thou doest. 53 And they did not receive 4 For _there is_ no man _that_ him,(198) because his face was doeth anything in secret, and as though he would go to he himself seeketh to be known Jerusalem. openly. If thou do these things, show thyself to the world. 54 And when his disciples 5 (For neither did his James and John saw _this_, brethren believe in him.) they said, Lord, wilt thou that we command fire to come down from heaven, and consume them, even as Elias did? 55 But he turned, and rebuked 6 Then Jesus said unto them, them, and said, Ye know not My time is not yet come: but what manner of spirit ye are your time is always ready. of. 56 For the Son of man is not 7 The world cannot hate you; come to destroy men’s lives, but me it hateth, because I but to save _them_. And they testify of it, that the works went to another village. thereof are evil. 8 Go ye up unto this feast: I go not up yet unto this feast; for my time is not yet full come. 9 When he had said these words unto them, he abode _still_ in Galilee. 10 But when his brethren were gone up, then went he also up unto the feast, not openly, but as it were in secret. § 82. Ten lepers cleansed. _Samaria_. Luke. CH. XVII. 11-19. 11 And it came to pass, as he went to Jerusalem, that he passed through the midst of Samaria and Galilee. 12 And as he entered into a certain village, there met him ten men that were lepers, which stood afar off: 13 And they lifted up _their_ voices, and said, Jesus, Master, have mercy on us. 14 And when he saw _them_, he said unto them, Go shew yourselves unto the priests. And it came to pass, that, as they went, they were cleansed. 15 And one of them, when he saw that he was healed, turned back, and with a loud voice glorified God, 16 And fell down on _his_ face at his feet, giving him thanks: and he was a Samaritan. 17 And Jesus answering, said, Were there not ten cleansed? but where _are_ the nine? 18 There are not found that returned to give glory to God, save this stranger. 19 And he said unto him, Arise, go thy way: thy faith hath made thee whole. Part VI. The Festival Of Tabernacles And The Subsequent Transactions, Until Our Lord’s Arrival At Bethany, Six Days Before The Fourth Passover. TIME. _Six months, less one week._ § 83. Jesus at the festival of Tabernacles. His public teaching. _Jerusalem_. John. CH. VII. 11-53. CH. VIII. 1. 11 Then the Jews sought him at the feast, and said, Where is he? 12 And there was much murmuring among the people concerning him: for some said, He is a good man: others said, Nay; but he deceiveth the people. 13 Howbeit, no man spake openly of him, for fear of the Jews. 14 Now, about the midst of the feast, Jesus went up into the temple and taught. 15 And the Jews marvelled, saying, How knoweth this man letters, having never learned? 16 Jesus answered them, and said, My doctrine is not mine, but his that sent me. 17 If any man will do his will, he shall know of the doctrine, whether it be of God, or _whether_ I speak of myself. 18 He that speaketh of himself, seeketh his own glory: but he that seeketh his glory that sent him, the same is true, and no unrighteousness is in him. 19 Did not Moses give you the law, and _yet_ none of you keepeth the law? Why go ye about to kill me? 20 The people answered and said, Thou hast a devil: who goeth about to kill thee? 21 Jesus answered and said unto them, I have done one work, and ye all marvel. 22 Moses therefore gave unto you circumcision, (not because it is of Moses, but of the fathers;) and ye on the sabbath-day circumcise a man.(199) 23 If a man on the sabbath-day receive circumcision, that the law of Moses should not be broken; are ye angry at me, because I have made a man every whit whole on the sabbath-day? 24 Judge not according to the appearance, but judge righteous judgement. 25 Then said some of them of Jerusalem, Is not this he whom they seek to kill? 26 But lo, he speaketh boldly, and they say nothing unto him. Do the rulers know indeed that this is the very Christ? 27 Howbeit, we know this man, whence he is: but when Christ cometh, no man knoweth whence he is. 28 Then cried Jesus in the temple, as he taught, saying, Ye both know me, and ye know whence I am: and I am not come of myself, but he that sent me is true, whom ye know not. 29 But I know him; for I am from him, and he hath sent me. 30 Then they sought to take him: but no man laid hands on him, because his hour was not yet come. 31 And many of the people believed on him, and said, When Christ cometh, will he do more miracles than these which this _man_ hath done? 32 The Pharisees heard that the people murmured such things concerning him: and the Pharisees and the chief priests sent officers to take him. 33 Then said Jesus unto them, Yet a little while am I with you, and _then_ I go unto him that sent me. 34 Ye shall seek me, and shall not find _me_: and where I am, _thither_ ye cannot come. 35 Then said the Jews among themselves, Whither will he go, that we shall not find him? will he go unto the dispersed among the Gentiles, and teach the Gentiles? 36 What _manner_ of saying is this that he said, Ye shall seek me, and shall not find _me_, and where I am, _thither_ ye cannot come; 37 In the last day, that great _day_ of the feast,(200) Jesus stood and cried, saying, If any man thirst, let him come unto me, and drink. 38 He that believeth on me, as the scripture hath said,(201) out of his belly shall flow rivers of living water. 39 (But this spake he of the Spirit, which they that believe on him should receive, for the Holy Ghost was not yet _given_, because that Jesus was not yet glorified.) 40 Many of the people therefore, when they heard this saying, said, Of a truth this is the Prophet. 41 Others said, This is the Christ. But some said, Shall Christ come out of Galilee? 42 Hath not the scripture said,(202) That Christ cometh of the seed of David, and out of the town of Bethlehem, where David was? 43 So there was a division among the people because of him. 44 And some of them would have taken him; but no man laid hands on him. 45 Then came the officers to the chief priests and Pharisees; and they said unto them, Why have ye not brought him? 46 The officers answered, Never man spake like this man. 47 Then answered them the Pharisees, Are ye also deceived? 48 Have any of the rulers, or of the Pharisees believed on him? 49 But this people who knoweth not the law are cursed. 50 Nicodemus saith unto them, (he that came to Jesus by night, being one of them,) 51 Doth our law judge _any_ man before it hear him, and know what he doeth? 52 They answered and said unto him, Art thou also of Galilee: Search, and look: for out of Galilee ariseth no prophet. 53 And every man went unto his own house. CH. VIII. Jesus went unto the mount of Olives:(203) § 84. The woman taken in adultery. _Jerusalem_. John. CH. VIII. 2-11. 2 And early in the morning he came again into the temple, and all the people came unto him; and he sat down and taught them. 3 And the scribes and Pharisees brought unto him a woman taken in adultery; and when they had set her in the midst, 4 They say unto him, Master, this woman was taken in adultery, in the very act. 5 Now Moses in the law(204) commanded us, that such should be stoned:(205) but what sayest thou? 6 This they said, tempting him, that they might have to accuse him. But Jesus stooped down, and with his finger wrote on the ground, _as though he heard them not_. 7 So when they continued asking him, he lifted up himself, and said unto them, He that is without sin among you, let him first cast a stone(206) at her. 8 And again he stooped down, and wrote on the ground. 9 And they which heard _it_, being convicted by their _own_ conscience, went out one by one, beginning at the eldest, _even_ unto the last: and Jesus was left alone, and the woman standing in the midst. 10 When Jesus had lifted up himself, and saw none but the woman, he said unto her, Woman, where are those thine accusers? hath no man condemned thee? 11 She said, No man, Lord. And Jesus said unto her, Neither do I condemn thee: go, and sin no more. § 85. Further public teaching of our Lord. He reproves the unbelieving Jews, and escapes from their hands. _Jerusalem_. John. CH. VIII. 12-59. 12 Then spake Jesus again unto them, saying, I am the light of the world: he that followeth me shall not walk in darkness, but shall have the light of life. 13 The Pharisees therefore said unto him, Thou bearest record of thyself; thy record is not true. 14 Jesus answered and said unto them, Though I bear record of myself, _yet_ my record is true: for I know whence I came, and whither I go: but ye cannot tell(207) whence I come, and whither I go. 15 Ye judge after the flesh, I judge no man. 16 And yet if I judge, my judgment is true: for I am not alone, but I and the Father that sent me. 17 It is also written in your law, that the testimony of two men is true.(208) 18 I am one that bear witness of myself; and the Father that sent me, beareth witness of me. 19 Then said they unto him, Where is thy Father? Jesus answered, Ye neither know me, nor my Father: if ye had known me, ye should have known my Father also. 20 These words spake Jesus in the treasury, as he taught in the temple: and no man laid hands on him, for his hour was not yet come. 21 Then said Jesus again unto them, I go my way, and ye shall seek me, and shall die in your sins: whither I go, ye cannot come. 22 Then said the Jews, Will he kill himself? because he saith, Whither I go, ye cannot come. 23 And he said unto them, Ye are from beneath; I am from above: ye are of this world; I am not of this world. 24 I said therefore unto you, that ye shall die in your sins: for if ye believe not that I am _he_, ye shall die in your sins. 25 Then said they unto him, Who art thou? And Jesus saith unto them, Even _the same_ that I said unto you from the beginning. 26 I have many things to say, and to judge of you: but he that sent me, is true; and I speak to the world those things which I have heard of him. 27 They understood not that he spake to them of the Father. 28 Then said Jesus unto them, When ye have lifted up the Son of man, then shall ye know that I am _he_, and _that_ I do nothing of myself; but as my Father hath taught me, I speak these things. 29 And he that sent me is with me: the Father hath not left me alone; for I do always those things that please him. 30 As he spake these words, many believed on him.(209) 31 Then said Jesus to those Jews which believed on him, If ye continue in my word, _then_ are ye my disciples indeed; 32 And ye shall know the truth, and the truth shall make you free. 33 They answered him, We be Abraham’s seed, and were never in bondage to any man: how sayest thou, Ye shall be made free? 34 Jesus answered them, Verily, verily, I say unto you, Whosoever committeth sin, is the servant of sin. 35 And the servant abideth not in the house for ever, _but_ the Son abideth ever. 36 If the Son therefore shall make you free, ye shall be free indeed. 37 I know that ye are Abraham’s seed; but ye seek to kill me, because my word hath no place in you. 38 I speak that which I have seen with my Father: and ye do that which ye have seen with your father. 39 They answered and said unto him, Abraham is our father. Jesus saith unto them, If ye were Abraham’s children, ye would do the works of Abraham. 40 But now ye seek to kill me, a man that hath told you the truth, which I have heard of God: this did not Abraham. 41 Ye do the deeds of your father. Then said they to him, We be not born of fornication; we have one Father, _even_ God. 42 Jesus said unto them, If God were your Father, ye would love me: for I proceeded forth and came from God; neither came I of myself, but he sent me. 43 Why do ye not understand my speech? even because ye cannot hear my word. 44 Ye are of _your_ father the devil, and the lusts of your father ye will do: he was a murderer from the beginning, and abode not in the truth; because there is no truth in him. When he speaketh a lie, he speaketh of his own: for he is a liar, and the father of it. 45 And because I tell you the truth, ye believe me not. 46 Which of you convinceth me of sin? And if I say the truth, why do ye not believe me? 47 He that is of God, heareth God’s words: ye therefore hear _them_ not, because ye are not of God. 48 Then answered the Jews, and said unto him, Say we not well that thou art a Samaritan, and hast a devil? 49 Jesus answered, I have not a devil: but I honour my Father, and ye do dishonour me. 50 And I seek not mine own glory: there is one that seeketh and judgeth. 51 Verily, verily, I say unto you, If a man keep my saying, he shall never see death. 52 Then said the Jews unto him, Now we know that thou hast a devil. Abraham is dead, and the prophets; and thou sayest, If a man keep my saying, he shall never taste of death. 53 Art thou greater than our father Abraham, which is dead! and the prophets are dead: whom makest thou thyself? 54 Jesus answered, If I honour myself, my honour is nothing: it is my Father that honoureth me, of whom ye say, that he is your God. 55 Yet ye have not known him; but I know him: and if I should say, I know him not, I shall be a liar like unto you: but I know him, and keep his saying. 56 Your father Abraham rejoiced to see my day: and he saw _it_, and was glad. 57 Then said the Jews unto him, Thou art not yet fifty years old, and hast thou seen Abraham? 58 Jesus said unto them, Verily, verily, I say unto you, Before Abraham was, I am. 59 Then took they up stones to cast at him: but Jesus hid himself, and went out of the temple, going through the midst of them, and so passed by. § 86. A lawyer instructed. Love to our neighbour defined. Parable of the Good Samaritan. _Near Jerusalem_. Luke. CH. X. 25-37. 25 And behold, a certain lawyer stood up, and tempted him, saying, Master, what shall I do to inherit eternal life? 26 He said unto him, What is written in the law? how readest thou? 27 And he answering said, Thou shalt love the Lord thy God with all thy heart, and with all thy soul, and with all thy strength, and with all thy mind; and thy neighbour as thyself.(210) 28 And he said unto him, Thou hast answered right: this do, and thou shalt live.(211) 29 But he, willing to justify himself, said unto Jesus, And who is my neighbour? 30 And Jesus answering, said, A certain _man_ went down(212) from Jerusalem to Jericho, and fell among thieves, which stripped him of his raiment, and wounded _him_, and departed, leaving him _half_ dead. 31 And by chance there came down a certain priest that way; and when he saw him, he passed by on the other side. 32 And likewise a Levite, when he was at the place, came and looked _on him_, and passed by on the other side. 33 But a certain Samaritan, as he journeyed, came where he was: and when he saw him, he had compassion _on him_, 34 And went to _him_, and bound up his wounds, pouring in oil and wine, and set him on his own beast, and brought him to an inn, and took care of him. 35 And on the morrow, when he departed, he took out two pence, and gave _them_ to the host, and said unto him, Take care of him: and whatsoever thou spendest more, when I come again, I will repay thee. 36 Which now of these three, thinkest thou, was neighbour unto him that fell among the thieves? 37 And he said, He that shewed mercy on him. Then said Jesus unto him, Go, and do thou likewise. § 87. Jesus in the house of Martha and Mary. _Bethany_. Luke. CH. X. 38-42. 38 Now it came to pass, as they went, that he entered into a certain village: and a certain woman, named Martha, received him into her house. 39 And she had a sister called Mary, which also sat at Jesus’ feet, and heard his word. 40 But Martha was cumbered about much serving, and came to him, and said, Lord, dost thou not care that my sister hath left me to serve alone? bid her therefore that she help me. 41 And Jesus answered, and said unto her, Martha, Martha, thou art careful, and troubled about many things: 42 But one thing is needful; and Mary hath chosen that good part, which shall not be taken away from her. § 88. The disciples again taught how to pray. _Near Jerusalem_. Luke. CH. XI. 1-13. And it came to pass, that as he was praying in a certain place, when he ceased, one of his disciples said unto him, Lord, teach us to pray, as John also taught his disciples. 2 And he said unto them, When ye pray, say, Our Father which art in heaven, Hallowed be thy name. Thy kingdom come. Thy will be done, as in heaven, so in earth. 3 Give us day by day our daily bread. 4 And forgive us our sins; for we also forgive every one that is indebted to us. And lead us not into temptation; but deliver us from evil. 5 And he said unto them, Which of you shall have a friend, and shall go unto him at midnight,(213) and say unto him, Friend, lend me three loaves: 6 For a friend of mine in his journey is come to me, and I have nothing to set before him? 7 And he from within shall answer and say, Trouble me not: the door is now shut, and my children are with me in bed; I cannot rise and give thee. 8 I say unto you, Though he will not rise and give him, because he is his friend, yet because of his importunity he will rise and give him as many as he needeth. 9 And I say unto you, Ask, and it shall be given you; seek, and ye shall find; knock, and it shall be opened unto you. 10 For every one that asketh receiveth; and he that seeketh findeth; and to him that knocketh, it shall be opened. 11 If a son shall ask bread of any of you that is a father, will he give him a stone? or if _he ask_ a fish, will he for a fish give him a serpent? 12 Or if he shall ask an egg, will he offer him a scorpion? 13 If ye then, being evil, know how to give good gifts unto your children, how much more shall _your_ heavenly Father give the Holy Spirit to them that ask him? § 89. The Seventy return. _Jerusalem?_ Luke. CH. X. 17-24. 17 And the seventy returned again with joy, saying, Lord, even the devils are subject unto us through thy name. 18 And he said unto them, I beheld Satan as lightning fall from heaven. 19 Behold, I give unto you power to tread on serpents and scorpions, and over all the power of the enemy: and nothing shall by any means hurt you. 20. Notwithstanding, in this rejoice not, that the spirits are subject unto you; but rather rejoice, because your names are written in heaven. 21 In that hour Jesus rejoiced in spirit, and said, I thank thee, O Father, Lord of heaven and earth, that thou hast hid these things from the wise and prudent, and hast revealed them unto babes: even so, Father; for so it seemed good in thy sight. 22 All things are delivered to me of my Father: and no man knoweth who the Son is, but the Father; and who the Father is, but the Son, and he to whom the Son will reveal _him_. 23 And he turned him unto _his_ disciples, and said privately, Blessed are the eyes which see the things that ye see. 24 For I tell you, That many prophets and kings have desired to see those things which ye see, and have not seen _them_; and to hear those things which ye hear, and have not heard _them_. § 90. A man born blind is healed on the Sabbath. Our Lord’s subsequent discourses. _Jerusalem_. John. CH. IX. 1-41. CH. X. 1-21. And as _Jesus_ passed by, he saw a man which was blind from _his_ birth. 2 And his disciples asked him, saying, Master, who did sin, this man, or his parents, that he was born blind? 3 Jesus answered, Neither hath this man sinned, nor his parents: but that the works of God should be made manifest in him. 4 I must work the works of him that sent me, while it is day: the night cometh, when no man can work. 5 As long as I am in the world, I am the light of the world. 6 When he had thus spoken, he spat on the ground, and made clay of the spittle, and he anointed the eyes of the blind man with the clay, 7 And said unto him, Go, wash in the pool of Siloam, (which is by interpretation, Sent.) He went his way therefore, and washed, and came seeing. 8 The neighbours therefore, and they which before had seen him that he was blind, said, Is not this he that sat and begged? 9 Some said, This is he: others said, He is like him: _but_ he said, I am _he_. 10 Therefore said they unto him, How were thine eyes opened? 11 He answered and said, A man that is called Jesus, made clay, and anointed mine eyes, and said unto me, Go to the pool of Siloam, and wash; and I went and washed, and I received sight. 12 Then said they unto him, Where is he? He said, I know not. 13 They brought to the Pharisees him that aforetime was blind. 14 And it was the sabbath-day when Jesus made the clay, and opened his eyes. 15 Then again the Pharisees also asked him how he had received his sight. He said unto them, He put clay upon mine eyes, and I washed, and do see. 16 Therefore said some of the Pharisees, This man is not of God, because he keepeth not the sabbath-day. Others said, How can a man that is a sinner do such miracles? And there was a division among them. 17 They say unto the blind man again, What sayest thou of him, that he hath opened thine eyes? He said, He is a prophet. 18 But the Jews did not believe concerning him, that he had been blind, and received his sight, until they called the parents of him that had received his sight. 19 And they asked them, saying, Is this your son, who ye say was born blind? How then doth he now see? 20 His parents answered them and said, We know that this is our son, and that he was born blind: 21 But by what means he now seeth, we know not; or who hath opened his eyes, we know not: he is of age; ask him: he shall speak for himself. 22 These _words_ spake his parents, because they feared the Jews: for the Jews had agreed already, that if any man did confess that he was Christ, he should be put out of the synagogue. 23 Therefore said his parents, He is of age; ask him. 24 Then again called they the man that was blind, and said unto him, Give God the praise: we know that this man is a sinner. 25 He answered and said, Whether he be a sinner _or no_, I know not: one thing I know, that, whereas I was blind, now I see. 26 Then said they to him again, What did he to thee? how opened he thine eyes? 27 He answered them, I have told you already, and ye did not hear: wherefore would ye hear _it_ again? will ye also be his disciples? 28 Then they reviled him, and said, Thou art his disciple, but we are Moses’ disciples. 29 We know that God spake unto Moses; _as for_ this _fellow_, we know not from whence he is. 30 The man answered and said unto them, Why, herein is a marvellous thing, that ye know not from whence he is, and _yet_ he hath opened mine eyes. 31 Now we know that God heareth not sinners; but if any man be a worshipper of God, and doeth his will, him he heareth. 32 Since the world began was it not heard that any man opened the eyes of one that was born blind. 33 If this man were not of God, he could do nothing. 34 They answered and said unto him, Thou wast altogether born in sins, and dost thou teach us? And they cast him out. 35 Jesus heard that they had cast him out: and when he had found him, he said unto him, Dost thou believe on the Son of God? 36 He answered and said, Who is he, Lord, that I might believe on him? 37 And Jesus said unto him, Thou hast both seen him, and it is he that talketh with thee. 38 And he said, Lord, I believe. And he worshipped him. 39 And Jesus said, For judgment I am come into this world; that they which see not might see; and that they which see might be made blind. 40 And _some_ of the Pharisees which were with him heard these words, and said unto him, Are we blind also? 41 Jesus said unto them, If ye were blind, ye should have no sin: but now ye say, We see; therefore your sin remaineth. CH. X. Verily, verily, I say unto you, He that entereth not by the door into the sheepfold, but climbeth up some other way, the same is a thief and a robber. 2 But he that entereth in by the door is the shepherd of the sheep. 3 To him the porter openeth; and the sheep hear his voice: and he calleth his own sheep by name, and leadeth them out. 4 And when he putteth forth his own sheep, he goeth before them, and the sheep follow him: for they know his voice. 5 And a stranger will they not follow, but will flee from him: for they know not the voice of strangers. 6 This parable spake Jesus unto them: but they understood not what things they were which he spake unto them. 7 Then said Jesus unto them again, Verily, verily, I say unto you, I am the door of the sheep. 8 All that ever came before me are thieves and robbers: but the sheep did not hear them. 9 I am the door: by me if any man enter in, he shall be saved, and shall go in and out, and find pasture. 10 The thief cometh not, but for to steal, and to kill, and to destroy: I am come that they might have life, and that they might have it more abundantly. 11 I am the good shepherd: the good shepherd giveth his life for the sheep. 12 But he that is a hireling, and not the shepherd, whose own the sheep are not, seeth the wolf coming, and leaveth the sheep, and fleeth; and the wolf catcheth them, and scattereth the sheep. 13 The hireling fleeth, because he is a hireling, and careth not for the sheep. 14 I am the good shepherd, and know my _sheep_, and am known of mine. 15 As the Father knoweth me, even so know I the Father: and I lay down my life for the sheep. 6 And other sheep I have, which are not of this fold: them also I must bring, and they shall hear my voice; and there shall be one fold, _and_ one shepherd. 17 Therefore doth my Father love me, because I lay down my life, that I might take it again. 18 No man taketh it from me, but I lay it down of myself. I have power to lay it down, and I have power to take it again. This commandment have I received of my Father. 19 There was a division therefore again among the Jews for these sayings. 20 And many of them said, He hath a devil, and is mad; why hear ye him? 21 Others said, These are not the words of him that hath a devil. Can a devil open the eyes of the blind? § 91. Jesus at Jerusalem at the feast of dedication. He retires beyond Jordan. _Jerusalem. Bethany beyond Jordan_. John. CH. X. 22-42. 22 And it was at Jerusalem the feast of the dedication, and it was winter. 23 And Jesus walked in the temple in Solomon’s porch. 24 Then came the Jews round about him, and said unto him, How long dost thou make us to doubt? If thou be the Christ, tell us plainly. 25 Jesus answered them, I told you, and ye believed not: the works that I do in my Father’s name, they bear witness of me. 28 But ye believe not, because ye are not of my sheep, as I said unto you. 27 My sheep hear my voice, and I know them, and they follow me: 28 And I give unto them eternal life; and they shall never perish, neither shall any pluck them out of my hand. 29 My Father, which gave _them_ me, is greater than all; and none is able to pluck _them_ out of my Father’s hand. 30 I and _my_ Father are one. 31 Then the Jews took up stones again to stone him. 32 Jesus answered them, Many good works have I shewed you from my Father; for which of those works do ye stone me? 33 The Jews answered him, saying, For a good work we stone thee not; but for blasphemy, and because that thou, being a man, makest thyself God. 34 Jesus answered them, Is it not written in your law, I said, Ye are gods?(214) 35 If he called them gods, unto whom the word of God came, and the scripture cannot be broken; 36 Say ye of him whom the Father hath sanctified, and sent into the world, Thou blasphemest; because I said, I am the Son of God? 37 If I do not the works of my Father, believe me not. 38 But if I do, though ye believe not me, believe the works: that ye may know and believe that the Father _is_ in me, and I in him. 39 Therefore they sought again to take him; but he escaped out of their hand, 40 And went away again beyond Jordan, into the place where John at first baptized; and there he abode. 41 And many resorted unto him, and said, John did no miracle; but all things that John spake of this man were true. 42 And many believed on him there. § 92. The raising of Lazarus. _Bethany_. John. CH. XI. 1-46. Now a certain man was sick, named Lazarus, of Bethany, the town of Mary and her sister Martha. 2 (It was _that_ Mary which anointed the Lord with ointment, and wiped his feet with her hair, whose brother Lazarus was sick.) 3 Therefore his sisters sent unto him, saying, Lord, behold, he whom thou lovest is sick. 4 When Jesus heard _that_, he said, This sickness is not unto death, but for the glory of God, that the Son of God might be glorified thereby. 5 Now Jesus loved Martha, and her sister, and Lazarus. 6 When he had heard therefore that he was sick, he abode two days still in the same place where he was. 7 Then after that saith he to _his_ disciples, Let us go into Judea again. 8 _His_ disciples say unto him, Master, the Jews of late sought to stone thee; and goest thou thither again? 9 Jesus answered, Are there not twelve hours in the day? If any man walk in the day, he stumbleth not, because he seeth the light of this world. 10 But if a man walk in the night, he stumbleth, because there is no light in him. 11 These things said he: and after that he saith unto them, Our friend Lazarus sleepeth; but I go that I may awake him out of sleep. 12 Then said his disciples, Lord, if he sleep, he shall do well. 13 Howbeit Jesus spake of his death: but they thought that he had spoken of taking of rest in sleep. 14 Then said Jesus unto them plainly, Lazarus is dead. 15 And I am glad for your sakes that I was not there, to the intent ye may believe; nevertheless, let us go unto him. 16 Then said Thomas, which is called Didymus, unto his fellow-disciples, Let us also go, that we may die with him. 17 Then when Jesus came, he found that he had _lain_ in the grave four days already. 18 (Now Bethany was nigh unto Jerusalem, about fifteen furlongs off:) 19 And many of the Jews came to Martha and Mary, to comfort them concerning their brother. 20 Then Martha, as soon as she heard that Jesus was coming, went and met him: but Mary sat _still_ in the house. 21 Then said Martha unto Jesus, Lord, if thou hadst been here, my brother had not died. 22 But I know that even now, whatsoever thou wilt ask of God, God will give _it_ thee. 23 Jesus saith unto her, Thy brother shall rise again. 24 Martha saith unto him, I know that he shall rise again in the resurrection at the last day. 25 Jesus said unto her, I am the resurrection, and the life: he that believeth in me, though he were dead, yet shall he live: 26 And whosoever liveth, and believeth in me, shall never die. Believest thou this? 27 She saith unto him, Yea, Lord: I believe that thou art the Christ, the Son of God, which should come into the world. 28 And when she had so said, she went her way, and called Mary her sister secretly, saying, The master is come, and calleth for thee. 29 As soon as she heard _that_, she arose quickly, and came unto him. 30 Now Jesus was not yet come into the town, but was in that place where Martha met him. 31 The Jews then which were with her in the house, and comforted her, when they saw Mary that she rose up hastily, and went out, followed her, saying, She goeth unto the grave to weep there. 32 Then when Mary was come where Jesus was, and saw him, she fell down at his feet, saying unto him, Lord, if thou hadst been here, my brother had not died. 33 When Jesus therefore saw her weeping, and the Jews also weeping which came with her, he groaned in the spirit, and was troubled, 34 And said, Where have ye laid him? They say unto him, Lord, come and see. 36 Jesus wept. 36 Then said the Jews, Behold how he loved him! 37 And some of them said, Could not this man, which opened the eyes of the blind, have caused that even this man should not have died? 38 Jesus therefore again groaning in himself, cometh to the grave. It was a cave, and a stone lay upon it. 39 Jesus said, Take ye away the stone. Martha, the sister of him that was dead, saith unto him, Lord, by this time he stinketh: for he hath been _dead_ four days. 40 Jesus saith unto her, Said I not unto thee, that if thou wouldest believe, thou shouldest see the glory of God? 41 Then they took away the stone _from the place_ where the dead was laid. And Jesus lifted up _his_ eyes, and said, Father, I thank thee that thou hast heard me. 42 And I knew that thou hearest me always: but because of the people which stand by, I said _it_, that they may believe that thou hast sent me. 43 And when he thus had spoken, he cried with a loud voice, Lazarus, come forth. 44 And he that was dead came forth, bound hand and foot with graveclothes: and his face was bound about with a napkin. Jesus saith unto them, Loose him, and let him go. 45 Then many of the Jews which came to Mary, and had seen the things which Jesus did, believed on him. 46 But some of them went their ways to the Pharisees, and told them what things Jesus had done. § 93. The counsel of Caiaphas against Jesus. He retires from Jerusalem. _Jerusalem. Ephraim_. John. CH. XI. 47-54. 47 Then gathered the chief priests and the Pharisees a council, and said, What do we? for this man doeth many miracles. 48 If we let him thus alone, all _men_ will believe on him: and the Romans shall come, and take away both our place and nation. 49 And one of them, _named_ Caiaphas, being the high priest that same year, said unto them, Ye know nothing at all, 50 Nor consider that it is expedient for us, that one man should die for the people, and that the whole nation perish not. 51 And this spake he not of himself: but being high priest that year, he prophesied that Jesus should die for that nation; 52 And not for that nation only, but that also he should gather together in one the children of God that were scattered abroad. 53 Then from that day forth they took counsel together for to put him to death. 54 Jesus therefore walked no more openly among the Jews; but went thence unto a country near to the wilderness, into a city called Ephraim, and there continued with his disciples. § 94. Jesus, beyond Jordan, is followed by multitudes. The healing of the infirm woman on the Sabbath. _Valley of Jordan. Perea_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XIX. 1, 2. CH. X. 1. And it came to pass, _that_ And he arose from thence, and when Jesus had finished these cometh into the coasts of sayings, he departed from Judea, by the farther side of Galilee, and came into the Jordan: and the people resort coasts of Judea, beyond unto him again; and, as he was Jordan: wont, he taught them again. 2 And great multitudes followed him, and he healed them there. Luke. CH. XIII. 10-21. 10 And he was teaching in one of the synagogues on the sabbath. 11 And behold, there was a woman which had a spirit of infirmity eighteen years, and was bowed together, and could in no wise lift up _herself_. 12 And when Jesus saw her, he called _her to him_, and said unto her, Woman, thou art loosed from thine infirmity. 13 And he laid _his_ hands on her: and immediately she was made straight, and glorified God. 14 And the ruler of the synagogue answered with indignation, because that Jesus had healed on the sabbath-day, and said unto the people, There are six days in which men ought to work: in them therefore come and be healed, and not on the sabbath-day. 15 The Lord then answered him, and said, _Thou_ hypocrite, doth not each one of you on the sabbath loose his ox or _his_ ass from the stall, and lead _him_ away to watering? 16 And ought not this woman, being a daughter of Abraham, whom Satan hath bound, lo, these eighteen years, be loosed from this bond on the sabbath-day? 17 And when he had said these things, all his adversaries were ashamed: and all the people rejoiced for all the glorious things that were done by him. 18 Then said he, Unto what is the kingdom of God like? and whereunto shall I resemble it? 19 It is like a grain of mustard-seed which a man took, and cast into his garden, and it grew, and waxed a great tree; and the fowls of the air lodged in the branches of it. 20 And again he said, Whereunto shall I liken the kingdom of God? 21 It is like leaven, which a woman took and hid in three measures of meal, till the whole was leavened. § 95. Our Lord goes teaching and journeying towards Jerusalem. He is warned against Herod. _Perea_. Luke. CH. XIII. 22-35. 22 And he went through the cities and villages, teaching, and journeying toward Jerusalem. 23 Then said one unto him, Lord, are there few that be saved? And he said unto them, 24 Strive to enter in at the strait gate: for many, I say unto you, will seek to enter in, and shall not be able. 25 When once the Master of the house is risen up, and hath shut to the door, and ye begin to stand without, and to knock at the door, saying, Lord, Lord, open unto us; and he shall answer and say unto you, I know you not whence ye are: 26 Then shall ye begin to say, We have eaten and drunk in thy presence, and thou hast taught in our streets. 27 But he shall say, I tell you, I know you not whence ye are; depart from me, all _ye_ workers of iniquity. 28 There shall be weeping and gnashing of teeth, when ye shall see Abraham, and Isaac, and Jacob, and all the prophets, in the kingdom of God, and you _yourselves_ thrust out. 29 And they shall come from the east, and _from_ the west, and from the north, and _from_ the south, and shall sit down in the kingdom of God. 30 And behold, there are last, which shall be first; and there are first, which shall be last. 31 The same day there came certain of the Pharisees, saying unto him, Get thee out, and depart hence; for Herod will kill thee. 32 And he said unto them, Go ye and tell that fox, Behold, I cast out devils, and I do cures to-day and to-morrow, and the third _day_ I shall be perfected. 33 Nevertheless, I must work to-day and to-morrow, and the _day_ following: for it cannot be that a prophet perish out of Jerusalem. 34 O Jerusalem, Jerusalem, which killest the prophets, and stonest them that are sent unto thee; how often would I have gathered thy children together, as a hen _doth gather_ her brood under _her_ wings, and ye would not! 35 Behold, your house is left unto you desolate.(215) And verily, I say unto you, Ye shall not see me, until _the time_ come when ye shall say, Blessed _is_ he that cometh in the name of the Lord. § 96. Our Lord dines with a chief Pharisee on the Sabbath. Incidents. _Perea_. Luke. CH. XIV. 1-24. And it came to pass, as he went into the house of one of the chief Pharisees to eat bread on the sabbath-day, that they watched him. 2 And behold, there was a certain man before him which had the dropsy. 3 And Jesus answering, spake unto the lawyers and Pharisees, saying, Is it lawful to heal on the sabbath-day? 4 And they held their peace. And he took _him_, and healed him, and let him go: 5 And answered them, saying, Which of you shall have an ass or an ox fallen into a pit, and will not straightway pull him out on the sabbath-day? 6 And they could not answer him again to these things. 7 And he put forth a parable to those which were bidden, when he marked how they chose out the chief rooms; saying unto them, 8 When thou art bidden of any _man_ to a wedding, sit not down in the highest room, lest a more honourable man than thou be bidden of him; 9 And he that bade thee and him come and say to thee, Give this man place; and thou begin with shame to take the lowest room. 10 But when thou art bidden, go and sit down in the lowest room; that when he that bade thee cometh, he may say unto thee, Friend, go up higher: then shalt thou have worship in the presence of them that sit at _meat_ with thee. 11 For whosoever exalteth himself shall be abased, and he that humbleth himself shall be exalted. 12 Then said he also to him that bade him, When thou makest a dinner or a supper, call not thy friends, nor thy brethren, neither thy kinsmen, nor _thy_ rich neighbours; lest they also bid thee again, and a recompense be made thee. 13 But when thou makest a feast, call the poor, the maimed, the lame, the blind; 14 And thou shalt be blessed: for they cannot recompense thee: for thou shalt be recompensed at the resurrection of the just. 15 And when one of them that sat at meat with him heard these things, he said unto him, Blessed _is_ he that shall eat bread in the kingdom of God. 16 Then said he unto him, A certain man made a great supper, and bade many: 17 And sent his servant at supper-time, to say to them that were bidden, Come, for all things are now ready. 18 And they all with one _consent_ began to make excuse. The first said unto him, I have bought a piece of ground, and I must needs go and see it: I pray thee have me excused. 19 And another said, I have bought five yoke of oxen, and I go to prove them: I pray thee have me excused. 20 And another said, I have married a wife: and therefore I cannot come. 21 So that servant came, and shewed his lord these things. Then the master of the house being angry, said to his servant, Go out quickly into the streets and lanes of the city, and bring in hither the poor, and the maimed, and the halt, and the blind. 22 And the servant said, Lord, it is done as thou hast commanded, and yet there is room. 23 And the lord said unto the servant, Go out into the highways and hedges, and compel _them_ to come in, that my house may be filled. 24 For I say unto you, that none of those men which were bidden, shall taste of my supper. § 97. What is required of true disciples. _Perea_. Luke. CH. XIV. 25-35. 25 And there were great multitudes with him: and he turned, and said unto them, 26 If any _man_ come to me, and hate not his father, and mother, and wife, and children, and brethren, and sisters, yea, and his own life also, he cannot be my disciple. 27 And whosoever doth not bear his cross, and come after me, cannot be my disciple. 28 For which of you, intending to build a tower, sitteth not down first, and counteth the cost, whether he have _sufficient_ to finish _it_? 29 Lest haply after he hath laid the foundation, and is not able to finish _it_, all that behold _it_ begin to mock him, 30 Saying, This man began to build, and was not able to finish. 31 Or what king going, to make war against another king, sitteth not down first, and consulteth whether he be able with ten thousand to meet him that cometh against him with twenty thousand? 32 Or else, while the other is yet a great way off, he sendeth an ambassage, and desireth conditions of peace. 33 So likewise, whosoever he be of you that forsaketh not all that he hath, he cannot be my disciple. 34 Salt _is_ good: but if the salt have lost his savour, wherewith shall it be seasoned? 35 It is neither fit for the land, nor yet for the dunghill; _but_ men cast it out. He that hath ears to hear, let him hear. § 98. Parables of the lost Sheep, &c. and of the Prodigal Son. _Perea_. Luke. CH. XV. 1-32. Then drew near unto him all the publicans and sinners for to hear him. 2 And the Pharisees and scribes murmured, saying, This man receiveth sinners, and eateth with them. 3 And he spake this parable unto them, saying, 4 What man of you having a hundred sheep, if he lose one of them, doth not leave the ninety and nine in the wilderness, and go after that which is lost, until he find it? 5 And when he hath found it, he layeth _it_ on his shoulders, rejoicing. 6 And when he cometh home, he calleth together _his_ friends and neighbours, saying unto them, Rejoice with me; for I have found my sheep which was lost. 7 I say unto you, that likewise joy shall be in heaven over one sinner that repenteth, more than over ninety and nine just persons which need no repentance. 8 Either what woman having ten pieces of silver, if she lose one piece, doth not light a candle, and sweep the house, and seek diligently till she find _it_? 9 And when she hath found _it_, she calleth _her_ friends and _her_ neighbours together, saying, Rejoice with me; for I have found the piece which I had lost. 10 Likewise, I say unto you, There is joy in the presence of the angels of God over one sinner that repenteth. 11 And he said, A certain man had two sons: 12 And the younger of them said to _his_ father, Father, give me the portion of goods that falleth to _me_. And he divided unto them _his_ living. 13 And not many days after, the younger son gathered all together, and took his journey into a far country, and there wasted his substance with riotous living. 14 And when he had spent all, there arose a mighty famine in that land; and he began to be in want. 15 And he went and joined himself to a citizen of that country; and he sent him into his fields to feed swine. 16 And he would fain have filled his belly with the husks that the swine did eat; and no man gave unto him. 17 And when he came to himself, he said, How many hired servants of my father’s have bread enough and to spare, and I perish with hunger! 18 I will arise and go to my father, and will say unto him, Father, I have sinned against heaven, and before thee, 19 And am no more worthy to be called thy son: make me as one of thy hired servants. 20 And he arose, and came to his father. But when he was yet a great way off, his father saw him, and had compassion, and ran, and fell on his neck, and kissed him. 21 And the son said unto him, Father, I have sinned against heaven, and in thy sight, and am no more worthy to be called thy son. 22 But the father said to his servants, Bring forth the best robe, and put it on him; and put a ring on his hand, and shoes on _his_ feet: 23 And bring hither the fatted calf, and kill _it_; and let us eat, and be merry: 24 For this my son was dead, and is alive again; he _was_ lost, and is found. And they began to be merry. 25 Now his elder son was in the field: and as he came and drew nigh to the house, he heard music and dancing. 26 And he called one of the servants, and asked what these things meant. 27 And he said unto him, Thy brother is come; and thy father hath killed the fatted calf, because he hath received him safe and sound. 28 And he was angry, and would not go in; therefore came his father out, and entreated him. 29 And he, answering, said to _his_ father, Lo, these many years do I serve thee, neither transgressed I at any time thy commandment; and yet thou never gavest me a kid, that I might make merry with my friends: 30 But as soon as this thy son was came, which hath devoured thy living with harlots, thou hast killed for him the fatted calf. 31 And he said unto him, Son, thou art ever with me; and all that I have is thine. 32 It was meet that we should make merry, and be glad: for this thy brother was dead, and is alive again; and was lost, and is found. § 99. Parable of the Unjust Steward. _Perea_. Luke. CH. XVI. 1-13. And he said also unto his disciples, There was a certain rich man which had a steward; and the same was accused unto him that he had wasted his goods. 2 And he called him, and said unto him, How is it that I hear this of thee? give an account of thy stewardship: for thou mayest be no longer steward. 3 Then the steward said within himself, What shall I do? for my lord taketh away from me the stewardship: I cannot dig; to beg I am ashamed. 4 I am resolved what to do, that when I am put out of the stewardship, they may receive me into their houses. 5 So he called every one of his lord’s debtors _unto him_, and said unto the first, How much owest thou unto my lord? 6 And he said, A hundred measures of oil. And he said unto him, Take thy bill, and sit down quickly, and write fifty. 7 Then said he to another, And how much owest thou? And he said, A hundred measures of wheat. And he said unto him, Take thy bill, and write four-score. 8 And the lord commended the unjust steward, because he had done wisely: for the children of this world are in their generation wiser than the children of light. 9 And I say unto you, Make to yourselves friends of the mammon of unrighteousness; that when ye fail, they may receive you into everlasting habitations. 10 He that is faithful in that which is least, is faithful also in much; and he that is unjust in the least, is unjust also in much. 11 If therefore ye have not been faithful in the unrighteous mammon, who will commit to your trust the true _riches_? 12 And if ye have not been faithful in that which is another man’s, who shall give you that which is your own? 13 No servant can serve two masters: for either he will hate the one, and love the other; or else he will hold to the one, and despise the other. Ye cannot serve God and mammon. § 100. The Pharisees reproved. Parable of the Rich Man and Lazarus. _Perea_. Luke. CH. XVI. 14-31. 14 And the Pharisees also, who were covetous, heard all these things, and they derided him. 15 And he said unto them, Ye are they which justify yourselves before men; but God knoweth your hearts: for that which is highly esteemed among men, is abomination in the sight of God. 16 The law and the prophets _were_ until John: since that time the kingdom of God is preached, and every man presseth into it. 17 And it is easier for heaven and earth to pass, than one tittle of the law to fail. 18 Whosoever putteth away his wife, and marrieth another, committeth adultery; and whosoever marrieth her that is put away from _her_ husband, committeth adultery. 19 There was a certain rich man, which was clothed in purple and fine linen, and fared sumptuously every day: 20 And there was a certain beggar named Lazarus, which was laid at his gate, full of sores, 21 And desiring to be fed with the crumbs which fell from the rich man’s table: moreover, the dogs came and licked his sores. 22 And it came to pass, that the beggar died, and was carried by the angels into Abraham’s bosom. The rich man also died, and was buried: 23 And in hell he lifted up his eyes, being in torments, and seeth Abraham afar off, and Lazarus in his bosom. 24 And he cried, and said, Father Abraham, have mercy on me, and send Lazarus, that he may dip the tip of his finger in water, and cool my tongue: for I am tormented in this flame. 25 But Abraham said, Son, remember that thou in thy lifetime receivedst thy good things, and likewise Lazarus evil things: but now he is comforted, and thou art tormented. 26 And besides all this, between us and you there is a great gulf fixed: so that they which would pass from hence to you, cannot; neither can they pass to us, that _would come_ from thence. 27 Then he said, I pray thee therefore, father, that thou wouldest send him to my father’s house: 28 For I have five brethren; that he may testify unto them, lest they also come into this place of torment. 29 Abraham saith unto him, They have Moses and the prophets, let them hear them. 30 And he said, Nay, father Abraham: but if one went unto them from the dead, they will repent. 31 And he said unto him, If they hear not Moses and the prophets, neither will they be persuaded, though one rose from the dead. § 101. Jesus inculcates forbearance, faith, humility. _Perea_. Luke. CH. XVII. 1-10. Then said he unto his disciples, It is impossible but that offences will come: but wo _unto him_ through whom they come! 2 It were better for him that a millstone were hanged about his neck, and he cast into the sea, than that he should offend one of these little ones. 3 Take heed to yourselves: If thy brother trespass against thee, rebuke him; and if he repent, forgive him. 4 And if he trespass against thee seven times in a day, and seven times in a day turn again to thee, saying, I repent; thou shalt forgive him. 5 And the apostles said unto the Lord, Increase our faith. 6 And the Lord said, If ye had faith as a grain of mustard-seed, ye might say unto this sycamine-tree, Be thou plucked up by the root, and be thou planted in the sea; and it should obey you. 7 But which of you having a servant ploughing, or feeding cattle, will say unto him by and by, when he is come from the field, Go and sit down to meat? 8 And will not rather say unto him, Make ready wherewith I may sup, and gird thyself, and serve me, till I have eaten and drunken; and afterward thou shalt eat and drink? 9 Doth he thank that servant, because he did the things that were commanded him? I trow not. 10 So likewise ye, when ye shall have done all those things which are commanded you, say, We are unprofitable servants: we have done that which was our duty to do. § 102. Christ’s coming will be sudden. _Perea_. Luke. CH. XVII. 20-37. 20 And when he was demanded of the Pharisees, when the kingdom of God should come, he answered them and said, The kingdom of God cometh not with observation. 21 Neither shall they say, Lo here! or, Lo there! for behold, the kingdom of God is within you. 22 And he said unto the disciples, The days will come, when ye shall desire to see one of the days of the Son of man, and ye shall not see _it_. 23 And they shall say to you, See here! or, See there! go not after _them_, nor follow _them_. 24 For as the lightning that lighteneth out of the one _part_ under heaven, shineth unto the other part under heaven; so shall also the Son of man be in his day. 25 But first must he suffer many things, and be rejected of this generation. 26 And as it was in the days of Noe, so shall it be also in the days of the Son of man. 27 They did eat, they drank, they married wives, they were given in marriage, until the day that Noe entered into the ark, and the flood came, and destroyed them all.(216) 28 Likewise also as it was in the days of Lot: they did eat, they drank, they bought, they sold, they planted, they builded; 29 But the same day that Lot went out of Sodom, it rained fire and brimstone from heaven, and destroyed _them_ all:(217) 30 Even thus shall it be in the day when the Son of man is revealed. 31 In that day, he which shall be upon the house-top, and his stuff in the house, let him not come down to take it away: and he that is in the field, let him likewise not return back. 32 Remember Lot’s wife.(218) 33 Whosoever shall seek to save his life, shall lose it; and whosoever shall lose his life, shall preserve it. 34 I tell you, in that night there shall be two _men_ in one bed; the one shall be taken, and the other shall be left. 35 Two _women_ shall be grinding together; the one shall be taken, and the other left. 36 Two _men_ shall be in the field; the one shall be taken, and the other left. 37 And they answered and said unto him, Where, Lord? And he said unto them, Wheresoever the body _is_, thither will the eagles be gathered together. § 103. Parables. The importunate Widow. The Pharisee and Publican. _Perea_. Luke. CH. XVIII. 1-14. And he spake a parable unto them _to this end_, that men ought always _to_ pray, and not to faint; 2 Saying, There was in a city a judge, which feared not God, neither regarded man. 3 And there was a widow in that city; and she came unto him, saying, Avenge me of mine adversary. 4 And he would not for a while: but afterward he said within himself, Though I fear not God, nor regard man; 5 Yet, because this widow troubleth me, I will avenge her, lest by her continual coming she weary me. 6 And the Lord said, Hear what the unjust judge saith. 7 And shall not God avenge his own elect, which cry day and night unto him, though he bear long with them? 8 I tell you that he will avenge them speedily. Nevertheless, when the Son of man cometh, shall he find faith on the earth? 9 And he spake this parable unto certain which trusted in themselves that they were righteous, and despised others: 10 Two men went up into the temple to pray; the one a Pharisee, and the other a publican. 11 The Pharisee stood and prayed thus with himself, God, I thank thee, that I am not as other men _are_, extortioners, unjust, adulterers, or even as this publican. 12 I fast twice in the week, I give tithes of all that I possess. 13 And the publican, standing afar off, would not lift up so much as _his_ eyes unto heaven, but smote upon his breast, saying, God be merciful to me a sinner. 14 I tell you, this man went down to his house justified _rather_ than the other: for every one that exalteth himself shall be abased; and he that humbleth himself shall be exalted. § 104. Precepts respecting divorce. _Perea_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XIX. 3-12.(219) CH. X. 2-12. 3 The Pharisees also came unto 2 And the Pharisees came to him, tempting him, and saying him, and asked him, Is it unto him, Is it lawful for a lawful for a man to put away man to put away his wife for _his_ wife? tempting him. every cause? 4 And he answered and said 3 And he answered and said unto them, Have ye not unto them, What did Moses read,(220) that he which made command you? _them_ at the beginning, made them male and female, 5 And said,(221) For this 4 And they said, Moses cause shall a man leave father suffered to write a bill of and mother, and shall cleave divorcement, and to put _her_ to his wife: and they twain away. shall be one flesh? 5 And Jesus answered and said unto them, For the hardness of your heart, he wrote you this precept: 6 Wherefore they are no more 6 But from the beginning of twain, but one flesh. What the creation, God made them therefore God hath joined male and female. together, let not man put asunder. 7 They say unto him, Why did 7 For this cause shall a man Moses then command to give a leave his father and mother, writing of divorcement, and to and cleave to his wife; put her away?(222) 8 He saith unto them, Moses, 8 And they twain shall be one because of the hardness of flesh: so then they are not your hearts, suffered you to more twain, but one flesh. put away your wives: but from the beginning it was not so. 9 What, therefore, God hath joined together, let not man put asunder. 9 And I say unto you, 10 And in the house his Whosoever shall put away his disciples asked him again of wife, except _it be_ for the same _matter_. fornication, and shall marry another, committeth adultery; and whoso marrieth her which is put away, doth commit adultery. 11 And he saith unto them, Whosoever shall put away his wife, and marry another, committeth adultery against her. 10 His disciples say unto him, 12 And if a woman shall put If the case of the man be so away her husband,(223) and be with _his_ wife, it is not married to another, she good to marry. committeth adultery. 11 But he said unto them, All _men_ cannot receive this saying, save _they_ to whom it is given. 12 For there are some eunuchs, which were so born from _their_ mother’s womb: and there are some eunuchs, which were made eunuchs of men: and there be eunuchs, which have made themselves eunuchs for the kingdom of heaven’s sake. He that is able to receive _it_, let him receive it. § 105. Jesus receives and blesses little children. _Perea_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XIX. 13-15. CH. X. 13-16. 13 Then were there brought 13 And they brought young unto him little children, that children to him, that he he should put _his_ hands on should touch them; and _his_ them, and pray: and the disciples rebuked those that disciples rebuked them. brought _them_. 14 But Jesus said, Suffer 14 But when Jesus saw _it_, he little children, and forbid was much displeased, and said them not, to come unto me: for unto them, Suffer the little of such is the kingdom of children to come unto me, and heaven. forbid them not: for of such is the kingdom of God. 15 Verily I say unto you, Whosoever shall not receive the kingdom of God as a little child, he shall not enter therein. 15 And he laid _his_ hands on 16 And he took them up in his them, and departed thence. arms; put _his_ hands upon them, and blessed them. Luke. CH. XVIII. 15-17. 15 And they brought unto him also infants, that he would touch them: but when _his_ disciples saw _it_, they rebuked them. 16 But Jesus called them _unto him_, and said, Suffer little children to come unto me, and forbid them not: for of such is the kingdom of God. 17 Verily, I say unto you, Whosoever shall not receive the kingdom of God as a little child, shall in no wise enter therein. § 106. The rich young man. Parable of the Laborers in the Vineyard. _Perea_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XIX. 16-30. CH. XX 1-16. CH. X. 17-31. 16 And behold, one came and 17 And when he was gone forth said unto him, Good Master, into the way, there came one what good thing shall I do running, and kneeled to him, that I may have eternal life? and asked him, Good Master, what shall I do that I may inherit eternal life? 17 And he said unto him, Why 18 And Jesus said unto him, callest thou me good? _there Why callest thou me good? is_ none good but one, _that _there is_ none good, but one, is_, God: but if thou wilt _that is_ God. enter into life, keep the commandments. 18 He saith unto him, Which? 19 Thou knowest the Jesus said, Thou shalt do no commandments, Do not commit murder. Thou shalt not commit adultery, Do not kill, Do not adultery, Thou shalt not steal, Do not bear false steal, Thou shalt not bear witness, Defraud not, Honour false witness, thy father and mother. 19 Honour thy father and _thy_ mother: and, Thou shalt love thy neighbour as thyself.(224) 20 The young man saith unto 20 And he answered and said him, All these things have I unto him, Master, all these kept from my youth up: what have I observed from my youth. lack I yet? 21 Jesus said unto him, If 21 Then Jesus beholding him, thou wilt be perfect, go and loved him, and said unto him, sell that thou hast, and give One thing thou lackest: go thy to the poor, and thou shalt way, sell whatsoever thou have treasure in heaven: and hast, and give to the poor, come _and_ follow me. and thou shalt have treasure in heaven; and come, take up the cross, and follow me. 22 But when the young man 22 And he was sad at that heard that saying, he went saying, and went away grieved: away sorrowful: for he had for he had great possessions. great possessions. 23 Then said Jesus unto his 23 And Jesus looked round disciples, Verily, I say unto about, and saith unto his you, That a rich man shall disciples, How hardly shall hardly enter into the kingdom they that have riches enter of heaven. into the kingdom of God! 24 And the disciples were astonished at his words. But Jesus answereth again, and saith unto them, Children, how hard is it for them that trust in riches to enter into the kingdom of God! 24 And again I say unto you, 25 It is easier for a camel to It is easier for a camel to go go through the eye of a through the eye of a needle, needle, than for a rich man to than for a rich man to enter enter into the kingdom of God. into the kingdom of God. 25 When his disciples heard 26 And they were astonished _it_, they were exceedingly out of measure, saying among amazed, saying Who then can be themselves, Who then can be saved? saved? 26 But Jesus beheld _them_, 27 And Jesus, looking upon and said unto them, With men them, With men _it is_ this is impossible, but with impossible, but not with God: God all things are possible. for with God all things are possible. 27 Then answered Peter, and 28 Then Peter began to say said unto him, Behold, we have unto him, Lo, we have left forsaken all, and followed all, and have followed thee. thee; what shall we have therefore? 28 And Jesus said unto them, 29 And Jesus answered and Verily, I say unto you, That said, Verily I say unto you, ye which have followed me in There is no man that hath left the regeneration, when the Son house, or brethren, or of man shall sit in the throne sisters, or father, or mother, of his glory, ye also shall or wife, or children, or sit upon twelve thrones, lands, for my sake, and the judging the twelve tribes of gospel’s, Israel. 29 And every one that hath 30 But he shall receive a forsaken houses, or brethren, hundred-fold now in this time, or sisters, or father, or houses, and brethren, and mother, or wife, or children, sisters, and mothers, and or lands, for my name’s sake, children, and lands, with shall receive a hundred-fold, persecutions; and in the world and shall inherit everlasting to come, eternal life. life. 30 But many _that are_ first 31 But many _that are_ first shall be last, and the last shall be last; and the last _shall be_ first. first. CH. XX. For the kingdom of heaven is like unto a man _that is_ a householder, which went out early in the morning to hire labourers into his vineyard. 2 And when he had agreed with the labourers for a penny a day, he sent them into his vineyard. 3 And he went out about the third hour, and saw others standing idle in the market-place, 4 And said unto them, Go ye also into the vineyard; and whatsoever is right, I will give you. And they went their way. 5 Again he went out about the sixth and ninth hour, and did likewise. 6 And about the eleventh hour he went out, and found others standing idle, and saith unto them, Why stand ye here all the day idle? 7 They say unto him, Because no man hath hired us. He saith unto them, Go ye also into the vineyard; and whatsoever is right, _that_ shall ye receive. 8 So when evening was come, the lord of the vineyard saith unto his steward, Call the labourers, and give them _their_ hire, beginning from the last unto the first. 9 And when they came that _were hired_ about the eleventh hour, they received every man a penny. 10 But when the first came, they supposed that they should have received more; and they likewise received every man a penny. 11 And when they had received _it_, they murmured against the good man of the house, 12 Saying, These last have wrought _but_ one hour, and thou hast made them equal unto us, which have borne the burden and heat of the day. 13 But he answered one of them, and said, Friend, I do thee no wrong: didst not thou agree with me for a penny? 14 Take _that_ thine _is_, and go thy way: I will give unto this last, even as unto thee. 15 Is it not lawful for me to do what I will with mine own? is thine eye evil because I am good? 16 So the last shall be first, and the first last: for many be called, but few chosen. Luke. CH. XVIII. 18-30. 18 And a certain ruler asked him, saying, Good Master, what shall I do to inherit eternal life? 19 And Jesus said unto him, Why callest thou me good? none _is_ good, save one, _that is_ God. 20 Thou knowest the commandments, Do not commit adultery, Do not kill, Do not steal, Do not bear false witness, Honour thy father and thy mother. 21 And he said, All these have I kept from my youth up. 22 Now, when Jesus heard these things, he said unto him, Yet lackest thou one thing: sell all that thou hast, and distribute unto the poor, and thou shalt have treasure in heaven: and come, follow me. 23 And when he heard this, he was very sorrowful: for he was very rich. 24 And when Jesus saw that he was very sorrowful, he said, How hardly shall they that have riches enter into the kingdom of God! 25 For it is easier for a camel to go through a needle’s eye, than for a rich man to enter into the kingdom of God! 26 And they that heard _it_, said, Who then can be saved? 27 And he said, The things which are impossible with men, are possible with God. 28 Then Peter said, Lo, we have left all, and followed thee. 29 And he said unto them, Verily, I say unto you, There is no man that hath left house, or parents, or brethren, or wife, or children, for the kingdom of God’s sake, 30 Who shall not receive manifold more in this present time, and in the world to come life everlasting. § 107. Jesus a third time foretels his Death and Resurrection. (See § 74, § 77.) _Perea_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XX. 17-19. CH. X. 32-34. 17 And Jesus, going up to 32 And they were in the way, Jerusalem, took the twelve going up to Jerusalem; and disciples apart in the way, Jesus went before them: and and said unto them, they were amazed; and as they followed, they were afraid. And he took again the twelve, and began to tell them what things should happen unto him. 18 Behold, we go up to 33 _Saying_, Behold, we go up Jerusalem; and the Son of man to Jerusalem; and the Son of shall be betrayed unto the man shall be delivered unto chief priests, and unto the the chief priests, and unto scribes, and they shall the scribes; and they shall condemn him to death, condemn him to death, and shall deliver him to the Gentiles; 19 And shall deliver him to 34 And they shall mock him, the Gentiles to mock, and to and shall scourge him, and scourge, and to crucify _him_: shall spit upon him, and shall and the third day he shall kill him: and the third day he rise again. shall rise again. Luke. CH. XVIII. 31-34. 31 Then he took _unto him_ the twelve, and said unto them, Behold, we go up to Jerusalem, and all things that are written by the prophets concerning the Son of man shall be accomplished. 32 For he shall be delivered unto the Gentiles, and shall be mocked, and spitefully entreated, and spitted on; 33 And they shall scourge _him_, and put him to death: and the third day he shall rise again. 34 And they understood none of these things: and this saying was hid from them, neither knew they the things which were spoken. § 108. James and John prefer their ambitious request. _Perea_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XX. 20-28. CH. X. 35-45. 20 Then came to him the mother 35 And James and John, the of Zebedee’s children, with sons of Zebedee, come unto her sons, worshipping _him_, him, saying, Master, we would and desiring a certain thing that thou shouldest do for us of him. whatsoever we shall desire. 21 And he said unto her, What 36 And he said unto them, What wilt thou? She saith(225) unto would ye that I should do for him, Grant that these my two you? sons may sit, the one on thy right hand, and the other on the left, in thy kingdom. 37 They said unto him, Grant unto us that we may sit, one on thy right hand, and the other on thy left hand, in thy glory. 22 But Jesus answered and 38 But Jesus said unto them, said, Ye know not what ye ask. Ye know not what ye ask: can Are ye able to drink of the ye drink of the cup that I cup that I shall drink of, and drink of? and be baptized with to be baptized with the the baptism that I am baptized baptism that I am baptized with? with? They say unto him, We are able. 23 And he saith unto them, Ye 39 And they said unto him, We shall drink indeed of my cup, can. And Jesus said unto them, and be baptized with the Ye shall indeed drink of the baptism that I am baptized cup that I drink of; and with with; but, to sit on my right the baptism that I am baptized hand, and on my left, is not withal shall ye be baptized: mine to give, but _it shall be given to them_ for whom it is prepared of my Father. 40 But to sit on my right hand and on my left hand, is not mine to give; but _it shall be given to them_ for whom it is prepared. 24 And when the ten heard 41 And when the ten heard _it_, they were moved with _it_, they began to be much indignation against the two displeased with James and brethren. John. 25 But Jesus called them _unto 42 But Jesus called them _to him_, and said, Ye know that him_, and saith unto them, Ye the princes of the Gentiles know that they which are exercise dominion over them, accounted to rule over the and they that are great Gentiles, exercise lordship exercise authority upon them. over them; and their great ones exercise authority upon them. 26 But it shall not be so 43 But so shall it not be among you: but whosoever will among you: but whosoever will be great among you, let him be be great among you, shall be your minister; your minister: 27 And whosoever will be chief 44 And whosoever of you will among you, let him be your be the chiefest, shall be servant: servant of all. 28 Even as the Son of man came 45 For even the Son of man not to be ministered unto, but came not to be ministered to minister, and to give his unto, but to minister, and to life a ransom for many. give his life a ransom for many. § 109. The healing of two blind men near Jericho. Matthew. Mark. CH. XX. 29-34. CH. X. 46-52. 29 And as they departed from 46 And they came to Jericho: Jericho, a great multitude and as he went out of Jericho followed him. with his disciples, and a great number of people, blind Bartimeus, the son of Timeus, sat by the highway side, begging. 30 And behold, two blind men 47 And when he heard that it sitting by the wayside, when was Jesus of Nasareth, he they heard that Jesus passed began to cry out and say, by, cried out, saying, Have Jesus, _thou_ son of David, mercy on us, O Lord, _thou_ have mercy on me. son of David. 31 And the multitude rebuked 48 And many charged him that them, because they should hold he should hold his peace: but their peace: but they cried he cried the more a great the more, saying, Have mercy deal, _Thou_ son of David, on us, O Lord, _thou_ son of have mercy on me. David. 32 And Jesus stood still, and 49 And Jesus stood still, and called them, and said, What commanded him to be called: will ye that I shall do unto and they call the blind man, you? saying unto him, Be of good comfort, rise; he calleth thee. 50 And he, casting away his garment, rose, and came to Jesus. 33 They say unto him, Lord, 51 And Jesus answered and said that our eyes may be opened. unto him, What wilt thou that I should do unto thee? The blind man said unto him, Lord, that I might receive my sight. 34 So Jesus had compassion _on 52 And Jesus said unto him, Go them_, and touched their eyes: thy way; thy faith hath made and immediately their eyes thee whole. And immediately he received sight, and they received his sight, and followed him. followed Jesus in the way. Luke. CH. XVIII. 35-43. CH. XIX. 1. 35 And it came to pass, that as he was come nigh(226) unto Jericho, a certain blind man sat by the wayside begging; 36 And hearing the multitude pass by, he asked what it meant. 37 And they told him, that Jesus of Nazareth passeth by. 38 And he cried, saying, Jesus, _thou_ son of David, have mercy on me. 39 And they which went before rebuked him, that he should hold his peace: but he cried so much the more, _Thou_ son of David, have mercy on me. 40 And Jesus stood and commanded him to be brought unto him: and when he was come near, he asked him, 41 Saying, What wilt thou that I shall do unto thee? And he said, Lord, that I may receive my sight. 42 And Jesus said unto him, Receive thy sight: thy faith hath saved thee. 43 And immediately he received his sight, and followed him, glorifying God: and all the people, when they saw _it_, gave praise unto God. CH. XIX. And _Jesus_ entered and passed through Jericho. § 110. The visit to Zaccheus. Parable of the ten Minæ. _Jericho_. Luke. CH. XIX. 2-28. 2 And behold _there was_ a man named Zaccheus, which was the chief among the publicans, and he was rich. 3 And he sought to see Jesus who he was; and could not for the press, because he was little of stature. 4 And he ran before, and climbed up into a sycamore-tree to see him; for he was to pass that _way_. 5 And when Jesus came to the place, he looked up, and saw him, and said unto him, Zaccheus, make haste, and come down: for to-day I must abide at thy house. 6 And he made haste, and came down, and received him joyfully. 7 And when they saw _it_, they all murmured, saying, That he was gone to be guest with a man that is a sinner. 8 And Zaccheus stood, and said unto the Lord; Behold, Lord, the half of my goods I give to the poor; and if I have taken any thing from any man, by false accusation, I restore _him_ four-fold. 9 And Jesus said unto him, This day is salvation come to this house, forasmuch as he also is a son of Abraham. 10 For the Son of man is come to seek and to save that which was lost. 11 And as they heard these things, he added and spake a parable, because he was nigh to Jerusalem, and because they thought that the kingdom of God should immediately appear. 12 He said therefore, A certain nobleman went into a far country to receive for himself a kingdom, and to return.(227) 13 And he called his ten servants, and delivered them ten pounds, and said unto them, Occupy till I come. 14 But his citizens hated him, and sent a message after him, saying, We will not have this _man_ to reign over us. 15 And it came to pass, that when he was returned, having received the kingdom, then he commanded these servants to be called unto him, to whom he had given the money, that he might know how much every man had gained by trading. 16 Then came the first, saying, Lord, thy pound hath gained ten pounds. 17 And he said unto him, Well, thou good servant: because thou hast been faithful in a very little, have thou authority over ten cities. 18 And the second came, saying, Lord, thy pound hath gained five pounds. 19 And he said likewise to him, Be thou also over five cities. 20 And another came, saying, Lord, behold _here is_ thy pound, which I have kept laid up in a napkin: 21 For I feared thee, because thou art an austere man: thou takest up that thou layedst not down, and reapest that thou didst not sow. 22 And he saith unto him, Out of thine own mouth will I judge thee, _thou_ wicked servant. Thou knewest that I was an austere man, taking up that I laid not down, and reaping that I did not sow: 23 Wherefore then gavest not thou my money into the bank, that at my coming I might have required mine own with usury? 24 And he said unto them that stood by, Take from him the pound, and give _it_ to him that hath ten pounds. 25 (And they said unto him, Lord, he hath ten pounds.) 26 For I say unto you, That unto every one which hath, shall be given; and from him that hath not, even that he hath shall be taken away from him. 27 But those mine enemies, which would not that I should reign over them, bring hither, and slay _them_ before me. 28 And when he had thus spoken, he went before, ascending up to Jerusalem. § 111. Jesus arrives at Bethany six days before the Passover. _Bethany_. John. CH. XI. 55-57. CH. XII. 1, 9-11. 55 And the Jews’ passover was nigh at hand: and many went out of the country up to Jerusalem before the passover, to purify themselves. 56 Then sought they for Jesus, and spake among themselves, as they stood in the temple, What think ye, that he will not come to the feast? 57 Now both the chief priests and the Pharisees had given a commandment, that, if any man knew where he were, he should shew _it_, that they might take him. CH. XII. THEN Jesus, six days before the passover, came to Bethany, where Lazarus was which had been dead, whom he raised from the dead. 9 Much people of the Jews therefore knew that he was there: and they came, not for Jesus’ sake only, but that they might see Lazarus also, whom he had raised from the dead. 10 But the chief priests consulted that they might put Lazarus also to death; 11 Because that by reason of him many of the Jews went away, and believed on Jesus. Part VII. Our Lord’s Public Entry Into Jerusalem, And The Subsequent Transactions Before The Fourth Passover. TIME. _Five days._ § 112. Our Lord’s public entry into Jerusalem. (First Day Of The Week.) _Bethany. Jerusalem_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXI. 1-11, 14-17. CH. XI. 1-11. And when they drew nigh unto And when they came nigh to Jerusalem, and were come to Jerusalem, unto Bethphage, and Bethphage, unto the mount of Bethany, at the mount of Olives, then sent Jesus two Olives, he sendeth forth two disciples, of his disciples, 2 Saying unto them, Go into 2 And saith unto them, Go your the village over against you, way into the village over and straightway ye shall find against you: and as soon as ye an _ass_ tied, and a colt with be entered into it, ye shall her: loose _them_, and bring find a colt tied, whereon _them_ unto me. never man sat; loose him, and bring _him_. 3 And if any _man_ say aught 3 And if any man say unto you, unto you, ye shall say, The Why do ye this? say ye that Lord hath need of them; and the Lord hath need of him; and straightway he will send them. straightway he will send him hither. 4 All this was done, that it might be fulfilled which was spoken by the prophet, saying,(228) 5 Tell ye the daughter of Sion, Behold, thy King cometh unto thee, meek, and sitting upon an ass, and a colt the foal of an ass. 6 And the disciples went, and 4 And they went their way and did as Jesus commanded them, found the colt tied by the door without, in a place where two ways met; and they loose him. 5 And certain of them that stood there said unto them, What do ye, loosing the colt? 6 And they said unto them even as Jesus had commanded: and they let them go. 7 And brought the ass and the 7 And they brought the colt to colt, and put on them their Jesus, and cast their garments clothes,(229) and they set on him; and he sat upon him. _him_ thereon. 8 And a very great multitude 8 And many spread their spread their garments in the garments in the way: and way: others cut down branches others cut down branches off from the trees, and strewed the trees, and strewed _them_ _them_ in the way. in the way. 9 And the multitudes that went 9 And they that went before, before, and that followed, and they that followed, cried, cried, saying, Hosanna to the saying, Hosanna: Blessed _is_ Son of David: Blessed _is_ he he that cometh in the name of that cometh in the name of the the Lord. Lord: Hosanna in the highest. 10 Blessed _be_ the kingdom of our father David, that cometh in the name of the Lord: Hosanna in the highest. 10 And when he was come into Jerusalem, all the city was moved, saying, Who is this? 11 And the multitude said, This is Jesus the prophet of Nazareth of Galilee. 14 And the blind and the lame came to him in the temple; and he healed them. 15 And when the chief priests and scribes saw the wonderful things that he did, and the children crying in the temple, and saying, Hosanna to the son of David; they were sore displeased, 16 And said unto him, Hearest thou what these say? And Jesus saith unto them, Yea: have ye never read, Out of the mouth of babes and sucklings thou hast perfected praise?(230) 17 And he left them, and went 11 And Jesus entered into out of the city into Bethany, Jerusalem, and into the and he lodged there. temple: and when he had looked round about upon all things, and now the even-tide was come, he went out unto Bethany, with the twelve. Luke. John. CH. XIX. 29-44. CH. XII. 12-19. 29 And it came to pass, when 12 On the next day, much he was come nigh to Bethphage people that were come to the and Bethany, at the mount feast, when they heard that called _the mount_ of Olives, Jesus was coming to Jerusalem, he sent two of his disciples, 30 Saying, Go ye into the village over against _you_; in the which at your entering ye shall find a colt tied, whereon yet never man sat: loose him, and bring _him hither_. 31 And if any man ask you, Why do ye loose _him_? thus shall ye say unto him, Because the Lord hath need of him. 32 And they that were sent went their way, and found even as he had said unto them. 33 And as they were loosing the colt, the owners thereof said unto them, Why loose ye the colt? 34 And they said, The Lord hath need of him. 35 And they brought him to Jesus: and they cast their garments upon the colt and they set Jesus thereon. 36 And as he went, they spread their clothes in the way. 37 And when he was come nigh, 13 Took branches of even now at the descent of the palm-trees, and went forth to mount of Olives, the whole meet him, and cried, Hosanna; multitude of the disciples Blessed _is_ the King of began to rejoice and praise Israel that cometh in the name God with a loud voice for all of the Lord.(231) the mighty works that they had seen; 38 Saying, Blessed _be_ the 14 And Jesus, when he had King that cometh in the name found a young ass, sat of the Lord: Peace in heaven, thereon; as it is written, and glory in the highest. 15 Fear not, daughter of Sion: behold, thy King cometh, sitting on an ass’s colt. 16 These things understood not his disciples at the first: but when Jesus was glorified, then remembered they that these things were written of him, and _that_ they had done these things unto him. 17 The people therefore that was with him when he called Lazarus out of his grave, and raised him from the dead, bare record. 18 For this cause the people also met him, for that they heard that he had done this miracle. 39 And some of the Pharisees 19 The Pharisees therefore from among the multitude said said among themselves, unto him, Master, rebuke thy Perceive ye how ye prevail disciples. nothing? behold, the world is gone after him. 40 And he answered and said unto them, I tell you, that if these should hold their peace, the stones would immediately cry out. 41 And when he was come near, he beheld the city, and wept over it. 42 Saying, If thou hadst known, even thou, at least in this thy day, the things _which belong_ unto thy peace! but now they are hid from thine eyes. 43 For the days shall come upon thee, that thine enemies shall cast a trench about thee, and compass thee round, and keep thee in on every side, 44 And shall lay thee even with the ground, and thy children within thee: and they shall not leave in thee one stone upon another: because thou knewest not the time of thy visitation. § 113. The barren Fig-tree. The cleansing of the Temple. (Second Day Of The Week.) _Bethany. Jerusalem_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXI. 12, 13, 18, 19. CH. XI. 12-19. 18 Now in the morning, as he 12 And on the morrow, when returned into the city, he they were come from Bethany, hungered. he was hungry. 19 And when he saw a fig-tree 13 And seeing a fig-tree afar in the way, he came to it, and off, having leaves, he came, found nothing thereon, but if haply he might find any leaves only, and said unto it, thing thereon: and when he Let no fruit grow on thee came to it, he found nothing henceforward for ever. And but leaves: for the time of presently the fig-tree figs was not _yet_. withered away. 14 And Jesus answered and said unto it, No man eat fruit of thee hereafter for ever. And his disciples heard _it_. 12 And Jesus went into the 15 And they come to Jerusalem: temple of God, and cast out and Jesus went into the all them that sold and bought temple, and began to cast out in the temple, and overthrew them that sold and bought in the tables of the the temple, and overthrew the money-changers, and the seats tables of the money-changers, of them that sold doves, and the seats of them that sold doves: 16 And would not suffer that any man should carry _any_ vessel through the temple. 13 And said unto them, It is 17 And he taught, saying unto written,(232) My house shall them, Is it not written, My be called the house of prayer, house shall be called, of all but ye have made it a den of nations, the house of prayer? thieves. but ye have made it a den of thieves. 18 And the scribes and chief priests heard _it_, and sought how they might destroy him: for they feared him, because all the people was astonished at his doctrine. 19 And when even was come, he went out of the city. Luke. CH. XIX. 45-48. CH. XXI. 37, 38. 45 And he went into the temple, and began to cast out them that sold therein, and them that bought, 46 Saying unto them, It is written, My house is the house of prayer, but ye have made it a den of thieves. 47 And he taught daily in the temple. But the chief priests, and the scribes, and the chief of the people sought to destroy him, 48 And could not find what they might do: for all the people were very attentive to hear him. CH. XXI. 37 And in the day-time he was teaching in the temple; and at night he went out, and abode in the mount that is called _the mount_ of Olives. 38 And all the people came early in the morning to him in the temple, for to hear him. § 114. The barren Fig-tree withers away. (Third Day Of The Week.) _Between Bethany and Jerusalem_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXI. 20-22. CH. XI. 20-26. 20 And in the morning, as they passed by, they saw the fig-tree dried up from the roots. 20 And when the disciples(233) 21 And Peter calling to saw _it_, they marvelled, remembrance, saith unto him, saying, How soon is the Master, behold, the fig-tree fig-tree withered away! which thou cursed is withered away. 21 Jesus answered and said 22 And Jesus answering, saith unto them, Verily, I say unto unto them, Have faith in God. you, If ye have faith, and doubt not, ye shall not only do this _which is done_ to the fig-tree, but also, if ye shall say unto this mountain, Be thou removed, and be thou cast into the sea; it shall be done. 23 For verily I say unto you, That whosoever shall say unto this mountain, Be thou removed, and be thou cast into the sea; and shall not doubt in his heart, but shall believe that those things which he saith shall come to pass; he shall have whatsoever he saith. 22 And all things whatsoever 24 Therefore I say unto you, ye shall ask in prayer, What things soever ye desire believing, ye shall receive. when ye pray, believe that ye receive _them_, and ye shall have _them_. 25 And when ye stand praying, forgive, if ye have aught against any: that your Father also which is in heaven may forgive you your trespasses. 26 But if ye do not forgive, neither will your Father which is in heaven forgive your trespasses. § 115. Christ’s authority questioned. Parable of the two Sons. (Third Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXI. 23-32. CH. XI. 27-33. 23 And when he was come into 27 And they come again to the temple, the chief priests Jerusalem: and as he was and the elders of the people walking in the temple, there came unto him as he was come to him the chief priests, teaching, and said, By what and the scribes, and the authority doest thou these elders, things? and who gave thee this authority? 28 And say unto him, By what authority doest thou these things? and who gave thee this authority to do these things? 24 And Jesus answered and said 29 And Jesus answered and said unto them, I also will ask you unto them, I will also ask of one thing, which if ye tell you one question, and answer me, I in like wise will tell me, and I will tell you by you by what authority I do what authority I do these these things. things. 25 The baptism of John, whence 30 The baptism of John, was was it? from heaven, or of _it_ from heaven, or of men? men? And they reasoned with answer me. themselves, saying, If we shall say, From heaven; he will say unto us, Why did ye not then believe him? 31 And they reasoned with themselves, saying, If we shall say, From heaven; he will say, Why then did ye not believe him? 26 But if we shall say, Of 32 But if we shall say, Of men; we fear the people: for men; they feared the people: all hold John as a prophet. for all _men_ counted John, that he was a prophet indeed. 27 And they answered Jesus, 33 And they answered and said and said, We cannot tell. And unto Jesus, We cannot tell. he said unto them, Neither And Jesus answering saith unto tell I you by what authority I them, Neither do I tell you by do these things. what authority I do these things. 28 But what think ye? A _certain_ man had two sons; and he came to the first, and said, Son, go work to-day in my vineyard. 29 He answered and said, I will not; but afterward he repented, and went. 30 And he came to the second, and said likewise. And he answered and said, I _go_, sir: and went not. 31 Whether of them twain did the will of _his_ father? They say unto him, The first. Jesus saith unto them, Verily I say unto you, That the publicans and the harlots go into the kingdom of God before you. 32 For John came unto you in the way of righteousness, and ye believed him not: but the publicans and the harlots believed him: and ye, when ye had seen _it_, repented not afterward, that ye might believe him. Luke. CH. XX. 1-8. And it came to pass, _that_ on one of those days, as he taught the people in the temple, and preached the gospel, the chief priests and the scribes came upon _him_, with the elders, 2 And spake unto him, saying, Tell us, By what authority doest thou these things? or who is he that gave thee this authority? 3 And he answered and said unto them, I will also ask you one thing; and answer me: 4 The baptism of John, was it from heaven, or of men? 5 And they reasoned with themselves, saying, If we shall say, From heaven; he will say, Why then believed ye him not? 6 But and if we say, Of men; all the people will stone us: for they be persuaded that John was a prophet. 7 And they answered, That they could not tell whence _it was_. 8 And Jesus said unto them, Neither tell I you by what authority I do these things. § 116. Parable of the wicked husbandmen. (Third Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXI. 33-46. CH. XII. 33 Hear another parable; There And he began to speak unto was a certain householder, them by parables. A _certain_ which planted a vineyard, and man planted a vineyard, and hedged it round about, and set an hedge about _it_, and digged a wine-press in it, and digged a _place for_ the built a tower, and let it out wine-fat, and built a tower, to husbandmen, and went into a and let it out to husbandmen, far country: and went into a far country. 34 And when the time of the 2 And at the season he sent to fruit drew near, he sent his the husbandmen a servant,(235) servants(234) to the that he might receive from the husbandmen, that they might husbandmen of the fruit of the receive the fruits of it. vineyard. 35 And the husbandmen took his 3 And they caught _him_, and servants, and beat one, and beat him, and sent _him_ away killed another, and stoned empty. another. 36 Again he sent other 4 And again he sent unto them servants more than the first: another servant: and at him and they did unto them they cast stones, and wounded likewise. _him_ in the head, and sent _him_ away shamefully handled. 5 And again he sent another; and him they killed, and many others; beating some, and killing some. 37 But last of all, he sent 6 Having yet therefore one unto them his son, saying, son, his well-beloved, he sent They will reverence my son. him also last unto them, saying, They will reverence my son. 38 But when the husbandmen saw 7 But those husbandmen said the son, they said among among themselves, This is the themselves, This is the heir; heir; come, let us kill him, come, let us kill him, and let and the inheritance shall be us seize on his inheritance. ours. 39 And they caught him, and 8 And they took him, and cast _him_ out of the killed _him_, and cast _him_ vineyard, and slew _him_. out of the vineyard. 40 When the lord therefore of 9 What shall therefore the the vineyard cometh, what will lord of the vineyard do? He he do unto those husbandmen? will come and destroy the husbandmen, and will give the vineyard unto others. 41 They say unto him, He will miserably destroy those wicked men, and will let out _his_ vineyard unto other husbandmen, which shall render him the fruits in their seasons. 42 Jesus saith unto them, Did 10 And have ye not read this ye never read in the scripture; The stone which the scriptures, The stone which builders rejected is become the builders rejected, the the head of the corner: same is become the head of the corner: this is the Lord’s doing, and it is marvellous in our eyes?(236) 43 Therefore say I unto you, 11 This was the Lord’s doing, The kingdom of God shall be and it is marvellous in our taken from you, and given to a eyes? nation bringing forth the fruits thereof. 43 Therefore say I unto you, The kingdom of God shall be taken from you, and given to a nation bringing forth the fruits thereof. 44 And whosoever shall fall on this stone, shall be broken: but on whomsoever it shall fall, it will grind him to powder.(237) 45 And when the chief priests 12 And they sought to lay hold and Pharisees had heard his on him, but feared the people; parables, they perceived that for they knew that he had he spake of them. spoken the parable against them: and they left him, and went their way. 46 But when they sought to lay hands on him, they feared the multitude, because they took him for a prophet. Luke. CH. XX. 9-19. 9 Then began he to speak to the people this parable: A certain man planted a vineyard, and let it forth to husbandmen, and went into a far Country for a long time. 10 And at the season he sent a servant to the husbandmen, that they should give him of the fruit of the vineyard: but the husbandmen beat him, and sent _him_ away empty. 11 And again he sent another servant: and they beat him also, and entreated _him_ shamefully, and sent him away empty. 12 And again he sent a third: and they wounded him also, and cast _him_ out. 13 Then said the lord of the vineyard, What shall I do? I will send my beloved son: it may be they will reverence _him_ when they see him. 14 But when the husbandmen saw him, they reasoned among themselves, saying, This is the heir: come, let us kill him, that the inheritance may be ours. 15 So they cast him out of the vineyard, and killed _him_. What therefore shall the lord of the vineyard do unto them? 16 He shall come and destroy these husbandmen, and shall give the vineyard to others. And when they heard it, they said, God forbid. 17 And he beheld them, and said, What is this then that is written, The stone which the builders rejected, the same is become the head of the corner? 18 Whosoever shall fall upon that stone, shall be broken: but on whomsoever it shall fall, it will grind him to powder. 19 And the chief priests and the scribes the same hour sought to lay hands on him; and they feared the people: for they perceived that he had spoken this parable against them. § 117. Parable of the marriage of the King’s Son. (Third Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Matthew. CH. XXII. 1-14. And Jesus answered and spake unto them again by parables, and said, 2 The kingdom of heaven is like unto a certain king, which made a marriage for his son, 3 And sent forth his servants to call them that were bidden to the wedding: and they would not come. 4 Again he sent forth other servants, saying, Tell them which are bidden, Behold, I have prepared my dinner: my oxen and _my_ fatlings _are_ killed, and all things _are_ ready: come unto the marriage. 5 But they made light of _it_, and went their ways, one to his farm, another to his merchandise. 6 And the remnant took his servants, and entreated _them_ spitefully, and slew _them_. 7 But when the king heard _thereof_, he was wroth: and he sent forth his armies, and destroyed those murderers, and burned up their city. 8 Then saith he to his servants, The wedding is ready, but they which were bidden were not worthy. 9 Go ye therefore into the highways, and as many as ye shall find, bid to the marriage. 10 So those servants went out into the highways, and gathered together all as many as they found, both bad and good: and the wedding was furnished with guests. 11 And when the king came in to see the guests, he saw there a man which had not on a wedding-garment: 12 And he saith unto him, Friend, how camest thou in hither, not having a wedding-garment? And he was speechless. 13 Then said the king to the servants, Bind him hand and foot, and take him away, and cast _him_ into outer darkness: there shall be weeping and gnashing of teeth.(238) 14 For many are called, but few _are_ chosen. § 118. Insidious question of the Pharisees. Tribute to Cesar. (Third Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXII. 15-22. CH. XII. 13-17. 15 Then went the Pharisees, 13 And they send unto him and took counsel how they certain of the Pharisees, and might entangle him in _his_ of the Herodians, to catch him talk. in _his_ words. 16 And they sent out unto him 14 And when they were come, their disciples, with the they say unto him, Master, we Herodians, saying, Master, we know that thou art true, and know that thou art true, and carest for no man: for thou teachest the way of God in regardest not the person of truth, neither carest thou for men, but teachest the way of any _man_: for thou regardest God in truth: Is it lawful to not the person of men. give tribute to Cesar, or not? 17 Tell us therefore, What thinkest thou? Is it lawful to give tribute unto Cesar, or not? 18 But Jesus perceived their 15 Shall we give, or shall we wickedness, and said, Why not give? But he, knowing tempt ye me, _ye_ hypocrites? their hypocrisy, said unto them, Why tempt ye me? bring me a penny, that I may see _it_. 19 Shew me the tribute-money. 16 And they brought _it_. And And they brought unto him a he saith unto them, Whose _is_ penny. this image and superscription? And they said unto him, Cesar’s. 20 And he saith unto them, Whose _is_ this image, and superscription? 21 They say unto him, Cesar’s. 17 And Jesus answering, said Then saith he unto them, unto them, Render to Cesar the Render therefore unto Cesar, things that are Cesar’s, and the things which are Cesar’s; to God the things that are and unto God, the things that God’s. And they marvelled at are God’s. him. 22 When they had heard _these words_, they marvelled, and left him, and went their way. Luke. CH. XX. 20-26. 20 And they watched _him_, and sent forth spies, which should feign themselves just men, that they might take hold of his words, that so they might deliver him unto the power and authority of the governor. 21 And they asked him, saying, Master, we know that thou sayest and teachest rightly, neither acceptest thou the person of _any_, but teachest the way of God truly: 22 Is it lawful for us to give tribute unto Cesar, or no? 23 But he perceived their craftiness, and said unto them, Why tempt ye me? 24 Shew me a penny. Whose image and superscription hath it? They answered and said, Cesar’s. 25 And he said unto them, Render therefore unto Cesar the things which be Cesar’s, and unto God the things which be God’s. 26 And they could not take hold of his words before the people: and they marvelled at his answer, and held their peace. § 119. Insidious question of the Sadducees. The Resurrection. (Third Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXII. 23-33. CH. XII. 18-27. 23 The same day came to him 18 Then come unto him the the Sadducees, which say that Sadducees, which say there is there is no resurrection, and no resurrection; and they asked him, asked him, saying, 24 Saying, Master, Moses said, 19 Master, Moses wrote unto If a man die, having no us, If a man’s brother die, children, his brother shall and leave _his_ wife _behind marry his wife, and raise up him_, and leave no children, seed unto his brother.(239) that his brother should take his wife, and raise up seed unto his brother. 25 Now, there were with us 20 Now, there were seven seven brethren: and the first, brethren: and the first took a when he had married a wife, wife, and dying left no seed. deceased: and having no issue, left his wife unto his brother. 26 Likewise the second also, 21 And the second took her, and the third, unto the and died, neither left he any seventh. seed: and the third likewise. 27 And last of all the woman 22 And the seven had her, and died also. left no seed: last of all the woman died also. 28 Therefore, in the 23 In the resurrection resurrection, whose wife shall therefore, when they shall she be of the seven? for they rise, whose wife shall she be all had her. of them? for the seven had her to wife. 29 Jesus answered and said 24 And Jesus answering, said unto them, Ye do err, not unto them, Do ye not therefore knowing the scriptures, nor err, because ye know not the the power of God. scriptures, neither the power of God? 30 For in the resurrection 25 For when they shall rise they neither marry, nor are from the dead, they neither given in marriage, but are as marry, nor are given in the angels of God in heaven. marriage; but are as the angels which are in heaven. 31 But, as touching the 26 And as touching the dead, resurrection of the dead, have that they rise; have ye not ye not read that which was read in the book of Moses, how spoken unto you by God, in the bush God spake unto saying, him, saying, I _am_ the God of Abraham, and the God of Isaac, and the God of Jacob? 32 I am the God of Abraham, 27 He is not the God of the and the God of Isaac, and the dead, but the God of the God of Jacob?(240) God is not living: ye therefore do the God of the dead, but of greatly err. the living. 33 And when the multitude heard _this_, they were astonished at his doctrine. Luke. CH. XX. 27-40. 27 Then came to _him_ certain of the Sadducees (which deny that there is any resurrection) and they asked him, 28 Saying, Master, Moses wrote unto us, If any man’s brother die, having a wife, and he die without children, that his brother should take his wife, and raise up seed unto his brother. 29 There were therefore seven brethren: and the first took a wife, and died without children. 30 And the second took her to wife, and he died childless. 31 And the third took her; and in like manner the seven also: and they left no children, and died. 32 Last of all the woman died also. 33 Therefore in the resurrection, whose wife of them is she? for seven had her to wife. 34 And Jesus answering, said unto them, The children of this world marry, and are given in marriage: 35 But they which shall be accounted worthy to obtain that world, and the resurrection from the dead, neither marry, nor are given in marriage: 36 Neither can they die any more:(241) for they are equal unto the angels; and are the children of God, being the children of the resurrection. 37 Now that the dead are raised, even Moses shewed at the bush, when he calleth the Lord the God of Abraham, and the God of Isaac, and the God of Jacob. 38 For he is not a God of the dead, but of the living: for all live unto him. 39 Then certain of the scribes answering, said, Master, thou hast well said. 40 And after that, they durst not ask him any _question at all_. § 120. A lawyer questions Jesus. The two great Commandments. (Third Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXII. 34-40. CH. XII. 28-34. 34 But when the Pharisees had 28 And one of the scribes heard that he had put the came, and having heard them Sadducees to silence, they reasoning together, and were gathered together. perceiving that he had answered them well, asked him, Which is the first commandment of all? 35 Then one of them _which was_ a lawyer, asked _him a question_, tempting him, and saying, 36 Master, which _is_ the great commandment in the law? 29 And Jesus answered him, The first of all the commandments _is_, Hear, O Israel; The Lord our God is one Lord: 37 Jesus said unto him, Thou 30 And thou shalt love the shalt love the Lord thy God Lord thy God with all thy with all thy heart, and with heart, and with all thy soul, all thy soul, and with all thy and with all thy mind, and mind.(242) with all thy strength: this _is_ the first commandment. 38 This is the first and great 31 And the second _is_ like, commandment. _namely_ this, Thou shalt love thy neighbour as thyself: there is none other commandment greater than these. 39 And the second _is_ like 32 And the scribe said unto unto it, Thou shalt love thy him, Well Master, thou hast neighbour as thyself.(243) said the truth: for there is one God; and there is none other but he: 33 And to love him with all the heart, and with all the understanding, and with all the soul, and with all the strength, and to love _his_ neighbour as himself, is more than all whole burnt-offerings and sacrifices. 34 And when Jesus saw that he answered discreetly, he said unto him, Thou art not far from the kingdom of God. And no man after that durst ask him _any question_. § 121. How is Christ the Son of David? (Third Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXII. 41-46. CH. XII. 35-37. 41 While the Pharisees were gathered together, Jesus asked them, 42 Saying, What think ye of Christ? whose son is he? They say unto him, _The son_ of David. 43 He saith unto them, How 35 And Jesus answered and then doth David in spirit call said, while he taught in the him Lord, saying, temple, How say the scribes that Christ is the son of David? 44 The LORD said unto my Lord, Holy Ghost, The LORD said unto Sit thou on my right hand, my Lord, Sit thou on my right till I make thine enemies thy hand, till I make thine footstool?(244) enemies thy footstool. 45 If David then call him 37 David therefore himself Lord, how is he his son? calleth him Lord, and whence is he _then_ his son? And the common people heard him gladly. 46 And no man was able to answer him a word, neither durst any _man_, from that day forth, ask him any more _questions_. Luke. CH. XX. 41-44. 41 And he said unto them, How say they that Christ is David’s son? 42 And David himself saith in the book of Psalms, The LORD said unto my Lord, Sit thou on my right hand, 43 Till I make thine enemies thy footstool. 44 David therefore calleth him Lord, how _is_ he then his son? § 122. Warnings against the evil example of the Scribes and Pharisees. (Third Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXIII. 1-12. CH. XII. 38, 39. Then spake Jesus to the 38 And he said unto them in multitude, and to his his doctrine, Beware of the disciples, scribes, which love to go in long clothing, and _love_ salutations in the market-places, 2 Saying, The scribes and the 39 And the chief seats in the Pharisees sit in Moses’ seat: synagogues, and the uppermost rooms at feasts: 3 All therefore whatsoever they bid you observe, _that_ observe and do: but do not ye after their works: for they say, and do not. 4 For they bind heavy burdens, and grievous to be borne, and lay _them_ on men’s shoulders; but they _themselves_ will not move them with one of their fingers. 5 But all their works they do for to be seen of men: they make broad their phylacteries, and enlarge the borders of their garments, 6 And love the uppermost rooms at feasts, and the chief seats in the synagogues, 7 And greetings in the markets, and to be called of men, Rabbi, Rabbi. 8 But be ye not called Rabbi: for one is your Master, _even_ Christ; and all ye are brethren. 9 And call no _man_ your father upon the earth: for one is your Father which is in heaven. 10 Neither be ye called masters: for one is your master, _even_ Christ. 11 But he that is greatest among you, shall be your servant. 12 And whosoever shall exalt himself, shall be abased; and he that shall humble himself, shall be exalted. Luke. CH. XX. 45, 46. 45 Then in the audience of all the people, he said unto his disciples, 46 Beware of the scribes, which desire to walk in long robes, and love greetings in the markets, and the highest seats in the synagogues, and the chief rooms at feasts; § 123. Woes against the Scribes and Pharisees. Lamentation over Jerusalem. (Third Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXIII. 13-39. CH. XII. 40. 13 But wo unto you, scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites! for ye shut up the kingdom of heaven against men: for ye neither go in _yourselves_, neither suffer ye them that are entering, to go in. 14 Wo unto you, scribes and 40 Which devour widows’ houses Pharisees, hypocrites! for ye and for a pretence make long devour widows’ houses, and for prayers these shall receive a pretence make long prayer: greater damnation therefore ye shall receive the greater damnation. 15 Wo unto you, scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites! for ye compass sea and land to make one proselyte; and when he is made, ye make him two-fold more the child of hell than yourselves. 16 Wo unto you, _ye_ blind guides, which say, Whosoever shall swear by the temple, it is nothing; but whosoever shall swear by the gold of the temple, he is a debtor. 17 _Ye_ fools, and blind! for whether is greater, the gold, or the temple that sanctifieth the gold? 18 And whosoever shall swear by the altar, it is nothing; but whosoever sweareth by the gift that is upon it, he is guilty. 19 _Ye_ fools, and blind! for whether _is_ greater, the gift, or the altar that sanctifieth the gift? 20 Whoso therefore shall swear by the altar, sweareth by it, and by all things thereon. 21 And whoso shall swear by the temple, sweareth by it, and by him that dwelleth therein. 22 And he that shall swear by heaven, sweareth by the throne of God, and by him that sitteth thereon. 23 Wo unto you, scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites! for ye pay tithe of mint, and anise, and cummin, and have omitted the weightier _matters_ of the law, judgment, mercy, and faith: these ought ye to have done, and not to leave the other undone. 24 _Ye_ blind guides, which strain at a gnat, and swallow a camel. 25 Wo unto you, scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites! for ye make clean the outside of the cup and of the platter, but within they are full of extortion and excess. 26 _Thou_ blind Pharisee, cleanse first that which _is_ within the cup and platter, that the outside of them may be clean also. 27 Wo unto you, scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites! for ye are like unto whited sepulchres, which indeed appear beautiful outward, but are within full of dead _men’s_ bones, and of all uncleanness. 28 Even so ye also outwardly appear righteous unto men, but within ye are full of hypocrisy and iniquity. 29 Wo unto you, scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites! because ye build the tombs of the prophets, and garnish the sepulchres of the righteous, 30 And say, If we had been in the days of our fathers, we would not have been partakers with them in the blood of the prophets. 31 Wherefore ye be witnesses unto yourselves, that ye are the children of them which killed the prophets. 32 Fill ye up then the measure of your fathers. 33 _Ye_ serpents, _ye_ generation of vipers, how can ye escape the damnation of hell? 34 Wherefore, behold, I send unto you prophets, and wise men, and scribes; and _some_ of them ye shall kill and crucify, and _some_ of them shall ye scourge in your synagogue, and persecute _them_ from city to city: 35 That upon you may come all the righteous blood shed upon the earth, from the blood of righteous Abel, unto the blood of Zacharias, son of Barachias, whom ye slew between the temple and the altar.(245) 36 Verily, I say unto you, All these things shall come upon this generation. 37 O Jerusalem, Jerusalem, _thou_ that killest the prophets, and stonest them which are sent unto thee, how often would I have gathered thy children together, even as a hen gathereth her chickens under _her_ wings, and ye would not! 38 Behold, your house is left unto you desolate.(246) 39 For I say unto you, Ye shall not see me henceforth, till ye shall say, Blessed _is_ he that cometh in the name of the Lord.(247) Luke. CH. XX. 47. Which devour widows’ houses, and for a shew make long prayers: the same shall receive greater damnation. § 124. The Widow’s Mite. (Third Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Mark. Luke. CH. XII. 41-44. CH. XXI. 1-4. 41 And Jesus sat over against And he looked up and saw the the treasury, and beheld how rich men casting their gifts the people cast money into the into the treasury. treasury: and many that were rich cast in much. 42 And there came a certain 2 And he saw also a certain poor widow, and she threw in poor widow, casting in thither two mites, which make a two mites. farthing. 43 And he called _unto him_ 3 And he said, Of a truth I his disciples, and saith unto say unto you, That this poor them, Verily, I say unto you, widow hath cast in more than That this poor widow hath cast they all. more in, than all they which have cast into the treasury. 44 For all _they_ did cast in 4 For all these have of their of their abundance: but she of abundance cast in unto the her want did cast in all that offerings of God: but she of she had, _even_ all her her penury hath cast in all living. the living that she had. § 125. Certain Greeks desire to see Jesus. (Third Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. John. CH. XII. 20-36. 20 And there were certain Greeks among them, that came up to worship at the _feast_. 21 The same came therefore to Philip, which was of Bethsaida of Galilee, and desired him, saying, Sir, we would see Jesus. 22 Philip cometh and telleth Andrew: and again, Andrew and Philip tell Jesus. 23 And Jesus answered them, saying, The hour is come, that the Son of man should be glorified. 24 Verily, verily, I say unto you, Except a corn of wheat fall into the ground and die, it abideth alone: but if it die, it bringeth forth much fruit. 25 He that loveth his life shall lose it; and he that hateth his life in this world, shall keep it unto life eternal. 26 If any man serve me, let him follow me, and where I am, there shall also my servant be: if any man serve me, him will _my_ Father honour. 27 Now is my soul troubled; and what shall I say? Father, save me from this hour: but for this cause came I unto this hour. 28 Father, glorify thy name. Then came there a voice from heaven, _saying_, I have both glorified _it_, and will glorify _it_ again. 29 The people therefore that stood by, and heard _it_, said that it thundered. Others said, An angel spake to him. 30 Jesus answered and said, This voice came not because of me, but for your sakes. 31 Now is the judgment of this world: now shall the prince of this world be cast out. 32 And I, if I be lifted up from the earth, will draw all _men_ unto me. 33 (This he said, signifying what death he should die.) 34 The people answered him, We have heard out of the law that Christ abideth for ever:(248) and how sayest thou, The Son of man must be lifted up? Who is this Son of man? 35 Then Jesus said unto them, Yet a little while is the light with you. Walk while ye have the light, lest darkness come upon you: for he that walketh in darkness knoweth not whither he goeth. 36 While ye have light, believe in the light, that ye may be the children of light. These things spake Jesus, and departed, and did hide himself from them. § 126. Reflections upon the unbelief of the Jews. (Third Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. John. CH. XII. 37-50. 37 But though he had done so many miracles before them, yet they believed not on him. 38 That the saying of Esaias the prophet might be fulfilled, which he spake, Lord, who hath believed our report? and to whom hath the arm of the Lord been revealed?(249) 39 Therefore they could not believe, because that Esaias said again, 40 He hath blinded their eyes, and hardened their heart; that they should not see with _their_ eyes, nor understand with _their_ heart, and be converted, and I should heal them.(250) 41 These things said Esaias, when he saw his glory, and spake of him.(251) 42 Nevertheless, among the chief rulers also many believed on him; but because of the Pharisees they did not confess _him_, lest they should be put out of the synagogue: 43 For they loved the praise of men more than the praise of God. 44 Jesus cried, and said, He that believeth on me, believeth not on me, but on him that sent me. 45 And he that seeth me, seeth him that sent me. 46 I am come a light into the world, that whosoever believeth on me should not abide in darkness. 47 And if any man hear my words, and believe not, I judge him not: for I came not to judge the world, but to save the world. 48 He that rejecteth me, and receiveth not my words, hath one that judgeth him: the word that I have spoken, the same shall judge him in the last day. 49 For I have not spoken of myself; but the Father which sent me, he gave me a commandment, what I should say, and what I should speak. 50 And I know that his commandment is life everlasting: whatsoever I speak therefore, even as the Father said unto me, so I speak. § 127. Jesus, on taking leave of the Temple, foretells its destruction, etc. (Third Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem. Mount of Olives_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXIV. 1-14. CH. XIII. 1-13. And Jesus went out, and And as he went out of the departed from the temple: and temple, one of his disciples his disciples came to _him_ saith unto him, Master, see for to shew him the buildings what manner of _stones_, and of the temple. what buildings _are here_! 2 And Jesus said unto them, 2 And Jesus answering, said See ye not all these things? unto him, Seest thou these verily, I say unto you, There great buildings? there shall shall not be left here one not be left one stone upon stone upon another, that shall another, that shall not be not be thrown down. thrown down. 3 And as he sat upon the mount 3 And as he sat upon the mount of Olives, the disciples came of Olives, over against the unto him privately, saying, temple, Peter, and James, and Tell us, when shall these John, and Andrew, asked him things be? and what _shall_ be privately, the sign of thy coming, and of the end of the world. 4 Tell us, when shall these things be? and what _shall_ be the sign when all these things shall be fulfilled? 4 And Jesus answered and said 5 And Jesus answering them, unto them, Take heed that no began to say. Take heed lest man deceive you. any _man_ deceive you: 5 For many shall come in my 6 For many shall come in my name, saying, I am Christ; and name, saying, I am _Christ_; shall deceive many. and shall deceive many. 6 And ye shall hear of wars, 7 And when ye shall hear of and rumours of wars: see that wars, and rumours of wars, be ye be not troubled: for all ye not troubled: for _such _these things_ must come to things_ must needs be; but the pass, but the end is not yet. end _shall_ not be yet. 7 For nation shall rise 8 For nation shall rise against nation, and kingdom against nation, and kingdom against kingdom: and there against kingdom: and there shall be famines, and shall be earthquakes in pestilence, and earthquakes in _divers_ places, and there divers places. shall be famines, and troubles: _these are_ the beginnings of sorrows. 8 All these _are_ the beginning of sorrows. 9 Then shall they deliver you 9 But take heed to yourselves: up to be afflicted, and shall for they shall deliver you up kill you: and ye shall be to councils; and in the hated of all nations for my synagogues ye shall be beaten: name’s sake. and ye shall be brought before rulers and kings for my sake, for a testimony against them. 10 And the gospel must first be published among all nations. 11 But when they shall lead _you_, and deliver you up, take no thought beforehand what ye shall speak, neither do ye premeditate: but whatsoever shall be given you in that hour, that speak ye: for it is not ye that speak, but the Holy Ghost. 10 And then shall many be 12 Now, the brother shall offended, and shall betray one betray the brother to death, another, and shall hate one and the father the son: and another. children shall rise up against _their_ parents, and shall cause them to be put to death. 11 And many false prophets shall rise, and shall deceive many. 12 And because iniquity shall abound, the love of many shall wax cold. 13 But he that shall endure 13 And ye shall be hated of unto the end, the same shall all _men_ for my name’s sake: be saved. but he that shall endure unto the end, the same shall be saved. 14 And this gospel of the kingdom shall be preached in all the world, for a witness unto all nations; and then shall the end come. Luke. CH. XXI. 5-19. 5 And as some spake of the temple, how it was adorned with goodly stones, and gifts, he said, 6 _As for_ these things which ye behold, the days will come, in the which there shall not be left one stone upon another, that shall not be thrown down. 7 And they asked him, saying, Master, but when shall these things be? and what sign _will there be_ when these things shall come to pass? 8 And he said, Take heed that ye be not deceived: for many shall come in my name, saying, I am _Christ_; and the time draweth near: go ye not therefore after them. 9 But when ye shall hear of wars, and commotions, be not terrified: for these things must first come to pass; but the end _is_ not by and by. 10 Then said he unto them, Nation shall rise against nation, and kingdom against kingdom: 11 And great earthquakes shall be in divers places, and famines, and pestilences: and fearful sights, and great signs shall there be from heaven. 12 But before all these they shall lay their hands on you, and persecute _you_, delivering _you_ up to the synagogues, and into prisons, being brought before kings and rulers for my name’s sake. 13 And it shall turn to you for a testimony. 14 Settle _it_ therefore in your hearts, not to meditate before what ye shall answer. 15 For I will give you a mouth and wisdom, which all your adversaries shall not be able to gainsay nor resist. 16 And ye shall be betrayed both by parents, and brethren, and kinsfolks, and friends; and _some_ of you shall they cause to be put to death.(252) 17 And ye shall be hated of all _men_ for my name’s sake. 18 But there shall not an hair of your head perish. 19 In your patience possess ye your souls. § 128. The signs of Christ’s coming to destroy Jerusalem, etc. (Third Day Of The Week.) _Mount of Olives_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXIV. 15-42. CH. XXIII. 14-37. 15 When ye, therefore, shall 14 But when ye shall see the see the abomination of abomination of desolation, desolation, spoken of by spoken of by Daniel the Daniel the prophet,(253) stand prophet, standing where it in the holy place, (whoso ought not, (let him that readeth, let him understand,) readeth understand) then let them that be in Judea flee to the mountains: 16 Then let them which be in Judea flee into the mountains: 17 Let him which is on the 15 And let him that is on the housetop not come down to take housetop not go down into the any thing out of his house: house, neither enter _therein_, to take any thing out of his house: 18 Neither let him which is in 16 And let him that is in the the field return back to take field not turn back again for his clothes. to take up his garment. 19 And wo unto them that are 17 But wo to them that are with child, and to them that with child, and to them that give suck in those days! give suck in those days! 20 But pray ye that your 18 And pray ye that your flight be not in the winter, flight be not in the winter. neither on the sabbath-day: 21 For then shall be great 19 For _in_ those days shall tribulation, such as was not be affliction, such as was not since the beginning of the from the beginning of the world to this time, no, nor creation which God created ever shall be. unto this time, neither shall be. 22 And except those days 20 And except that the Lord should be shortened, there had shortened these days, no should no flesh be saved: but flesh should be saved: but for for the elect’s sake those the elect’s sake, whom he hath days shall be shortened. chosen, he hath shortened the days. 23 Then if any man shall say 21 And then, if any man shall unto you, Lo, here _is_ say to you, Lo, here _is_ Christ, or there; believe _it_ Christ; or lo, _he is_ there; not. believe _him_ not. 24 For there shall arise false 22 For false Christs, and Christs, and false prophets, false prophets shall rise, and and shall shew great signs and shall shew signs and wonders, wonders; insomuch that, if _it to seduce, if _it were_ were_ possible, they shall possible, even the elect. deceive the very elect. 25 Behold, I have told you 23 But take ye heed: behold, I before. have foretold you all things. 26 Wherefore, if they shall say unto you, Behold, he is in the desert; go not forth: behold, he _is_ in the secret chambers; believe _it_ not. 27 For as the lightning cometh out of the east, and shineth even unto the west; so shall also the coming of the Son of man be. 28 For wheresoever the carcass is, there will the eagles be gathered together. 29 Immediately after the 24 But in those days, after tribulation of those days, that tribulation, the sun shall the sun be darkened, and shall be darkened, and the the moon shall not give her moon shall not give her light, light, and the stars shall fall from heaven, and the powers of the heavens shall be shaken:(254) 25 And the stars of heaven shall fall, and the powers that are in heaven shall be shaken. 30 And then shall appear the 26 And then shall they see the sign of the Son of man in Son of man coming in the heaven: and then shall all the clouds with great power and tribes of the earth mourn, and glory. they shall see the Son of man coming in the clouds of heaven with power and great glory. 31 And he shall send his 27 And then shall he send his angels with a great sound of a angels, and shall gather trumpet, and they shall gather together his elect from the together his elect from the four winds, from the uttermost four winds, from one end of part of the earth to the heaven to the other. uttermost part of heaven. 32 Now learn a parable of the 28 Now learn a parable of the fig-tree; When his branch is fig-tree: When her branch is yet tender, and putteth forth yet tender, and putteth forth leaves, ye know that summer leaves, ye know that summer is _is_ nigh: near: 33 So likewise ye, when ye 29 So ye in like manner, when shall see all these things, ye shall see these things come know that it is near, _even_ to pass, know that it is nigh, at the doors. _even_ at the doors. 34 Verily, I say unto you, 30 Verily, I say unto you, This generation shall not That this generation shall not pass, till all these things be pass, till all these things be fulfilled. done. 35 Heaven and earth shall pass 31 Heaven and earth shall pass away, but my words shall not away: but my words shall not pass away. pass away. 36 But of that day and hour 32 But of that day and _that_ knoweth no _man_, no, not the hour knoweth no man, no, not angels of heaven, but my the angels which are in Father only. heaven, neither the Son, but the Father. 37 But as the days of Noe 33 Take ye heed, watch and _were_, so shall also the pray: for ye know not when the coming of the Son of man be. time is. 38 For as in the days that 34 _For the Son of man is_ as were before the flood, they a man taking a far journey, were eating and drinking, who left his house, and gave marrying and giving in authority to his servants, and marriage, until the day that to every man his work; and Noe entered into the ark,(255) commanded the porter to watch. 39 And knew not until the flood came, and took them all away: so shall also the coming of the Son of man be. 40 Then shall two be in the field; the one shall be taken, and the other left. 41 Two _women shall be_ grinding at the mill; the one shall be taken, and the other left. 42 Watch therefore; for ye 35 Watch ye therefore: for ye know not what hour your Lord know not when the master of doth come. the house cometh, at even, or at midnight, or at the cock-crowing, or in the morning: 36 Lest coming suddenly, he find you sleeping. 37 And what I say unto you, I say unto all, Watch. Luke. CH. XXI. 20-36. 20 And when ye shall see Jerusalem compassed with armies, then know that the desolation thereof is nigh. 21 Then let them which are in Judea flee to the mountains; and let them which are in the midst of it depart out; and let not them that are in the countries enter thereinto. 22 For these be the days of vengeance, that all things which are written may be fulfilled. 23 But wo unto them that are with child, and to them that give suck in those days! for there shall be great distress in the land, and wrath upon this people. 24 And they shall fall by the edge of the sword, and shall be led away captive into all nations: and Jerusalem shall be trodden down of the Gentiles, until the times of the Gentiles be fulfilled. 25 And there shall be signs in the sun, and in the moon, and in the stars; and upon the earth distress of nations, with perplexity; the sea and the waves roaring; 26 Men’s hearts failing them for fear, and for looking after those things which are coming on the earth: for the powers of heaven shall be shaken. 29 And he spake to them a parable; Behold the fig-tree, and all the trees; 30 When they now shoot forth, ye see and know of your ownselves that summer is now nigh at hand. 31 So likewise ye, when ye see these things come to pass, know ye that the kingdom of God is nigh at hand. 32 Verily, I say unto you, This generation shall not pass away, till all be fulfilled. 33 Heaven and earth shall pass away: but my words shall not pass away. 34 And take heed to yourselves, lest at any time your hearts be overcharged with surfeiting and drunkenness, and cares of this life, and _so_ that day come upon you unawares. 35 For as a snare shall it come on all them that dwell on the face of the whole earth. 36 Watch ye therefore, and pray always, that ye may be accounted worthy to escape all these things that shall come to pass, and to stand before the Son of man. § 129. Transition to Christ’s final coming. Exhortation. Parables. (Third Day Of The Week.) _Mount of Olives_. Matthew. CH. XXIV. 43-51. CH. XXV. 1-30. 43 But know this, that if the good man of the house had known in what watch the thief would come, he would have watched, and would not have suffered his house to be broken up. 44 Therefore be ye also ready: for in such an hour as ye think not, the Son of man cometh. 45 Who then is a faithful and wise servant, whom his lord hath made ruler over his household, to give them meat in due season? 46 Blessed _is_ that servant, whom his lord, when he cometh, shall find so doing. 47 Verily I say unto you, That he shall make him ruler over all his goods. 48 But and if that evil servant shall say in his heart, My lord delayeth his coming; 49 And shall begin to smite _his_ fellow-servants, and to eat and drink with the drunken; 50 The lord of that servant shall come in a day when he looketh not for _him_, and in an hour that he is not aware of, 51 And shall cut him asunder, and appoint _him_ his portion with the hypocrites: there shall be weeping and gnashing of teeth. CH. XXV. Then shall the kingdom of heaven be likened unto ten virgins, which took their lamps, and went forth to meet the bridegroom. 2 And five of them were wise, and five _were_ foolish. 3 They that _were_ foolish took their lamps, and took no oil with them: 4 But the wise took oil in their vessels with their lamps. 5 While the bridegroom tarried, they all slumbered and slept. 6 And at midnight there was a cry made, Behold, the bridegroom cometh: go ye out to meet him. 7 Then all those virgins arose, and trimmed their lamps. 8 And the foolish said unto the wise, Give us of your oil: for our lamps are gone out. 9 But the wise answered, saying, _Not so_; lest there be not enough for us and you: but go ye rather to them that sell, and buy for yourselves. 10 And while they went to buy, the bridegroom came; and they that were ready, went in with him to the marriage: and the door was shut. 11 Afterward came also the other virgins, saying, Lord, Lord, open to us. 12 But he answered and said, Verily, I say unto you, I know you not. 13 Watch therefore, for ye know neither the day nor the hour wherein the Son of man cometh. 14 For _the kingdom of heaven is_ as a man travelling into a far country, _who_ called his own servants, and delivered unto them his goods. 15 And unto one he gave five talents, to another two, and to another one; to every man according to his several ability; and straightway took his journey. 16 Then he that had received the five talents, went and traded with the same, and made _them_ other five talents. 17 And likewise he that _had received_ two, he also gained other two. 18 But he that had received one, went and digged in the earth, and hid his lord’s money. 19 After a long time the lord of those servants cometh, and reckoneth with them. 20 And so he that had received five talents, came and brought other five talents, saying, Lord, thou deliveredst unto me five talents: behold, I have gained besides them five talents more. 21 His lord said unto him, Well done, _thou_ good and faithful servant; thou hast been faithful over a few things, I will make thee ruler over many things: enter thou into the joy of thy lord. 22 He also that had received two talents came, and said, Lord, thou deliveredst unto me two talents: behold, I have gained two other talents besides them. 23 His lord said unto him, Well done, good and faithful servant; thou hast been faithful over a few things, I will make thee ruler over many things: enter thou into the joy of thy lord. 24 Then he which had received the one talent came, and said, Lord, I knew thee that thou art an hard man, reaping where thou hast not sown, and gathering where thou hast not strewed: 25 And I was afraid, and went and hid thy talent in the earth: lo, _there_ thou hast _that is_ thine. 26 His lord answered and said unto him, _Thou_ wicked and slothful servant, thou knewest(256) that I reap where I sowed not, and gather where I have not strewed: 27 Thou oughtest therefore to have put my money to the exchangers, and then at my coming I should have received mine own with usury. 28 Take therefore the talent from him, and give _it_ unto him which hath ten talents. 29 For unto every one that hath shall be given, and he shall have abundance: but from him that hath not, shall be taken away even that which he hath. 30 And cast ye the unprofitable servant into outer darkness: there shall be weeping and gnashing of teeth. § 130. Scenes of the Judgment Day. (Third Day Of The Week.) _Mount of Olives_. Matthew. CH. XXV. 31-46. 31 When the Son of man shall come in his glory, and all the holy angels with him, then shall he sit upon the throne of his glory: 32 And before him shall be gathered all nations: and he shall separate them one from another, as a shepherd divideth _his_ sheep from the goats: 33 And he shall set the sheep on his right hand, but the goats on the left. 34 Then shall the King say unto them on his right hand, Come, ye blessed of my Father, inherit the kingdom prepared for you from the foundation of the world: 35 For I was an hungered, and ye gave me meat: I was thirsty, and ye gave me drink: I was a stranger, and ye took me in: 36 Naked, and ye clothed me: I was sick, and ye visited me: I was in prison, and ye came unto me. 37 Then shall the righteous answer him, saying, Lord, when saw we thee an hungered, and fed _thee_? or thirsty, and gave _thee_ drink? 38 When saw we thee a stranger, and took _thee_ in? or naked, and clothed _thee_? 39 Or when saw we thee sick, or in prison, and came unto thee? 40 And the King shall answer and say unto them, Verily I say unto you, Inasmuch as ye have done _it_ unto one of the least of these my brethren, ye have done _it_ unto me. 41 Then shall he say also unto them on the left hand, Depart from me, ye cursed, into everlasting fire, prepared for the devil and his angels: 42 For I was an hungered, and ye gave me no meat: I was thirsty, and ye gave me no drink: 43 I was a stranger, and ye took me not in: naked, and ye clothed me not: sick, and in prison, and ye visited me not. 44 Then shall they also answer him, saying, Lord, when saw we thee an hungered, or athirst, or a stranger, or naked, or sick, or in prison, and did not minister unto thee? 45 Then shall he answer them, saying, Verily, I say unto you, Inasmuch as ye did it not to one of the least of these, ye did _it_ not to me. 46 And these shall go away into everlasting punishment: but the righteous into life eternal. § 131. The Rulers conspire. The Supper at Bethany. Treachery of Judas. (Fourth Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem. Bethany_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXVI. 1-16. CH. XIV. 1-11. And it came to pass, when Jesus had finished all these sayings, he said| unto his disciples, 2 Ye know that after two days After two days was _the feast_ is _the feast of_ the of the passover, and of passover, and the Son of man unleavened bread: and the is betrayed to be crucified. chief priests, and the scribes, sought how they might take him by craft, and put _him_ to death. 3 Then assembled together the chief priests, and the scribes, and the elders of the people, unto the palace of the high priest, who was called Caiaphas, 4 And consulted that they might take Jesus by subtilty, and kill _him_. 5 But they said, Not on the 2 But they said, Not on the _feast-day_, lest there be an _feast-day_, lest there be an uproar among the people. uproar of the people. 6 Now when Jesus was in 3 And being in Bethany, in the Bethany, in the house of Simon house of Simon the leper, as the leper, he sat at meat, there came a woman having an alabaster-box of ointment of spikenard, very precious; and she brake the box, and poured _it_ on his head. 7 There came unto him a woman having an alabaster-box of very precious ointment, and poured _it_ on his head as he sat _at meat_. 8 But when his disciples(257) 4 And there were some that had saw _it_, they had indignation within themselves, indignation, saying, To what and said, Why was this waste purpose _is_ this waste? of the ointment made? 9 For this ointment might have 5 For it might have been sold been sold for much, and given for more than three hundred to the poor. pence, and have been given to the poor. And they murmured against her. 10 When Jesus understood _it_, 6 And Jesus said, Let her he said unto them, Why trouble alone: why trouble ye her? she ye the woman? for she hath hath wrought a good work on wrought a good work upon me. me. 11 For ye have the poor always 7 For ye have the poor with with you; but me ye have not you always, and whensoever ye always. will ye may do them good: but me ye have not always. 12 For in that she hath poured 8 She hath done what she this ointment on my body, she could: she is come aforehand did _it_ for my burial. to anoint my body to the burying. 13 Verily, I say unto you, 9 Verily, I say unto you, Wheresoever this gospel shall Wheresoever this gospel shall be preached in the whole be preached throughout the world, _there_ shall also whole world, _this_ also that this, that this woman hath she hath done shall be spoken done, be told for a memorial of, for a memorial of her. of her. 14 Then one of the twelve, 10 And Judas Iscariot, one of called Judas Iscariot, went the twelve, went unto the unto the chief priests, chief priests, to betray him unto them. 15 And said _unto them_, What 11 And when they heard _it_, will ye give me, and I will they were glad, and promised deliver him unto you? And they to give him money. And he covenanted with him for thirty sought how he might pieces of silver. conveniently betray him. 16 And from that time he sought opportunity to betray him. Luke. John. CH. XXII. 1-6. CH. XII. 2-8. Now the feast of unleavened bread drew nigh, which is called the Passover. 2 And the chief priests and scribes sought how they might kill him: for they feared the people. 2 There they made him a supper; and Martha served: but Lazarus was one of them that sat at the table with him. 3 Then took Mary a pound of ointment of spikenard, very costly, and anointed the feet(258) of Jesus, and wiped his feet with her hair: and the house was filled with the odour of the ointment. 4 Then saith one of his disciples, Judas Iscariot,(259) Simon’s _son_, which should betray him, 5 Why was not this ointment sold for three hundred pence, and given to the poor? 6 This he said, not that he cared for the poor, but because he was a thief, and had the bag, and bare what was put therein. 7 Then said Jesus, Let her alone: against the day of my burying hath she kept this. 8 For the poor always ye have with you; but me ye have not always. 3 Then entered Satan into Judas, surnamed Iscariot, being of the number of the twelve. 4 And he went his way, and communed with the chief priests and captains, how he might betray him unto them. 5 And they were glad, and covenanted to give him money. 6 And he promised, and sought opportunity to betray him unto them in the absence of the multitude. § 132. Preparation for the Passover. (Fifth Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem. Bethany_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXVI. 17-19. CH. XIV. 12-16. 17 Now the first _day_ of the 12 And the first day of _feast of_ unleavened bread, unleavened bread, when they the disciples came to Jesus, killed the passover, his saying unto him, Where wilt disciples said unto him, Where thou that we prepare for thee wilt thou that we go and to eat the passover? prepare, that thou mayest eat the passover? 18 And he said, Go into the 13 And he sendeth forth two of city to such a man, and say his disciples, and saith unto unto him, The Master saith, My them, Go ye into the city, and time is at hand; I will keep there shall meet you a man the passover at thy house with bearing a pitcher of water: my disciples.(260) follow him. 14 And wheresoever he shall go in, say ye to the good man of the house, The Master saith, Where is the guest-chamber, where I shall eat the passover with my disciples? 15 And he will shew you a large upper room furnished _and_ prepared: there make ready for us. 19 And the disciples did as 16 And his disciples when Jesus had appointed them; and forth, and came into the city, they made ready the passover. and found as he had said unto them: and they made ready the passover. Luke. CH. XXII. 7-13. 7 Thence came the day of unleavened bread, when the passover must be killed. 8 And he sent Peter and John, saying, Go and prepare us the passover, that we may eat. 9 And they said unto him, Where wilt thou that we prepare? 10 And he said unto them, Behold, when ye are entered into the city, there shall a man meet you, bearing a pitcher of water; follow him into the house where he entereth in. 11 And ye shall say unto the good man of the house, The Master saith unto thee, Where is the guest-chamber, where I shall eat the passover with my disciples? 12 And he shall shew you a large upper room furnished: there make ready. 13 And they went and found as he had said unto them: and they made ready the passover. Part VIII. The Fourth Passover; Our Lord’s Passion; And The Accompanying Events Until The End Of The Jewish Sabbath. TIME. _Two days_. § 133. The Passover Meal. Contention among the Twelve. (Evening Introducing The Sixth Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXVI. 20. CH. XIV. 17. 20 Now when the even was come, 17 And in the evening he he sat down with the twelve. cometh with the twelve. Luke. CH. XXII. 14-18, 24-30. 14 And when the hour was come, he sat down, and the twelve apostles with him. 15 And he said unto them, With desire I have desired to eat this passover with you before I suffer. 16 For I say unto you, I will not any more eat thereof, until it be fulfilled in the kingdom of God. 17 And he took the cup, and gave thanks, and said, Take this, and divide _it_ among yourselves. 18 For I say unto you, I will not drink of the fruit of the vine, until the kingdom of God shall come. 24 And there was also a strife among them, which of them should be accounted the greatest. 25 And he said unto them, The kings of the Gentiles exercise lordship over them; and they that exercise authority upon them are called benefactors. 26 But ye _shall_ not _be_ so: but he that is greatest among you, let him be as the younger; and he that is chief, as he that doth serve. 27 For whether _is_ greater, he that sitteth at meat, or he that serveth? _is_ not he that sitteth at meat? but I am among you as he that serveth. 28 Ye are they which have continued with me in my temptations. 29 And I appoint unto you a kingdom, as my Father hath appointed unto me; 30 That ye may eat and drink at my table in my kingdom, and sit on thrones, judging the twelve tribes of Israel. § 134. Jesus washes the feet of his disciples. (Evening Introducing The Sixth Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. John. CH. XII. 1-20. Now before the feast of the passover, when Jesus knew that his hour was come that he should depart out of this world unto the Father, having loved his own which were in the world, he loved them unto the end. 2 And supper being ended, (the devil having now put into the heart of Judas Iscariot, Simon’s _son_, to betray him,) 3 Jesus knowing that the Father had given all things into his hands, and that he was come from God, and went to God; 4 He riseth from supper, and laid aside his garments; and took a towel, and girded himself. 5 After that, he poureth water into a basin, and began to wash the disciples’ feet, and to wipe _them_ with the towel wherewith he was girded. 6 Then cometh he to Simon Peter: and Peter saith unto him, Lord, dost thou wash my feet? 7 Jesus answered and said unto him, What I do thou knowest not now; but thou shalt know hereafter. 8 Peter saith unto him, Thou shalt never wash my feet. Jesus answered him, If I wash thee not, thou hast no part with me. 9 Simon Peter saith unto him, Lord, not my feet only, but also _my_ hands and _my_ head. 10 Jesus saith to him, He that is washed needeth not save to wash _his_ feet, but is clean every whit: and ye are clean, but not all. 11 For he knew who should betray him: therefore said he, Ye are not all clean. 12 So after he had washed their feet, and had taken his garments, and was set down again, he said unto them, Know ye what I have done to you? 13 Ye call me Master, and Lord: and ye say well; for _so_ I am. 14 If I then, _your_ Lord and Master, have washed your feet; ye also ought to wash one another’s feet. 15 For I have given you an example, that ye should do as I have done to you. 16 Verily, verily, I say unto you, The servant is not greater than his lord; neither he that is sent greater than he that sent him. 17 If ye know these things, happy are ye if ye do them. 18 I speak not of you all; I know whom I have chosen; but that the scripture may be fulfilled, He that eateth bread with me, hath lifted up his heel against me.(261) 19 Now I tell you before it come, that when it is come to pass, ye may believe that I am _he_. 20 Verily, verily, I say unto you, He that receiveth whomsoever I send, receiveth me; and he that receiveth me, receiveth him that sent me. § 135. Jesus points out the traitor. Judas withdraws. (Evening Introducing The Sixth Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXVI. 21-25. CH. XIV. 18-21. 21 And as they did eat, he 18 And as they sat, and did said, Verily I say unto you, eat, Jesus said, Verily I say That one of you shall betray unto you, One of you which me. eateth with me, shall betray me. 22 And they were exceeding 19 And they began to be sorrowful, and began every one sorrowful, and to say unto him of them to say unto him, Lord, one by one, _Is_ it I? and is it I? another _said_, _Is_ it I? 23 And he answered and said, 20 And he answered and said He that dippeth _his_ hand unto them, _It is_ one of the with me in the dish, the same twelve that dippeth with me in shall betray me. the dish. 24 The Son of man goeth, as it 21 The Son of man indeed is written of him: but wo unto goeth, as it is written of that man by whom the Son of him: but wo to that man by man is betrayed! it had been whom the Son of man is good for that man if he had betrayed! good were it for not been born. that man if he had never been born. 25 Then Judas, which betrayed him, answered and said, Master, is it I? He said unto him, Thou hast said. Luke. John. CH. XXII. 21-23. CH. XIII. 21-35. 21 But behold, the hand of him 21 When Jesus had thus said, that betrayeth me _is_ with me he was troubled in spirit, and on the table. testified, and said, Verily, verily, I say unto you, that one of you shall betray me. 22 And truly the Son of man goeth as it was determined: but wo unto that man by whom he is betrayed! 22 Then the disciples looked one on another, doubting of whom he spake. 23 Now there was leaning on Jesus’ bosom, one of his disciples, whom Jesus loved. 23 And they began to inquire 24 Simon Peter therefore among themselves, which of beckoned to him, that he them it was that should do should ask who it should be of this thing. whom he spake. 25 He then, lying on Jesus’ breast, saith unto him, Lord, who is it? 26 Jesus answered, He it is to whom I shall give a sop, when I have dipped _it_. And when he had dipped the sop, he gave _it_ to Judas Iscariot _the son_ of Simon. 27 And after the sop Satan entered into him. Then said Jesus unto him, That thou doest, do quickly. 28 Now no man at the table knew for what intent he spake this unto him. 29 For some _of them_ thought, because Judas had the bag, that Jesus had said unto him, Buy _those things_ that we have need of against the feast; or, that he should give something to the poor. 30 He then, having received the sop, went immediately out: and it was night. 31 Therefore, when he was gone out, Jesus said, Now is the Son of man glorified, and God is glorified in him. 32 If God be glorified in him, God shall also glorify him in himself, and shall straightway glorify him. 33 Little children, yet a little while I am with you. Ye shall seek me; and, as I said unto the Jews, Whither I go, ye cannot come, so now I say to you. 34 A new commandment I give unto you, That ye love one another; as I have loved you, that ye also love one another. 35 By this shall all _men_ know that ye are my disciples, if ye have love one to another. § 136. Jesus foretells the fall of Peter, and the dispersion of the Twelve. (Evening Introducing The Sixth Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXVI. 31-35. CH. XIV. 27-31. 31 Then saith Jesus unto them, 27 And Jesus saith unto them, All ye shall be offended All ye shall be offended because of me this night: for because of me this night: for it is written, I will smite it is written, I will smite the Shepherd, and the sheep of the Shepherd, and the sheep the flock shall be scattered shall be scattered. abroad.(262) 32 But after I am risen again, 28 But after that I am risen, I will go before you into I will go before you into Galilee. Galilee. 33 Peter answered and said 29 But Peter said unto him, unto him, Though all _men_ Although all shall be shall be offended because of offended, yet _will_ not I. thee, _yet_ will I never be offended. 34 Jesus said unto him, 30 And Jesus saith unto him, Verily, I say unto thee, That Verily, I say unto thee, That this night, before the cock this day, _even_ in this crow, thou shalt deny me night, before the cock crow thrice. twice,(263) thou shalt deny me thrice. 35 Peter said unto him, Though 31 But he spake the more I should die with thee, yet vehemently, If I should die will not I deny thee. Likewise with thee, I will not deny also said all the disciples. thee in any wise. Likewise also said they all. Luke. John. CH. XXII. 31-38. CH. XIII. 36-38. 31 And the Lord said, Simon, 36 Simon Peter said unto him, Simon, behold, Satan hath Lord, whither goest thou? desired _to have_ you, that he Jesus answered him, Whither I may sift _you_ as wheat: go, thou canst not follow me now; but thou shalt follow me afterward. 32 But I have prayed for thee, that thy faith fail not: and when thou art converted, strengthen thy brethren. 33 And he said unto him, Lord, 37 Peter said unto him, Lord, I am ready to go with thee, why cannot I follow thee now? both into prison, and to I will lay down my life for death. thy sake. 34 And he said, I tell thee, 38 Jesus answered him, Wilt Peter, the cock shall not crow thou lay down thy life for my this day, before that thou sake? Verily, verily, I say shalt thrice deny that thou unto thee, The cock shall not knowest me. crow, till thou hast denied me thrice. 35 And he said unto them, When I sent you without purse, and scrip, and shoes, lacked ye any thing? And they said, Nothing. 36 Then said he unto them, But now, he that hath a purse, let him take _it_, and likewise _his_ scrip: and he that hath no sword, let him sell his garment, and buy one.(264) 37 For I say unto you, that this that is written must yet be accomplished in me, And he was reckoned among the transgressors:(265) for the things concerning me have an end. 38 And they said, Lord, behold, here are two swords. And he said unto them, It is enough. § 137. The Lord’s Supper. (Evening Introducing The Sixth Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXVI. 26-29. CH. XIV. 22-25. 26 And(266) as they were 22 And as they did eat, Jesus eating,(267) Jesus took bread, took bread, and blessed, and and blessed _it_, and brake brake _it_, and gave to them, _it_, and gave _it_ to the and said, Take, eat: this is disciples, and said, Take, my body. eat; this is my body. 27 And he took the cup, and 23 And he took the cup, and gave thanks, and gave _it_ to when he had given thanks, he them, saying, Drink ye all of gave _it_ to them: and they it; all drank of it. 28 For this is my blood of the 24 And he said unto them, This new testament,(268) which is is my blood of the new shed for many for the testament, which is shed for remission of sins. many. 29 But I say unto you, I will 25 Verily, I say unto you, I not drink henceforth of this will drink no more of the fruit of the vine, until that fruit of the vine, until that day when I drink it new with day that I drink it new in the you in my Father’s kingdom. kingdom of God. Luke. CH. XXII. 19-20. 19 And he took bread, and gave thanks, and brake _it_, and gave unto them, saying, This is my body which is given for you: this do in remembrance of me. 20 Likewise also the cup after supper, saying, This cup _is_ the new testament in my blood, which is shed for you. § 138. Jesus comforts his disciples. The Holy Spirit promised. (Evening Introducing The Sixth Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. John. CH. XIV. 1-31. Let not your heart be troubled: ye believe in God, believe also in me. 2 In my Father’s house are many mansions; if _it were_ not _so_, I would have told you. I go to prepare a place for you. 3 And if I go and prepare a place for you, I will come again and receive you unto myself; that where I am, _there_ ye may be also. 4 And whither I go ye know, and the way ye know. 5 Thomas saith unto him, Lord, we know not whither thou goest; and how can we know the way? 6 Jesus saith unto him, I am the way, and the truth, and the life: no man cometh unto the Father, but by me. 7 If ye had known me, ye should have known my Father also: and from henceforth ye know him, and have seen him. 8 Philip saith unto him, Lord, shew us the Father, and it sufficeth us. 9 Jesus saith unto him, Have I been so long time with you, and yet hast thou not known me, Philip? he that hath seen me, hath seen the Father; and how sayest thou _then_, Shew us the Father? 10 Believest thou not that I am in the Father, and the Father in me? the words that I speak unto you, I speak not of myself: but the Father, that dwelleth in me, he doeth the works. 11 Believe me that I _am_ in the Father, and the Father in me: or else believe me for the very works’ sake. 12 Verily, verily, I say unto you, He that believeth on me, the works that I do shall he do also; and greater _works_ than these shall he do; because I go unto my Father. 13 And whatsoever ye shall ask in my name, that will I do, that the Father may be glorified in the Son. 14 If ye shall ask any thing in my name, I will do _it_. 15 If ye love me, keep my commandments: 16 And I will pray the Father, and he shall give you another Comforter, that he may abide with you for ever; 17 _Even_ the Spirit of truth; whom the world cannot receive, because it seeth him not, neither knoweth him: but ye know him; for he dwelleth with you, and shall be in you. 18 I will not leave you comfortless: I will come to you. 19 Yet a little while, and the world seeth me no more; but ye see me: because I live, ye shall live also. 20 At that day ye shall know that I _am_ in my Father, and ye in me, and I in you. 21 He that hath my commandments, and keepeth them, he it is that loveth me: and he that loveth me, shall be loved of my Father, and I will love him, and will manifest myself to him. 22 Judas saith unto him, (not Iscariot) Lord, how is it that thou wilt manifest thyself unto us, and not unto the world? 23 Jesus answered and said unto him, If a man love me, he will keep my words: and my Father will love him, and we will come unto him, and make our abode with him. 24 He that loveth me not, keepeth not my sayings: and the word which ye hear is not mine, but the Father’s which sent me. 25 These things have I spoken unto you, being _yet_ present with you. 26 But the Comforter, _which is_ the Holy Ghost, whom the Father will send in my name, he shall teach you all things, and bring all things to your remembrance, whatsoever I have said unto you. 27 Peace I leave with you, my peace I give unto you: not as the world giveth, give I unto you. Let not your heart be troubled, neither let it be afraid. 28 Ye have heard how I said unto you, I go away, and come _again_ unto you. If ye loved me, ye would rejoice, because I said, I go unto the Father: for my Father is greater than I. 29 And now I have told you before it come to pass, that when it is come to pass, ye might believe. 30 Hereafter I will not talk much with you: for the prince of this world cometh, and hath nothing in me. 31 But that the world may know that I love the Father; and as the Father gave me commandment, even so I do. Arise, let us go hence. § 139. Christ the true Vine. His disciples hated by the world. (Evening Introducing The Sixth Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. John. CH. XV. 1-27. I am the true vine, and my Father is the husbandman. 2 Every branch in me that beareth not fruit, he taketh away: and every _branch_ that beareth fruit, he purgeth it, that it may bring forth more fruit. 3 Now ye are clean through the word which I have spoken unto you. 4 Abide in me, and I in you. As the branch cannot bear fruit of itself, except it abide in the vine: no more can ye, except ye abide in me. 5 I am the vine, ye _are_ the branches: He that abideth in me, and I in him, the same bringeth forth much fruit: for without me ye can do nothing. 6 If a man abide not in me, he is cast forth as a branch, and is withered; and men gather them, and cast _them_ into the fire, and they are burned. 7 If ye abide in me, and my words abide in you, ye shall ask what ye will, and it shall be done unto you. 8 Herein is my Father glorified, that ye bear much fruit; so shall ye be my disciples. 9 As the Father hath loved me, so have I loved you: continue ye in my love. 10 If ye keep my commandments, ye shall abide in my love; even as I have kept my Father’s commandments, and abide in his love. 11 These things have I spoken unto you, that my joy might remain in you, and _that_ your joy might be full. 12 This is my commandment, That ye love one another, as I have loved you. 13 Greater love hath no man than this, that a man lay down his life for his friends. 14 Ye are my friends, if ye do whatsoever I command you. 15 Henceforth I call you not servants; for the servant knoweth not what his lord doeth: but I have called you friends; for all things that I have heard of my Father, I have made known unto you. 16 Ye have not chosen me, but I have chosen you, and ordained you, that ye should go and bring forth fruit, and _that_ your fruit should remain: that whatsoever ye shall ask of the Father in my name, he may give it to you. 17 These things I command you, that ye love one another. 18 If the world hate you, ye know that it hated me before _it hated_ you. 19 If ye were of the world, the world would love his own; but because ye are not of the world, but I have chosen you out of the world, therefore the world hateth you. 20 Remember the word that I said unto you, The servant is not greater than his lord. If they have persecuted me, they will also persecute you: if they have kept my saying, they will keep yours also. 21 But all these things will they do unto you for my name’s sake, because they know not him that sent me. 22 If I had not come and spoken unto them, they had not had sin: but now they have no cloak for their sin. 23 He that hateth me, hateth my Father also. 24 If I had not done among them the works which none other man did, they had not had sin: but now have they both seen, and hated both me and my Father. 25 But _this cometh to pass_, that the word might be fulfilled that is written in their law, They hated me without a cause.(269) 26 But when the Comforter is come, whom I will send unto you from the Father, _even_ the Spirit of truth, which proceedeth from the Father, he shall testify of me. 27 And ye also shall bear witness, because ye have been with me from the beginning. § 140. Persecution foretold. Further promise of the Holy Spirit. (Evening Introducing The Sixth Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. John. CH. XVI. 1-33. These things have I spoken unto you, that ye should not be offended. 2 They shall put you out of the synagogues: yea, the time cometh, that whosoever killeth you, will think that he doeth God service. 3 And these things will they do unto you, because they have not known the Father, nor me. 4 But these things have I told you, that when the time shall come, ye may remember that I told you of them. And these things I said not unto you at the beginning because I was with you. 5 But now I go my way to him that sent me, and none of you asketh me, Whither goest thou? 6 But because I have said these things unto you, sorrow hath filled your heart. 7 Nevertheless, I tell you the truth: It is expedient for you that I go away: for if I go not away, the Comforter will not come unto you; but if I depart, I will send him unto you. 8 And when he is come, he will reprove the world of sin, and of righteousness, and of judgment: 9 Of sin, because they believe not on me; 10 Of righteousness, because I go to my Father, and ye see me no more; 11 Of judgment, because the prince of this world is judged. 12 I have yet many things to say unto you, but ye cannot bear them now. 13 Howbeit, when he, the Spirit of truth is come, he will guide you into all truth: for he shall not speak of himself; but whatsoever he shall hear, _that_ shall he speak: and he will shew you things to come. 14 He shall glorify me: for he shall receive of mine, and shall shew _it_ unto you. 15 All things that the Father hath are mine: therefore said I, that he shall take of mine, and shall shew it unto you. 16 A little while, and ye shall not see me: and again, a little while, and ye shall see me, because I go to the Father. 17 Then said _some_ of his disciples among themselves, What is this that he saith unto us, A little while, and ye shall not see me: and again, a little while, and ye shall see me; and, Because I go to the Father? 18 They said therefore, What is this that he saith, A little while? we cannot tell what he saith. 19 Now Jesus knew that they were desirous to ask him, and said unto them, Do ye inquire among yourselves of that I said, A little while, and ye shall not see me: and again, a little while, and ye shall see me? 20 Verily, verily, I say unto you, that ye shall weep and lament, but the world shall rejoice: and ye shall be sorrowful, but your sorrow shall be turned into joy. 21 A woman when she is in travail hath sorrow, because her hour is come: but as soon as she is delivered of the child, she remembereth no more the anguish, for joy that a man is born into the world. 22 And ye now therefore have sorrow: but I will see you again, and your heart shall rejoice, and your joy no man taketh from you. 23 And in that day ye shall ask me nothing. Verily, verily, I say unto you, Whatsoever ye shall ask the Father in my name, he will give _it_ you. 24 Hitherto have ye asked nothing in my name: ask, and ye shall receive, that your joy may be full. 25 These things have I spoken unto you in proverbs: but the time cometh when I shall no more speak unto you in proverbs, but I shall shew you plainly of the Father. 26 At that day ye shall ask in my name: and I say not unto you, that I will pray the Father for you: 27 For the Father himself loveth you, because ye have loved me, and have believed that I came out from God. 28 I came forth from the Father, and am come into the world: again, I leave the world, and go to the Father. 29 His disciples said unto him, Lo, now speakest thou plainly, and speakest no proverb. 30 Now are we sure that thou knowest all things, and needest not that any man should ask thee: by this we believe that thou camest forth from God. 31 Jesus answered them, Do ye now believe? 32 Behold, the hour cometh, yea, is now come, that ye shall be scattered every man to his own, and shall leave me alone: and yet I am not alone, because the Father is with me. 33 These things I have spoken unto you, that in me ye might have peace. In the world ye shall have tribulation, but be of good cheer: I have overcome the world. § 141. Christ’s last prayer with his disciples. (Evening Introducing The Sixth Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. John. CH. XVII. 1-26. These words spake Jesus, and lifted up his eyes to heaven, and said, Father, the hour is come; glorify thy Son, that thy Son also may glorify thee: 2 As thou hast given him power over all flesh, that he should give eternal life to as many as thou hast given him. 3 And this is life eternal, that they might know thee the only true God, and Jesus Christ whom thou hast sent. 4 I have glorified thee on the earth: I have finished the work which thou gavest me to do. 5 And now, O Father, glorify thou me with thine own self, with the glory which I had with thee before the world was. 6 I have manifested thy name unto the men which thou gavest me out of the world: thine they were, and thou gavest them me; and they have kept thy word. 7 Now they have known that all things whatsoever thou hast given me are of thee: 8 For I have given unto them the words which thou gavest me; and they have received _them_, and have known surely that I came out from thee, and they have believed that thou didst send me. 9 I pray for them: I pray not for the world, but for them which thou hast given me; for they are thine. 10 And all mine are thine, and thine are mine; and I am glorified in them. 11 And now I am no more in the world, but these are in the world, and I come to thee. Holy Father, keep through thine own name those whom thou hast given me, that they may be one, as we _are_. 12 While I was with them in the world, I kept them in thy name: those that thou gavest me I have kept, and none of them is lost, but the son of perdition; that the scripture might be fulfilled.(270) 13 And now come I to thee, and these things I speak in the world, that they might have my joy fulfilled in themselves. 14 I have given them thy word; and the world hath hated them, because they are not of the world, even as I am not of the world. 15 I pray not that thou shouldest take them out of the world, but that thou shouldest keep them from the evil. 16 They are not of the world, even as I am not of the world. 17 Sanctify them through thy truth: thy word is truth. 18 As thou hast sent me into the world, even so have I also sent them into the world. 19 And for their sakes I sanctify myself, that they also might be sanctified through the truth. 20 Neither pray I for these alone; but for them also which shall believe on me through their word: 21 That they all may be one; as thou, Father, _art_ in me, and I in thee, that they also may be one in us: that the world may believe that thou hast sent me. 22 And the glory which thou gavest me, I have given them; that they may be one, even as we are one; 23 I in them, and thou in me, that they may be made perfect in one; and that the world may know that thou hast sent me, and hast loved them as thou hast loved me. 24 Father, I will that they also whom thou hast given me be with me where I am; that they may behold my glory which thou hast given me: for thou lovedst me before the foundation of the world. 25 O righteous Father, the world hath not known thee: but I have known thee, and these have known that thou hast sent me. 26 And I have declared unto them thy name, and will declare _it_: that the love wherewith thou hast loved me, may be in them, and I in them. § 142. The agony in Gethsemane. (Evening Introducing The Sixth Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXVI. 30, 36-46. CH. XIV. 26, 32-42. 30 And when they had sung a 26 And when they had sung an hymn, they went out into the hymn, they went out into the mount of Olives. mount of Olives. 36 Then cometh Jesus with them 32 And they came to a place unto a place called which was named Gethsemane: Gethsemane, and saith unto the and he saith to his disciples, disciples, Sit ye here, while Sit ye here, while I shall I go and pray yonder. pray. 37 And he took with him Peter, 33 And he taketh with him and the two sons of Zebedee, Peter, and James, and John, and began to be sorrowful and and began to be sore amazed, very heavy. and to be very heavy; 38 Then saith he unto them, My 34 And saith unto them, My soul is exceeding sorrowful, soul is exceeding sorrowful even unto death: tarry ye unto death: tarry ye here, and here, and watch with me. watch. 39 And he went a little 35 And he went forward a further, and fell on his face, little, and fell on the and prayed, saying, O my ground, and prayed that, if it Father, if it be possible, let were possible, the hour might this cup pass from me: pass from him. nevertheless, not as I will, but as thou _wilt_. 36 And he said, Abba, Father, all things _are_ possible unto thee; take away this cup from me: nevertheless, not what I will, but what thou wilt. 40 And he cometh unto the 37 And he cometh, and findeth disciples, and findeth them them sleeping, and saith unto asleep, and saith unto Peter, Peter, Simon, sleepest thou? What! could ye not watch with couldest not thou watch one me one hour? hour? 41 Watch and pray, that ye 38 Watch ye and pray, lest ye enter not into temptation: the enter into temptation. The spirit indeed _is_ willing, spirit truly _is_ ready, but but the flesh _is_ weak. the flesh _is_ weak. 42 He went away again the 39 And again he went away, and second time, and prayed, prayed, and spake the same saying, O my Father, if this words. cup may not pass away from me, except I drink it, thy will be done. 43 And he came and found them 40 And when he returned, he asleep again: for their eyes found them asleep again, (for were heavy. their eyes were heavy;) neither wist they what to answer him. 44 And he left them, and went away again, and prayed the third time, saying the same words. 45 Then cometh he to his 41 And he cometh the third disciples, and saith unto time, and saith unto them, them, Sleep on now, and take Sleep on now, and take _your_ _your_ rest: behold, the hour rest: it is enough, the hour is at hand, and the Son of man is come: behold, the Son of is betrayed into the hands of man is betrayed into the hands sinners. of sinners. 46 Rise, let us be going: 42 Rise up, let us go; lo, he behold, he is at hand that that betrayeth me is at hand. doth betray me. Luke. John. CH. XXII. 39-46. CH. XVIII. 1. 39 And he came out, and went, When Jesus had spoken these as he was wont, to the mount words, he went forth with his of Olives; and his disciples disciples over the brook also followed him. Cedron, where was a garden, into which he entered, and his disciples. 40 And when he was at the place, he said unto them, Pray that ye enter not into temptation. 41 And he was withdrawn from them about a stone’s cast, and kneeled down, and prayed, 42 Saying, Father, if thou be willing, remove this cup from me: nevertheless, not my will, but thine, be done. 43 And there appeared an angel unto him from heaven, strengthening him. 44 And being in an agony, he prayed more earnestly: and his sweat was as it were great drops of blood(271) falling down to the ground. 45 And when he rose up from prayer, and was come to his disciples, he found them sleeping for sorrow,(272) 46 And said unto them, Why sleep ye? rise and pray, lest ye enter into temptation. § 143. Jesus betrayed and made prisoner. (Evening Introducing The Sixth Day Of The Week.) _Mount of Olives_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXVI. 47-56. CH. XIV. 43-52 47 And while he yet spake, lo, 43 And immediately while he Judas, one of the twelve, yet spake, cometh Judas, one came, and with him a great of the twelve, and with him a multitude with swords and great multitude with swords staves, from the chief priests and staves, from the chief and elders of the people. priests, and the scribes, and the elders. 48 Now, he that betrayed him, 44 And he that betrayed him, gave them a sign, saying, had given them a token, Whomsoever I shall kiss, that saying, Whomsoever I shall same is he; hold him fast. kiss, that same is he; take him, and lead _him_ away safely. 49 And forthwith he came to 45 And as soon as he was come, Jesus, and said, Hail Master; he goeth straightway to him, and kissed him. and saith, Master, Master; and kissed him. 50 And Jesus said unto him, Friend, wherefore art thou come? Then came they, and laid hands on Jesus, and took him. 51 And behold, one of them 47 And one of them that stood which were with Jesus, by, drew a sword, and smote a stretched out _his_ hand, and servant of the high priest, drew his sword, and struck a and cut off his ear. servant of the high priest, and smote off his ear. 52 Then said Jesus unto him, Put up again thy sword into his place: for all they that take the sword, shall perish with the sword.(273) 53 Thinkest thou that I cannot now pray to my Father, and he shall presently give me more than twelve legions of angels? 54 But how then shall the scriptures be fulfilled, that thus it must be? 55 In that same hour said 48 And Jesus answered and said Jesus to the multitudes, Are unto them, Are ye come out as ye come out as against a thief against a thief, with swords with swords and staves for to and _with_ staves to take me? take me? I sat daily with you teaching in the temple, and ye laid no hold on me. 56 But all this was done, that 49 I was daily with you in the the scriptures of the prophets temple, teaching, and ye took might be fulfilled. me not: but the scriptures must be fulfilled. Then all the disciples forsook 50 And they all forsook him him, and fled. and fled. 51 And there followed him a certain young man, having a linen cloth cast about _his naked body_; and the young men laid hold on him. 52 And he left the linen cloth, and fled from them naked. Luke. John. CH. XXII. 47-53. CH. XVIII. 2-21. 47 And while he yet spake, 2 And Judas also, which behold a multitude, and he betrayed him, knew the place: that was called Judas, one of for Jesus ofttimes resorted the twelve, went before them, thither with his disciples. and drew near unto Jesus to kiss him. 3 Judas then, having received a band _of men_ and officers from the chief priests and Pharisees, cometh thither with lanterns, and torches, and weapons. 48 But Jesus said unto him, 4 Jesus therefore, knowing all Judas, betrayest thou the Son things that should come upon of man with a kiss? him, went forth, and said unto them, Whom seek ye? 49 When they which were about 5 They answered him, Jesus of him, saw what would follow, Nazareth. Jesus saith unto they said unto him, Lord, them, I am _he_.(274) And shall we smite with the sword? Judas also, which betrayed him, stood with them. 6 As soon then as he had said unto them, I am _he_, they went backward, and fell to the ground. 7 Then asked he them again, Whom seek ye? And they said, Jesus of Nazareth. 8 Jesus answered, I have told you that I am _he_. If therefore ye seek me, let these go their way: 9 That the saying might be fulfilled which he spake, Of them which thou gavest me, have I lost none. 50 And one of them smote the 10 Then Simon Peter,(275) servant of the high priest, having a sword, drew it, and and cut off his right ear. smote the high priest’s servant, and cut off his right ear. The servant’s name was Malchus. 51 And Jesus answered and 11 Then said Jesus unto Peter, said, Suffer ye thus far. And Put up thy sword into the he touched his ear, and healed sheath: the cup which my him. Father hath given me, shall I not drink it? 52 Then Jesus said unto the chief priests, and captains of the temple, and the elders which were come to him, Be ye come out as against a thief with swords and staves? 53 When I was daily with you 12 Then the band, and the in the temple, ye stretched captain, and officers of the forth no hands against me: but Jews took Jesus, and bound this is your hour, and power him. of darkness. § 144. Jesus before Caiaphas. Peter thrice denies him. (Night Introducing The Sixth Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXVI. 57, 58, 69-75. CH. XIV. 53, 54, 66-72. 57 And they that had laid hold 53 And they led Jesus away to on Jesus, led _him_ away to the high priest: and with him Caiaphas the high priest, were assembled all the chief where the scribes and the priests, and the elders and elders were assembled. the scribes. 58 But Peter followed him afar 54 And Peter followed him afar off, unto the high priest’s off, even into the palace of palace, and went in, and sat the high priest: and he sat with the servants to see the with the servants, and warmed end. himself at the fire. 69 Now Peter sat without in 66 And as Peter was beneath in the palace: and a damsel came the palace, there cometh one unto him, saying, Thou also of the maids of the high wast with Jesus of Galilee. priest: 67 And when she saw Peter warming himself, she looked upon him, and said, And thou also wast with Jesus of Nazareth. 70 But he denied before _them_ 68 But he denied, saying, I all, saying, I know not what know not, neither understand I thou sayest. what thou sayest. And he went out into the porch; and the cock crew. 71 And when he was gone out 69 And a maid saw him again, into the porch,(276) another and began to say to them that _maid_ saw him, and said unto stood by, This is _one_ of them that were there, This them. _fellow_ was also with Jesus of Nazareth. 72 And again he denied with an 70 And he denied it again. And oath, I do not know the man. a little after, they that stood by said again to Peter, Surely thou art _one_ of them: for thou art a Galilean, and thy speech agreeth _thereto_. 73 And after a while came unto _him_ they that stood by, and said to Peter, Surely thou also art _one_ of them; for thy speech bewrayeth thee. 74 Then began he to curse and 71 But he began to curse and to swear, _saying_, I know not to swear, _saying_, I know not the man. And immediately the this man of whom ye speak. cock crew. 75 And Peter remembered the 72 And the second time the word of Jesus, which said unto cock crew. And Peter called to him, Before the cock crow thou mind the word that Jesus said shalt deny me thrice. And he unto him, Before the cock crow went out, and wept bitterly. twice, thou shalt deny me thrice. And when he thought thereon, he wept. Luke. John. CH. XXII. 54-62. CH. XVIII. 13-18, 25-27. Then took they him, and led 13 And led him away to Annas _him_ and brought him into the first,(277) (for he was high priest’s house. And Peter father-in-law to Caiaphas, followed afar off. which was the high priest that same year.) 14 Now Caiaphas was he which gave counsel to the Jews, that it was expedient that one man should die for the people. 15 And Simon Peter followed Jesus, and _so did_ another disciple. That disciple was known unto the high priest, and went in with Jesus, into the palace of the high priest. 16 But Peter stood at the door without. Then went out that other disciple which was known unto the high priest, and spake unto her that kept the door, and brought in Peter. 55 And when they had kindled a 18 And the servants and fire in the midst of the hall, officers stood there, who had and were set down together, made a fire of coals; (for it Peter sat down among them. was cold) and they warmed themselves: and Peter stood with them, and warmed himself. 56 But a certain maid beheld 17 Then saith the damsel that him as he sat by the fire, and kept the door unto Peter, Art earnestly looked upon him, and not thou also _one_ of this said, This man was also with man’s disciples? He saith, I him. am not. 57 And he denied him, saying, Woman, I know him not. 58 And after a little while 25 And Simon Peter stood and another saw him, and said, warmed himself. They said Thou art also of them. And therefore unto him, Art not Peter said, Man, I am not. thou also _one_ of his disciples? He denied _it_, and said, I am not. 59 And about the space of one 26 One of the servants of the hour after, another high priest (being his kinsman confidently affirmed, saying, whose ear Peter cut off) Of a truth this _fellow_ also saith, did not I see thee in was with him: for he is a the garden with him? Galilean. 60 And Peter said, Man, I know 27 Peter then denied again: not(278) what thou sayest. And and immediately the cock immediately, while he yet crew.(279) spake, the cock crew. 61 And the Lord turned, and looked upon Peter. And Peter remembered the word of the Lord, how he had said unto him, Before the cock crow, thou shalt deny me thrice. 62 And Peter went out and wept bitterly. § 145. Jesus before Caiaphas. He declares himself to be the Christ, &c. (Morning Of The Sixth Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXVI. 59-68. CH. XIV. 55-65. 59 Now the chief priests and 55 And the chief priests, and elders, and all the council, all the council sought for sought false witness against witness against Jesus to put Jesus, to put him to death; him to death; and found none: 60 But found none: yea, though 56 For many bare false witness many false witnesses came, against him, but their witness _yet_ found they none. At the agreed not together. last came two false witnesses, 57 And there arose certain, and bare false witness against him, saying, 61 And said, This _fellow_ 58 We heard him say, I will said, I am able to destroy the destroy this temple that is temple of God, and to build it made with hands, and within in three days. three days I will build another made without hands. 59 But neither so did their witness agree together. 62 And the high priest arose, 60 And the high priest stood and said unto him, Answerest up in the midst, and asked thou nothing? what _is it Jesus, saying, Answerest thou which_ these witness against nothing? what _is it which_ thee? these witness against thee? 63 But Jesus held his peace. 61 But he held his peace, and And the high priest answered answered nothing. Again the and said unto him, I adjure high priest asked him, and thee by the living God, that said unto him, Art thou the thou tell us whether thou be Christ, the Son of the the Christ, the Son of God. Blessed? 64 Jesus saith unto him, Thou 62 And Jesus said, I am: and hast said: nevertheless, I say ye shall see the Son of man unto you, Hereafter shall ye sitting on the right hand of see the Son of man sitting on power, and coming in the the right hand of power, and clouds of heaven. coming in the clouds of heaven. 65 Then the high priest rent 63 Then the high priest rent his clothes, saying, He hath his clothes, and saith, What spoken blasphemy; what further need we any further witnesses? need have we of witnesses? behold, now ye have heard his blasphemy. 66 What think ye? They 64 Ye have heard the answered and said, He is blasphemy: what think ye? And guilty of death. they all condemned him to be guilty of death. 67 Then did they spit in his 65 And some began to spit on face, and buffeted him; and him, and to cover his face, others smote _him_ with the and to buffet him, and to say palms of their hands, unto him, Prophesy: and the servants did strike him with the palms of their hands. 68 Saying, Prophesy unto us,(280) thou Christ, Who is he that smote thee? Luke. John. CH. XXII. 63-71. CH. XVIII. 19-24. 66 And as soon as it was day, the elders of the people, and the chief priests, and the scribes, came together, and led him into their council, saying, 67 Art thou the Christ? tell 19 The high priest then asked us. And he said unto them, If Jesus of his disciples, and of I tell you, ye will not his doctrine. believe. 68 And if I also ask _you_, ye 20 Jesus answered him, I spake will not answer me, nor let openly to the world; I ever _me_ go. taught in the synagogue, and in the temple, whither the Jews always resort; and in secret have I said nothing. 69 Hereafter shall the Son of man sit on the right hand of the power of God. 70 Then said they all, Art 21 Why askest thou me? ask thou then the Son of God? And them which heard me, what I he said unto them, Ye say that have said unto them: behold, I am. they know what I said. 71 And they said, What need we 22 And when he had thus any further witness? for we spoken, one of the officers ourselves have heard of his which stood by, struck Jesus own mouth. with the palm of his hand, saying, Answerest thou the high priest so? 63 And the men that held Jesus, mocked him, and smote _him_. 64 And when they had 23 Jesus answered him, If I blindfolded him, they struck have spoken evil, bear witness him on the face, and asked of the evil: but if well, why him, saying, Prophesy, who is smitest thou me? it that smote thee? 65 And many other things 24 (Now Annas had sent him blasphemously spake they bound unto Caiaphas the high against him. priest.) § 146. The Sanhedrim lead Jesus away to Pilate. (Sixth Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXVII. 1, 2, 11-14. CH. XV. 1-5. When the morning was come, all And straightway in the morning the chief priests and elders the chief priests held a of the people took counsel consultation with the elders against Jesus to put him to and scribes, and the whole death. council, and bound Jesus, and carried _him_ away, and delivered _him_ to Pilate. 2 And when they had bound him, they led _him_ away, and delivered him to Pontius Pilate the governor. 11 And Jesus stood before the 2 And Pilate asked him, Art governor: and the governor thou the King of the Jews? And asked him, saying, Art thou he answering, said unto him, the King of the Jews? And Thou sayest it. Jesus said unto him, Thou sayest. 12 And when he was accused of 3 And the chief priests the chief priests and elders, accused him of many things: he answered nothing. but he answered nothing. 13 Then saith Pilate unto him, 4 And Pilate asked him again, Hearest thou not how many saying, Answerest thou things they witness against nothing? behold how many thee? things they witness against thee. 14 And he answered him to 5 But Jesus yet answered never a word; insomuch that nothing: so that Pilate the governor marvelled marvelled. greatly. Luke. John. CH. XXIII. 1-5. CH. XVIII. 28-38. And the whole multitude of 28 Then led they Jesus from them arose, and led him unto Caiaphas unto the hall of Pilate. judgment: and it was early; and they themselves went not into the judgment-hall, lest they should be defiled; but that they might eat the passover. 2 And they began to accuse 29 Pilate then went out unto him, saying, We found this them, and said, What _fellow_ perverting the accusation bring ye against nation, and forbidding to give this man? tribute to Cesar, saying, That he himself is Christ, a King. 30 They answered and said unto him, If he were not a malefactor, we would not have delivered him up unto thee. 31 Then said Pilate unto them, Take ye him, and judge him according to your law. The Jews therefore said unto him, It is not lawful for us to put any man to death: 32 That the saying of Jesus might be fulfilled, which he spake, signifying what death he should die. 3 And Pilate asked him saying, 33 Then Pilate entered into Art thou the King of the Jews? the judgment-hall again, and And he answered him and said, called Jesus, and said unto Thou sayest _it_. him, Art thou the King of the Jews? 34 Jesus answered him, Sayest thou this thing of thyself, or did others tell it thee of me? 35 Pilate answered, Am I a Jew? Thine own nation, and the chief priests, have delivered thee unto me. What hast thou done? 36 Jesus answered, My kingdom is not of this world: if my kingdom were of this world, then would my servants fight,(281) that I should not be delivered to the Jews: but now is my kingdom not from hence. 37 Pilate therefore said unto him, Art thou a king then? Jesus answered, Thou sayest that I am a king. To this end was I born, and for this cause came I into the world, that I should bear witness unto the truth. Every one that is of the truth, heareth my voice. 4 Then said Pilate to the 38 Pilate saith unto him, What chief priests, and _to_ the is truth? And when he had said people, I find no fault in this, he went out again unto this man. the Jews, and saith them, I find in him no fault _at all_. 5 And they were the more fierce, saying, He stirreth up the people, teaching throughout all Jewry, beginning from Galilee to this place. § 147. Jesus before Herod. (Sixth Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Luke. CH. XXIII. 6-12. 6 When Pilate heard of Galilee, he asked whether the man were a Galilean. 7 And as soon as he knew that he belonged unto Herod’s jurisdiction, he sent him to Herod, who himself was also at Jerusalem at that time.(282) 8 And when Herod saw Jesus, he was exceeding glad: for he was desirous to see him of a long _season_, because he had heard many things of him; and he hoped to have seen some miracle done by him. 9 Then he questioned with him in many words; but he answered him nothing. 10 And the chief priests and scribes stood and vehemently accused him. 11 And Herod with his men of war set him at nought, and mocked _him_, and arrayed him in a gorgeous robe, and sent him again to Pilate. 12 And the same day Pilate and Herod were made friends together; for before they were at enmity between themselves. § 148. Pilate seeks to release Jesus. The Jews demand Barabbas. (Sixth Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXVII. 15-26. CH. XV. 6-15. 15 Now at _that_ feast, the 6 Now at _that_ feast he governor was wont to release released unto them one unto the people a prisoner, prisoner, whomsoever they whom they would. desired. 16 And they had then a notable 7 And there was _one_ named prisoner, called Barabbas. Barabbas, _which lay_ bound with them that had made insurrection with him, who had committed murder in the insurrection. 17 Therefore, when they were 8 And the multitude crying gathered together, Pilate said aloud, began to desire _him to unto them, Whom will ye that I do_ as he had ever done unto release unto you? Barabbas, or them. Jesus, which is called Christ? 9 But Pilate answered them, saying, Will ye that I release unto you the King of the Jews? 18 (For he knew that for envy 10 (For he knew that the chief they had delivered him.) priests had delivered him for envy.) 19 When he was set down on the judgment-seat, his wife sent unto him, saying, Have thou nothing to do with that just man: for I have suffered many things this day in a dream, because of him. 20 But the chief priests and 11 But the chief priests moved elders persuaded the multitude the people that he should that they should ask Barabbas, rather release Barabbas unto and destroy Jesus. them. 21 The governor answered and 12 And Pilate answered, and said unto them, Whether of the said again unto them, What twain, will ye that I release will ye then, that I shall do unto you? They said, Barabbas. _unto him_ whom ye call the King of the Jews? 22 Pilate saith unto them, 13 And they cried out again, What shall I do then with Crucify him. Jesus, which is called Christ? _They_ all say unto him, Let him be crucified. 23 And the governor said, Why! 14 Then Pilate said unto them, what evil hath he done? But Why, what evil hath he done? they cried out the more, And they cried out the more saying, Let him be crucified. exceedingly, Crucify him. 24 When Pilate saw that he could prevail nothing, but _that_ rather a tumult was made, he took water, and washed _his_ hands before the multitude, saying, I am innocent of the blood of this just person: see ye _to it_. 25 Then answered all the people, and said, His blood _be_ on us, and on our children. 26 Then released he Barabbas 15 And _so_ Pilate, willing to unto them: content the people, released Barabbas unto them. Luke. John. CH. XXIII. 13-25. CH. XVIII. 39, 40. 13 And Pilate, when he had called together the chief priests, and the rulers, and the people, 14 Said unto them, Ye have brought this man unto me, as one that perverteth the people: and behold, I, having examined _him_ before you, have found no fault in this man, touching those things whereof ye accuse him; 15 No, nor yet Herod: for I sent you to him; and lo, nothing worthy of death is done unto him: 16 I will therefore chastise 39 But ye have a custom that I him, and release _him_. should release unto you one at the passover: will ye therefore, that I release unto you the king of the Jews? 17 (For of necessity he must release one unto them at the feast.) 18 And they cried out all at 40 Then cried they all again, once, saying, Away with this saying, Not this man, but _man_, and release unto us Barabbas. Now Barabbas was a Barabbas: robber. 19 (Who, for a certain sedition made in the city, and for murder, was cast into prison.) 20 Pilate therefore, willing to release Jesus, spake again unto them. 21 But they cried, saying, Crucify _him_, crucify him. 22 And he said unto them the third time, Why, what evil hath he done? I have found no cause of death in him; I will therefore chastise him, and let _him_ go. 23 And they were instant with loud voices, requiring that he might be crucified: and the voices of them, and of the chief priests prevailed. 24 And Pilate gave sentence(283) that it should be as they required. 25 And he released unto them him that for sedition and murder was cast into prison, whom they had desired; but he delivered Jesus to their will. § 149. Pilate delivers up Jesus to death. He is scourged and mocked. _Jerusalem_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXVII. 26-30. CH. XV. 15-19. 26 And when he had scourged 15 And delivered Jesus, when Jesus, he delivered _him_ to he had scourged _him_, to be be crucified. crucified. 27 Then the soldiers of the 16 And the soldiers led him governor took Jesus into the away into the hall, called common hall, and gathered unto Pretorium; and they call him the whole band _of together the whole band; soldiers_. 28 And they stripped him, and 17 And they clothed him with put on him a scarlet robe. purple, and platted a crown of thorns, and put it about his _head_, 29 And when they had platted a 18 And began to salute him, crown of thorns, they put _it_ Hail, King of the Jews! upon his head, and a reed in his right hand: and they bowed the knee before him, and mocked him, saying, Hail, King of the Jews! 30 And they spit upon him, and 19 And they smote him on the took the reed, and smote him head with a reed, and did spit on the head. upon him, and bowing _their_ knees, worshipped him. John. CH. XIX. 1-3. Then Pilate therefore took Jesus and scourged _him_. 2 And the soldiers platted a crown of thorns, and put _it_ on his head, and they put on him a purple robe, 3 And said, Hail, King of the Jews! and they smote him with their hands. § 150. Pilate again seeks to release Jesus. (Sixth Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. John. CH. XIX. 4-16. 4 Pilate therefore went forth again, and saith unto them, Behold, I bring him forth to you, that ye may know that I find no fault in him. 5 Then came Jesus forth, wearing the crown of thorns, and the purple robe. And _Pilate_ saith unto them, Behold the man! 6 When the chief priests therefore and officers saw him, they cried out, saying, Crucify _him_, crucify _him_. Pilate saith unto them, Take ye him, and crucify _him_: for I find no fault in him. 7 The Jews answered him, We have a law, and by our law he ought to die, because he made himself the Son of God. 8 When Pilate therefore heard that saying, he was the more afraid; 9 And went again into the judgment-hall, and saith unto Jesus, Whence art thou? But Jesus gave him no answer. 10 Then saith Pilate unto him, Speakest thou not unto me? knowest thou not, that I have power to crucify thee, and have power to release thee? 11 Jesus answered, Thou couldest have no power _at all_ against me, except it were given thee from above: therefore he that delivered me unto thee hath the greater sin. 12 And from thenceforth Pilate sought to release him; but the Jews cried out, saying, If thou let this man go, thou art not Cesar’s friend. Whosoever maketh himself a king, speaketh against Cesar. 13 When Pilate therefore heard that saying, he brought Jesus forth, and sat down in the judgment-seat, in a place that is called the Pavement, but in the Hebrew, Gabbatha. 14 And it was the preparation of the passover, and about the sixth hour:(284) and he saith unto the Jews, Behold your King! 15 But they cried out, Away with _him_, away with _him_, crucify him. Pilate saith unto them, shall I crucify your King? The chief priests answered, We have no king but Cesar. 16 Then delivered he him therefore unto them to be crucified. § 151. Judas repents, and hangs himself. (Sixth Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Matthew. CH. XXVII. 3-10. 3 Then Judas, which had betrayed him, when he saw that he was condemned, repented himself, and brought again the thirty pieces of silver to the chief priests and elders, 4 Saying, I have sinned in that I have betrayed the innocent blood. And they said, What _is that_ to us? see thou _to that_. 5 And he cast down the pieces of silver in the temple, and departed, and went and hanged himself. 6 And the chief priests took the silver pieces, and said, It is not lawful for to put them into the treasury, because it is the price of blood. 7 And they took counsel, and bought with them the potter’s field, to bury strangers in. 8 Wherefore that field was called, The field of blood, unto this day. 9 Then was fulfilled that which was spoken by Jeremy(285) the prophet, saying, And they took the thirty pieces of silver, the price of him that was valued, whom they of the children of Israel did value; 10 And gave them for the potter’s field, as the Lord appointed me.(286) § 152. Jesus is led away to be crucified. (Sixth Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXVII. 31-34. CH. XV. 20-23. 31 And after that they had 20 And when they had mocked mocked him, they took the robe him, they took off the purple off from him, and put his own from him, and put his own raiment on him, and led him clothes on him, and led him away to crucify _him_. out to crucify him. 32 And as they came out, they 21 And they compel one Simon a found a man of Cyrene, Simon Cyrenian, who passed by, by name: him they compelled to coming out of the country, the bear his cross. father of Alexander and Rufus,(287) to bear his cross. 33 And when they were come 22 And they bring him unto the unto a place called Golgotha, place Golgotha, which is, that is to say, A place of a being interpreted, The place skull, of a skull. 34 They gave him vinegar to 23 And they gave him to drink, drink, mingled with gall: and wine mingled with myrrh: but when he had tasted _thereof_, he received _it_ not. he would not drink. Luke. John. CH. XXIII. 26-33. CH. XIX. 16-17. 26 And as they led him away, 16 And they took Jesus, and they laid hold upon one Simon led _him_ away. a Cyrenian, coming out of the country, and on him they laid the cross, that he might bear _it_ after Jesus. 27 And there followed him a 17 And he bearing his cross great company of people, and of women, which also bewailed and lamented him. 28 But Jesus turning unto them, said, Daughters of Jerusalem, weep not for me, but weep for yourselves, and for your children. 29 For behold, the days are coming, in the which they shall say, Blessed _are_ the barren, and the wombs that never bare, and the paps which never gave suck.(288) 30 Then shall they begin to say to the mountains, Fall on us; and to the hills, Cover us.(289) 31 For if they do these things in a green tree, what shall be done in the dry? 32 And there were also two others, malefactors, led with him to be put to death. 33 And when they were come to went forth into a place called the place which is called _the place_ of a skull, which Calvary, is called in the Hebrew, Golgotha. § 153. The Crucifixion. (Sixth Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXVII. 35-38. CH. XV. 24-28. 35 And they crucified him, and 24 And when they had crucified parted his garments, casting him, they parted his garments, lots: that it might be casting lots upon them, what fulfilled which was spoken by every man should take. the prophet; They parted my garments among them, and upon my vesture did they cast lots.(290) 36 And sitting down, they 25 And it was the third hour, watched him there: and they crucified him. 37 And set up over his head 26 And the superscription of his accusation(291) written, his accusation was written THIS IS JESUS THE KING OF THE over, THE KING OF THE JEWS. JEWS. 38 Then were there two thieves 27 And with him they crucify crucified with him: one on the two thieves, the one on his right hand, and another on the right hand, and the other on left. his left. 28 And the scripture was fulfilled, which saith, And he was numbered with the transgressors.(292) Luke. John. CH. XXIII. 33, 34, 38. CH. XIX. 18-24. 33 There they crucified him, 18 Where they crucified him, and the malefactors; one on and two other with him, on the right hand, and the other either side one, and Jesus in on the left. the midst. 34 Then said Jesus, Father, forgive them: for they know not what they do. And they parted his raiment, and cast lots. 38 And a superscription also 19 And Pilate wrote a title, was written over him, in and put it on the cross. And letters of Greek, and Latin, the writing was, JESUS OF and Hebrew, THIS IS THE KING NAZARETH, THE KING OF THE OF THE JEWS. JEWS. 20 This title then read many of Jews: for the place where Jesus was crucified was nigh to the city: and it was written in Hebrew, _and_ Greek, _and_ Latin. 21 Then said the chief priests of the Jews to Pilate, Write not, The King of the Jews; but that he said, I am King of the Jews. 22 Pilate answered, What I have written, I have written. 23 Then the soldiers, when they had crucified Jesus, took his garments, and made four parts,(293) to every soldier a part; and also _his_ coat: now the coat was without seam, woven from the top throughout. 24 They said therefore among themselves, Let us not rend it, but cast lots for it whose it shall be: that the scripture might be fulfilled, which saith, They parted my raiment among them, and for my vesture they did cast lots. These things therefore the soldiers did. § 154. The Jews mock at Jesus on the cross. He commends his mother to John. (Sixth Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXVII. 39-44. CH. XV. 29-32. 39 And they that passed by, 29 And they that passed by, reviled him, wagging their railed on him, wagging their heads, heads, and saying, Ah, thou that destroyest the temple, and buildest _it_ in three days, 40 And saying, Thou that 30 Save thyself, and come down destroyest the temple, and from the cross. buildest _it_ in three days, save thyself. If thou be the Son of God, come down from the cross. 41 Likewise also the chief 31 Likewise also the chief priests mocking _him_, with priests mocking, said among the scribes and elders, said, themselves with the scribes, He saved others; himself he cannot save. 42 He saved others; himself he 32 Let Christ the King of cannot save. If he be the King Israel descend now from the of Israel, let him now come cross, that we may see and down from the cross, and we believe. And they that were will believe him. crucified with him, reviled him. 43 He trusted in God; let him deliver him now if he will have him: for he said, I am the Son of God.(294) 44 The thieves also which were crucified with him, cast the same in his teeth. Luke. John. CH. XXIII. 35-37, 39-43. CH. XIX. 25-27. 35 And the people stood beholding. And the rulers also with them derided him, saying, He saved others; let him save himself, if he be Christ, the chosen of God. 36 And the soldiers also mocked him, coming to him, and offering him vinegar,(295) 37 And saying, If thou be the King of the Jews, save thyself. 39 And one of the malefactors,(296) which were hanged, railed on him, saying, If thou be Christ, save thyself and us. 40 But the other answering, rebuked him, saying, Dost not thou fear God, seeing thou art in the same condemnation? 41 And we indeed justly; for we receive the due reward of our deeds: but this man hath done nothing amiss. 42 And he said unto Jesus, Lord, remember me when thou comest into thy kingdom. 43 And Jesus said unto him, Verily, I say unto thee, To-day shalt thou be with me in paradise. 25 Now there stood by the cross of Jesus, his mother, and his mother’s sister, Mary the _wife_ of Cleophas, and Mary Magdalene. 26 When Jesus therefore saw his mother, and the disciple standing by whom he loved, he saith unto his mother, Woman, behold thy son! 27 Then saith he to the disciple, Behold thy mother! And from that hour that disciple took her unto his own _home_. § 155. Darkness prevails. Christ expires on the cross. (Sixth Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXVII. 45-50. CH. XV. 33-37. 45 Now, from the sixth hour 33 And when the sixth hour was there was darkness over all come, there was darkness over the land unto the ninth hour. the whole land, until the ninth hour. 46 And about the ninth hour 34 And at the ninth hour Jesus Jesus cried with a loud voice, cried with a loud voice, saying, Eli, Eli, lama saying, Eloi, Eloi, lama sabachthani? that is to say, sabachthani? which is, being My God, my God, why hast thou interpreted, My God, my God, forsaken me?(297) why hast thou forsaken me? 47 Some of them that stood 35 And some of them that stood there, when they heard _that_, by, when they heard _it_, said, This _man_ calleth for said, Behold, he calleth Elias. Elias. 48 And straightway one of them 36 And one ran and filled a ran, and took a spunge, and spunge full of vinegar, and filled _it_ with vinegar,(298) put _it_ on a reed, and gave and put _it_ on a reed, and him to drink, saying, Let gave him to drink. alone; let us see whether Elias will come to take him down. 49 The rest said, Let be, let us see whether Elias(299) will come to save him. 50 Jesus, when he had cried 37 And Jesus cried with a loud again with a loud voice, voice, and gave up the ghost. yielded up the ghost. Luke. John. CH. XXIII. 44-46. CH. XIX. 28-30. 44 And it was about the sixth hour, and there was a darkness over all the earth(300) until the ninth hour. 45 And the sun was darkened, 28 After this, Jesus knowing that all things were now accomplished, that the scripture might be fulfilled, saith, I thirst.(301) 29 Now there was set a vessel full of vinegar: and they filled a spunge with vinegar, and put _it_ upon hyssop, and put _it_ to his mouth. 46 And when Jesus had cried 30 When Jesus therefore had with a loud voice, he said, received the vinegar, he said, Father, into thy hands I It is finished: and he bowed commend my spirit: and having his head, and gave up the said thus, he gave up the ghost. ghost. § 156. The vail of the Temple rent. The graves opened. The women at the cross. (Sixth Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXVII. 51-56. CH. XV. 38-41. 51 And behold, the vail of the 38 And the vail of the temple temple was rent in twain from was rent in twain, from the the top to the bottom: and the top to the bottom. earth did quake, and the rocks rent; 52 And the graves were opened, and many bodies of the saints which slept, arose, 53 And came out of the graves after his resurrection, and went into the holy city, and appeared unto many. 54 Now, when the centurion, 39 And when the centurion and they that were with him, which stood over against him, watching Jesus, saw the saw that he so cried out, and earthquake, and those things gave up the ghost, he said, that were done, they feared Truly this man was the Son of greatly, saying, Truly this God. was the Son of God. 55 And many women were there 40 There were also women (beholding afar off)(302) looking on afar off, among which followed Jesus from whom was Mary Magdalene, and Galilee, ministering unto him: Mary the Mother of James the less, and of Joses, and Salome; 56 Among which was Mary 41 Who also, when he was in Magdalene, and Mary the mother Galilee, followed him, and of James and Joses, and the ministered unto him; and many mother of Zebedee’s children. other women which came up with him unto Jerusalem. Luke. CH. XXIII. 45, 47-49. 45 And the vail of the temple was rent in the midst. 47 Now, when the centurion saw what was done, he glorified God, saying, Certainly this was a righteous man. 48 And all the people that came together to that sight, beholding the things which were done, smote their breasts and returned. 49 And all his acquaintance, and the women that followed him from Galilee, stood afar off, beholding these things. § 157. The taking down from the cross. The burial. _Jerusalem_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXVII. 57-61. CH. XV. 42-47. 57 When the even was come, 42 And now, when the even was there came a rich man of come, (because it was the Arimathea, named Joseph, who preparation, that is, the day also himself was Jesus’ before the sabbath,) disciple: 58 He went to Pilate, and 43 Joseph of Arimathea, an begged the body(303) of Jesus. honourable counsellor, which Then Pilate commanded the body also waited for the kingdom of to be delivered. God, came, and went in boldly unto Pilate, and craved the body of Jesus. 44 And Pilate marvelled if he were already dead: and calling _unto him_ the centurion, he asked him whether he had been any while dead. 45 And when he knew _it_ of the centurion, he gave the body to Joseph. 59 And when Joseph had taken 46 And he bought fine linen, the body, he wrapped it in a and took him down, and wrapped clean linen cloth, him in the linen, and laid him in a sepulchre which was hewn out of a rock, and rolled a stone unto the door of the sepulchre. 60 And laid it in his own new tomb, which he had hewn out in the rock; and he rolled a great stone to the door of the sepulchre, and departed. 61 And there was Mary 47 And Mary Magdalene and Mary Magdalene, and the other Mary, _the mother_ of Joses beheld sitting over against the where he was laid. sepulchre. Luke. John. CH. XXIII. 50-56. CH. XIX. 31-42. 31 The Jews therefore, because it was the preparation, that the bodies should not remain upon the cross on the sabbath-day, (for that sabbath-day was an high day) besought Pilate that their legs might be broken, and _that_ they might be taken away. 32 Then came the soldiers, and brake the legs of the first, and of the other which was crucified with him. 33 But when they came to Jesus, and saw that he was dead already, they brake not his legs: 34 But one of the soldiers with a spear pierced his side, and forthwith came thereout blood and water. 35 And he that saw _it_, bare record, and his record is true: and he knoweth that he saith true, that ye might believe. 36 For these things were done, that the scripture should be fulfilled, A bone of him shall not be broken.(304) 37 And again another scripture saith, They shall look on him whom they pierced.(305) 50 And behold, _there was_ a 38 And after this Joseph of man named Joseph, a Arimathea (being a disciple of counsellor: _and he was_ a Jesus, but secretly for fear good man, and a just: of the Jews) besought Pilate that he might take away the body of Jesus: and Pilate gave _him_ leave. He came therefore and took the body of Jesus. 51 (The same had not consented to the counsel and deed of them:) _he was_ of Arimathea, a city of the Jews; who also himself waited for the kingdom of God. 52 This _man_ went unto 39 And there came also Pilate, and begged the body of Nicodemus (which at the first Jesus. came to Jesus by night) and brought a mixture of myrrh and aloes, about an hundred pounds weight. 53 And he took it down, and 40 Then took they the body of wrapped it in linen, and laid Jesus, and wound it in linen it in a sepulchre that was clothes with the spices, as hewn in stone, wherein never the manner of the Jews is to man before was laid. bury. 41 Now in the place where he was crucified, there was a garden; and in the garden a new sepulchre, wherein was never man yet laid. 54 And that day was the 42 There laid they Jesus preparation, and the sabbath therefore, because of the drew on.(306) Jews’ preparation-_day_; for the sepulchre was nigh at hand. 55 And the women also, which came with him from Galilee, followed after, and beheld the sepulchre, and how his body was laid. 56 And they returned, and prepared spices and ointments; and rested the sabbath-day, according to the commandment. § 158. The watch at the sepulchre. (Seventh Day Of The Week, Or Sabbath.) _Jerusalem_. Matthew. CH. XXVII. 62-66. 62 Now, the next day that followed the day of the preparation, the chief priests and Pharisees came together unto Pilate, 63 Saying, Sir, we remember that that deceiver said, while he was yet alive, After three days I will rise again. 64 Command therefore that the sepulchre be made sure until the third day, lest his disciples come by night, and steal him away, and say unto the people, He is risen from the dead: so the last error shall be worse than the first. 65 Pilate said unto them, Ye have a watch: go your way, make _it_ as sure as ye can. 66 So they went and made the sepulchre sure, sealing the stone, and setting a watch.(307) Part IX. Our Lord’s Resurrection, His Subsequent Appearances, And His Ascension. TIME. _Forty days_. § 159. The morning of the Resurrection. (First Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXVIII. 2-4. CH. XVI. 1. And when the sabbath was past, Mary Magdalene, and Mary the _mother_ of James, and Salome, had bought sweet spices, that they might come and anoint him. 2 And behold, there was a great earthquake; for the angel of the Lord descended from heaven, and came and rolled back the stone from the door, and sat upon it. 3 His countenance was like lightning, and his raiment white as snow. 4 And for fear of him the keepers did shake, and became as dead _men_. § 160. Visit of the women to the Sepulchre. Mary Magdalene returns. (First Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXVIII. 1. CH. XVI. 2-4. In the end of the sabbath, as 2 And very early in the it began to dawn toward the morning, the first _day_ of first _day_ of the week, came the week, they came unto the Mary Magdalene, and the other sepulchre at the rising of the Mary to see the sepulchre. sun: 3 And they said among themselves, Who shall roll us away the stone from the door of the sepulchre? 4 (And when they looked, they saw that the stone was rolled away,) for it was very great. Luke. John. CH. XXIV. 1-3. CH. XX. 1-2. Now upon the first _day_ of The first _day_ of the week the week, very early in the cometh Mary Magdalene early, morning, they came unto the when it was yet dark, unto the sepulchre, bringing the spices sepulchre, and seeth the stone which they had prepared, and taken away from the sepulchre. certain _others_ with them. 2 And they found the stone rolled away from the sepulchre. 3 And they entered in, and 2 Then she runneth, and cometh found not the body of the Lord to Simon Peter, and to the Jesus. other disciple whom Jesus loved, and saith unto them, They have taken away the Lord out of the sepulchre, and we know not where they have laid him. § 161. Vision of angels in the Sepulchre. (First Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXVIII. 5-7. CH. XVI. 5-7. 5 And entering into the sepulchre, they saw a young man sitting on the right side, clothed in a long white garment; and they were affrighted. 5 And the angel answered and 6 And he saith unto them, Be said unto the women, Fear not not affrighted: ye seek Jesus ye: for I know that ye seek of Nazareth, which was Jesus, which was crucified. crucified: he is risen; he is not here; behold the place where they laid him. 6 He is not here: for he is risen, as he said. Come, see the place where the Lord lay. 7 And go quickly, and tell his 7 But go your way, tell his disciples, that he is risen disciples and Peter, that he from the dead, and behold, he goeth before you into Galilee: goeth before you into Galilee; there shall ye see him, as he there shall ye see him: lo, I said unto you. have told you. Luke. CH. XXIV. 4-8. 4 And it came to pass, as they were much perplexed thereabout, behold, two men stood by them in shining garments. 5 And as they were afraid, and bowed down _their_ faces to the earth, they said unto them, Why seek ye the living among the dead? 6 He is not here, but is risen. Remember how he spake unto you when he was yet in Galilee, 7 Saying, The Son of man must be delivered into the hands of sinful men, and be crucified, and the third day rise again. 8 And they remembered his words, § 162. The women return to the city. Jesus meets them. (First Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Matthew. Mark. CH. XXVIII. 8-10. CH. XVI. 8. 8 And they departed quickly 6 And they went out quickly from the sepulchre, with fear and fled from the sepulchre; and great joy; and did run to for they trembled, and were bring his disciples word. amazed: neither said they any thing to any _man_; for they were afraid. 9 And as they went to tell his disciples, behold Jesus met them, saying, All hail. And they came, and held him by the feet, and worshipped him. 10 Then said Jesus unto them, Be not afraid: go tell my brethren, that they go into Galilee, and there shall they see me. Luke. CH. XXIV. 9-11. 9 And returned from the sepulchre, and told all these things unto the eleven, and to all the rest. 10 It was Mary Magdalene, and Joanna, and Mary _the mother_ of James, and other _women that were_ with them, which told these things unto the apostles. 11 And their words seemed to them as idle tales, and they believed them not. § 163. Peter and John run to the Sepulchre. (First Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Luke. John. CH. XXIV. 12. CH. XX. 3-10. 12 Then arose Peter, and ran 3 Peter therefore went forth, unto the sepulchre, and and that other disciple, and stooping down, he beheld the came to the sepulchre. linen clothes laid by themselves, and departed, wondering in himself at that which was come to pass. 4 So they ran both together: and the other disciple did outrun Peter, and came first to the sepulchre. 5 And he stooping down, _and looking in_, saw the linen clothes lying; yet went he not in. 6 Then cometh Simon Peter following him, and went into the sepulchre, and seeth the linen clothes lie; 7 And the napkin that was about his head, not lying with the linen clothes, but wrapped together in a place by itself. 8 Then went in also that other disciple which came first to the sepulchre, and he saw, and believed. 9 For as yet they knew not the scripture, that he must rise again from the dead. 10 Then the disciples went away again unto their own home. § 164. Our Lord is seen by Mary Magdalene at the Sepulchre. (First Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. John. Mark. CH. XX. 11-18. CH. XVI. 9-11. 11 But Mary stood without at 9 Now, when _Jesus_ was risen the sepulchre weeping: and as early, the first _day_ of the she wept she stooped down _and week, he appeared first to looked_ into the sepulchre, Mary Magdalene, out of whom he had cast seven devils. 12 And seeth two angels in white, sitting, the one at the head, and the other at the feet, where the body of Jesus had lain. 13 And they say unto her, Woman, why weepest thou? She saith unto them, Because they have taken away my Lord, and I know not where they have laid him. 14 And when she had thus said, she turned herself back, and saw Jesus standing, and knew not that it was Jesus. 15 Jesus saith unto her, Woman, why weepest thou? whom seekest thou? She, supposing him to be the gardener, saith unto him, Sir, if thou have borne him hence, tell me where thou hast laid him, and I will take him away. 16 Jesus saith unto her, Mary. She turned herself, and saith unto him, Rabboni, which is to say, Master. 17 Jesus saith unto her, Touch 10 _And_ she went and told me not: for I am not yet them that had been with him, ascended to my Father: but go as they mourned and wept. to my brethren, and say unto them, I ascend unto my Father and your Father, and _to_ my God and your God. 18 Mary Magdalene came and 11 And they, when they had told the disciples that she heard that he was alive, and had seen the Lord, and _that_ had been seen of her, believed he had spoken these things not. unto her. § 165. Report of the watch. (First Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Matthew. CH. XXVIII. 11-15. 11 Now, when they were going, behold, some of the watch came into the city, and shewed unto the chief priests all the things that were done. 12 And when they were assembled with the elders, and had taken counsel, they gave large money unto the soldiers, 13 Saying, Say ye, His disciples came by night, and stole him _away_ while we slept. 14 And if this come to the governor’s ears, we will persuade him, and secure you. 15 So they took the money, and did as they were taught: and this saying is commonly reported among the Jews until this day. § 166. Our Lord is seen of Peter; then by two disciples on the way to Emmaus. (First Day Of The Week.) _Emmaus_. Mark. Luke. CH. XVI. 12, 13. CH. XXIV. 13-35. 12 After that, he appeared in 13 And behold, two of them another form unto two of them, went that same day to a as they walked, and went into village called Emmaus, which the country. was from Jerusalem _about_ threescore furlongs. 14 And they talked together of all these things which had happened. 15 And it came to pass, that, while they communed _together_, and reasoned, Jesus himself drew near, and went with them. 16 But their eyes were holden, that they should not know him. 17 And he said unto them, What manner of communications _are_ these that ye have one to another, as ye walk, and are sad? 18 And the one of them, whose name was Cleopas, answering, said unto him, Art thou only a stranger in Jerusalem, and hast not known the things which are come to pass there in these days? 19 And he said unto them, What things? And they said unto him, Concerning Jesus of Nazareth, which was a prophet mighty in deed and word before God, and all the people: 20 And how the chief priests and our rulers delivered him to be condemned to death, and have crucified him. 21 But we trusted that it had been he which should have redeemed Israel: and besides all this, to-day is the third day since these things were done. 22 Yea, and certain women also of our company made us astonished, which were early at the sepulchre. 23 And when they found not his body, they came, saying, that they had also seen a vision of angels, which said that he was alive. 24 And certain of them which were with us, went to the sepulchre, and found _it_ even so as the women had said: but him they saw not. 25 Then he said unto them, O fools, and slow of heart to believe all that the prophets have spoken! 26 Ought not Christ to have suffered these things, and to enter into his glory? 27 And beginning at Moses, and all the prophets, he expounded unto them in all the scriptures the things concerning himself. 28 And they drew nigh unto the village whither they went: and he made as though he would have gone further. 29 But they constrained him, saying, Abide with us: for it is toward evening, and the day is far spent. And he went in to tarry with them. 30 And it came to pass, as he sat at meat with them, he took bread, and blessed _it_, and brake, and gave to them. 31 And their eyes were opened, and they knew him: and he vanished out of their sight. 32 And they said one to another, Did not our heart burn within us while he talked with us by the way, and while he opened to us the scriptures? 13 And they went and told _it_ 33 And they rose up the same unto the residue: neither hour, and returned to believed they them. Jerusalem, and found the eleven gathered together, and them that were with them, 34 Saying, The Lord is risen indeed, and hath appeared to Simon.(308) 35 And they told what things _were done_ in the way, and how he was known of them in breaking of bread. § 167. Jesus appears in the midst of the Apostles, Thomas being absent. (Evening Following The First Day Of The Week.) _Jerusalem_. Mark. CH. XVI. 14-18. 14 Afterward he appeared unto the eleven,(309) as they sat at meat, and upbraided them with their unbelief, and hardness of heart, because they believed not them which had seen him after he was risen. 15 And he said unto them, Go ye into all the world, and preach the gospel to every creature. 16 He that believeth and is baptized, shall be saved; but he that believeth not, shall be damned. 17 And these signs shall follow them that believe: In my name shall they cast out devils; they shall speak with new tongues: 18 They shall take up serpents; and if they drink any deadly thing, it shall not hurt them; they shall lay hands on the sick, and they shall recover. Luke. John. CH. XIV. 36-49. CH. XX. 19-23. 36 And as they thus spake, 19 Then the same day at Jesus himself stood in the evening, being the first _day_ midst of them, and saith unto of the week, when the doors them, Peace _be_ unto you. were shut where the disciples were assembled for fear of the Jews, came Jesus and stood in the midst, and saith unto them, Peace _be_ unto you. 37 But they were terrified and affrighted, and supposed that they had seen a spirit. 38 And he said unto them, Why are ye troubled? and why do thoughts arise in your hearts? 39 Behold my hands and my 20 And when he had so said, he feet, that it is I myself: shewed unto them _his_ hands handle me, and see; for a and his side. Then were the spirit hath not flesh and disciples glad when they saw bones, as ye see me have. the Lord. 40 And when he had thus spoken, he shewed them _his_ hands and _his_ feet. 41 And while they yet believed not for joy, and wondered, he said unto them, Have ye here any meat? 42 And they gave him a piece of a broiled fish, and of an honey-comb. 43 And he took _it_, and did eat before them. 44 And he said unto them, 21 Then said Jesus to them These _are_ the words which I again, Peace _be_ unto you: spake unto you, while I was _as my_ Father hath sent me, yet with you, that all things even so send I you. must be fulfilled which were written in the law of Moses, and _in_ the prophets, and _in_ the psalms, concerning me. 45 Then opened he their 22 And when he had said this, understanding, that they might he breathed on _them_, and understand the scriptures, saith unto them, Receive ye the Holy Ghost. 46 And said unto them, Thus it 23 Whose soever sins ye remit, is written, and thus it they are remitted unto them; behoved Christ to suffer, and _and_ whose soever _sins_ ye to rise from the dead the retain, they are retained. third day: 47 And that repentance and remission of sins should be preached in his name among all nations, beginning at Jerusalem. 48 And ye are witnesses of these things. 49 And behold, I send the promise of my Father upon you: but tarry ye in the city of Jerusalem, until ye be endued with power from on high. § 168. Jesus appears in the midst of the Apostles, Thomas being present. (Evening Following First Day Of Week After Resurrection.) _Jerusalem_. John. CH. XX. 24-29. 24 But Thomas, one of the twelve, called Didymus, was not with them when Jesus came. 25 The other disciples therefore said unto him, We have seen the Lord. But he said unto them, Except I shall see in his hands the print of the nails, and put my finger into the print of the nails, and thrust my hand into his side, I will not believe. 26 And after eight days again his disciples were within, and Thomas with them: _then_ came Jesus, the doors being shut, and stood in the midst, and said, Peace _be_ unto you. 27 Then saith he to Thomas, Reach hither thy finger, and behold my hands; and reach hither thy hand, and thrust _it_ into my side; and be not faithless, but believing. 28 And Thomas answered and said unto him, My Lord and my God. 29 Jesus saith unto him, Thomas, because thou hast seen me, thou hast believed: blessed _are_ they that have not seen and _yet_ have believed. § 169. The Apostles go away into Galilee. Jesus shows himself to seven of them at the Sea of Tiberias. _Galilee_. Matthew. John. CH. XXVIII. 16. CH. XXI. 1-24. 16 Then the eleven disciples After these things Jesus went away into Galilee, shewed himself again to the disciples at the sea of Tiberias; and on this wise shewed he _himself_. 2 There were together Simon Peter, and Thomas called Didymus, and Nathanael of Cana in Galilee, and the _sons_ of Zebedee, and two other of his disciples. 3 Simon Peter saith unto them, I go a fishing. They say unto him, We also go with thee. They went forth, and entered into a ship immediately; and that night they caught nothing. 4 But when the morning was now come, Jesus stood on the shore; but the disciples knew not that it was Jesus. 5 Then Jesus saith unto them, Children, have ye any meat? They answered him, No. 6 And he said unto them, Cast the net on the right side of the ship, and ye shall find. They cast therefore, and now they were not able to draw it for the multitude of fishes. 7 Therefore that disciple whom Jesus loved saith unto Peter, It is the Lord. Now when Simon Peter heard that it was the Lord, he girt _his_ fisher’s coat _unto him_, (for he was naked) and did cast himself into the sea. 8 And the other disciples came in a little ship (for they were not far from land, but as it were two hundred cubits) dragging the net with fishes. 9 As soon then as they were come to land, they saw a fire of coals there, and fish laid thereon, and bread. 10 Jesus saith unto them, bring of the fish which ye have now caught. 11 Simon Peter went up, and drew the net to land full of great fishes, an hundred and fifty and three: and for all there were so many, yet was not the net broken. 12 Jesus saith unto them, Come _and_ dine. And none of the disciples durst ask him, Who art thou? knowing that it was the Lord. 13 Jesus then cometh, and taketh bread, and giveth them, and fish likewise. 14 This is now the third time that Jesus shewed himself to his disciples, after that he was risen from the dead. 15 So when they had dined, Jesus saith to Simon Peter, Simon, _son_ of Jonas, lovest thou me more than these? He saith unto him, Yea, Lord: thou knowest that I love thee. He saith unto him, Feed my lambs. 16 He saith to him again the second time, Simon, _son_ of Jonas, lovest thou me? He saith unto him, Yea, Lord: thou knowest that I love thee. He saith unto him, Feed my sheep. 17 He saith unto him the third time, Simon, _son_ of Jonas, lovest thou me? Peter was grieved because he said unto him the third time, Lovest thou me? And he said unto him, Lord, thou knowest all things; thou knowest that I love thee. Jesus saith unto him, Feed my sheep. 18 Verily, verily, I say unto thee, When thou wast young, thou girdest thyself, and walkedst whither thou wouldest: but when thou shalt be old, thou shalt stretch forth thy hands, and another shall gird thee, and carry _thee_ whither thou wouldest not. 19 This spake he, signifying by what death he should glorify God. And when he had spoken this, he saith unto him, Follow me. 20 Then Peter, turning about, seeth the disciple whom Jesus loved, following; (which also leaned on his breast at supper, and said, Lord, which is he that betrayeth thee?) 21 Peter seeing him, saith to Jesus, Lord, and what _shall_ this man _do_? 22 Jesus saith unto him, if I will that he tarry till I come, what _is that_ to thee? Follow thou me. 23 Then went this saying abroad among the brethren, that that disciple should not die: yet Jesus said not unto him, He shall not die; but, if I will that he tarry till I come, what _is that_ to thee? 24 This is the disciple which testifieth of these things, and wrote these things: and we know that his testimony is true. § 170. Jesus meets the Apostles and above five hundred brethren on a mountain in Galilee. _Galilee_. Matthew. CH. XXVIII. 16-20. 16 into a mountain where Jesus had appointed them. 17 And when they saw him,(310) they worshipped him: but some doubted. 18 And Jesus came, and spake unto them, saying, All power is given unto me in heaven and in earth. 19 Go ye therefore and teach all nations, baptizing them in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost; 20 Teaching them to observe all things whatsoever I have commanded you: and lo, I am with you alway, _even_ unto the end of the world. Amen. § 171. Our Lord is seen of James; then of all the Apostles. _Jerusalem_. The title of this section in inserted, for the sake of preserving the series of Dr. Robinson, whose arrangement has been followed in this Harmony; but as the appearances of Jesus which are here referred to, are related only by Luke in Acts, i. 3-8, and by Paul in 1 Cor. xv. 7, the particular insertion of those passages is omitted, for the reasons already given. See § 137, note. The subject of this and the eleven preceding sections, respecting the resurrection of Jesus, is discussed in the Note on the Resurrection. § 172. The Ascension. _Bethany_. Mark. Luke. CH. XVI. 19, 20. CH. XXIV. 50-53. 19 So then, after the Lord had 50 And he led them out as far spoken unto them, he was as to Bethany:(311) and he received up into heaven, and lifted up his hands, and sat on the right hand of God. blessed them. 20 And they went forth, and 51 And it came to pass, while preached every where, the Lord he blessed them, he was parted working with _them_, and from them, and carried up into confirming the word with signs heaven. following. Amen. 52 And they worshipped him, and returned to Jerusalem with great joy: 53 And were continually in the temple, praising and blessing God. Amen. § 173. Conclusion of John’s Gospel. John. CH. XX. 30, 31. 30 And many other signs truly did Jesus in the presence of his disciples, which are not written in this book. 31 But these are written that ye might believe that Jesus is the Christ, the Son of God; and that believing ye might have life through his name. CH. XXI. 25. 25 And there are also many other things which Jesus did, the which, if they should be written every one, I suppose that even the world itself could not contain the books that should be written. Amen. NOTE ON THE RESURRECTION. The accounts of the Resurrection and of the subsequent appearances of our Lord, have been harmonised in various methods; of which the latest, and probably the best, is that of Professor Robinson, in an article published in the Bibliotheca Sacra for February 1845, vol. ii. pp. 162-189. As the best service the present writer could do to the English reader, he has therefore here abridged that article, by omitting the introduction, and such parts as relate to the Greek text, and a few other passages, which it seemed might be spared without injury to the narrative itself. § 1. _The Time of the Resurrection._ Matt. 26: 1, 2. Mark 16: 1, 2, 9. Luke 24: 1. John 20: 1. That the resurrection of our Lord took place before full daylight, on the first day of the week, follows from the unanimous testimony of the Evangelists respecting the visit of the women to the sepulchre. But the exact time at which he rose is nowhere specified. According to the Jewish mode of reckoning, the Sabbath ended and the next day began at sunset; so that had the resurrection occurred even before midnight, it would still have been upon the first day of the week, and the third day after our Lord’s burial. The earthquake had taken place and the stone had been rolled away before the arrival of the women; and so far as the immediate narrative is concerned, there is nothing to show that all this might not have happened some hours earlier. Yet the words of Mark in another place render it certain, that there could have been no great interval between these events and the arrival of the women; since he affirms in v. 9, that Jesus “had risen _early_, the first day of the week;” while in v. 2, he states that the women went out “_very early_.” A like inference may be drawn from the fact, that the affrighted guards first went to inform the chief priests of these events, when the women returned to the city (Matt. 28: 11); for it is hardly to be supposed, that after having been thus terrified by the earthquake and the appearance of an angel, they would have waited any very long time before sending information to their employers.—The body of Jesus had therefore probably lain in the tomb not less than about thirty-six hours. § 2. _The Visit of the Women to the Sepulchre._ Matt. 28: 1-8. Mark 16: 1-8. Luke 24: 1-11. John 20: 1, 2. The first notices we have of our Lord’s resurrection, are connected with the visit of the women to the sepulchre, on the morning of the first day of the week. According to Luke, the women who had stood by the cross, went home and rested during the sabbath (23:56); and Mark adds that after the sabbath was ended, that is, after sunset, and during the evening, they prepared spices in order to go and embalm our Lord’s body. They were either not aware of the previous embalming by Joseph and Nicodemus; or else they also wished to testify their respect and affection to their Lord, by completing, more perfectly, what before had been done in haste; John 19: 40-42. It is in just this portion of the history, which relates to the visit of the women to the tomb and the appearance of Jesus to them, that most of the alleged difficulties and discrepancies in this part of the Gospel narratives are found. We will therefore take up the chief of them in their order. I. _The Time_. All the Evangelists agree in saying that the women went out _very early_ to the sepulchre. Matthew’s expression is, _as the day was dawning_. Mark’s words are, _very early_: which indeed are less definite, but are appropriate to denote the same point of time. Luke has the more poetic term: _deep morning_, i. e. early dawn. John’s language is likewise definite: _early, while it was yet dark_. All these expressions go to fix the time at what we call _early dawn_, or _early twilight_; after the break of day, but while the light is yet struggling with darkness. Thus far there is no difficulty; and none would ever arise, had not Mark added the phrase, _the sun being risen_; or, as the English version has it, _at the rising of the sun_. These words seem, at first, to be at direct variance both with the _very early_ of Mark himself, and with the language of the other Evangelists. To harmonise this apparent discrepancy, we may premise, that since Mark himself first specifies the point of time by a phrase sufficiently definite in itself, and supported by all the other Evangelists, we must conclude that when he adds, _at the rising of the sun_, he did not mean to contradict himself, but used this latter phrase in a broader and less definite sense. As the sun is the source of light and of the day, and as his earliest rays produce the contrast between darkness and light, between night and dawn, so the term sunrising might easily come in popular language, by a metonymy of cause for effect, to be put for all that earlier interval, when his rays, still struggling with darkness, do nevertheless usher in the day. Accordingly, we find such a popular usage prevailing among the Hebrews; and several instances of it occur in the Old Testament. Thus in Judg. 9: 33, the message of Zebul to Abimelech, after directing him to lie in wait with his people in the field during the night, goes on as follows: “and it shall be, in the morning, as soon as the sun is up thou shalt rise early and set upon the city;” yet we cannot for a moment suppose that Abimelech with his ambuscade was to wait until the sun actually appeared above the horizon, before he made his onset. So the Psalmist (104: 22), speaking of the young lions that by night roar after their prey, goes on to say: “The sun ariseth, they gather themselves together, and lay them down in their dens.” But wild animals do not wait for the actual appearance of the sun ere they shrink away to their lairs; the break of day, the dawning light, is the signal for their retreat. See also Sept. 2 K. 3:22. 2 Sam. 23:4. In all these passages the language is entirely parallel to that of Mark; and they serve fully to illustrate the principle, that the rising of the sun is here used in a popular sense as equivalent to the _rising of the day_ or early dawn. II. _The Number of the Women._ Matthew mentions Mary Magdalene and the other Mary; v. 1. Mark enumerates Mary Magdalene, Mary the mother of James, and Salome; v. 1. Luke has Mary Magdalene, Joanna, Mary the mother of James, and others with them; v. 10. John speaks of Mary Magdalene alone, and says nothing of any other. The first three Evangelists accord then in respect to the two Marys, but no further; while John differs from them all. Is there here a real discrepancy? We may at once answer, No; because, according to the sound canon of Le Clerc:(312) “_Qui plura narrat, pauciora complectitur; qui pauciora memorat, plura non negat._” Because John, in narrating circumstances with which he was personally connected, sees fit to mention only Mary Magdalene, it does not at all follow that others were not present. Because Matthew, perhaps for like reasons, speaks only of the two Marys, he by no means excludes the presence of others. Indeed, the very words which John puts into the mouth of Mary Magdalene, (v. 2), presupposes the fact, that others had gone with her to the sepulchre. That there was something in respect to Mary Magdalene, which gave her a peculiar prominence in these transactions, may be inferred from the fact, that not only John mentions her alone, but likewise all the other Evangelists name her first, as if holding the most conspicuous place. The instance here under consideration is parallel to that of the demoniacs of Gadara, and the blind men at Jericho; where, in both cases, Matthew speaks of two persons, while Mark and Luke mention only one.(313) Something peculiar in the station or character of one of the persons, rendered him in each case more prominent, and led the two latter Evangelists to speak of him particularly. But there, as here, their language is not exclusive; nor is there in it anything that contradicts the statements of Matthew. III. _The Arrival at the Sepulchre._ According to Mark, Luke, and John, the women on reaching the sepulchre found the great stone, with which it had been closed, already rolled away. Matthew, on the other hand, after narrating that the women went out to see the sepulchre, proceeds to mention the earthquake, the descent of the angel, his rolling away the stone and sitting upon it, and the terror of the watch, as if all these things took place in the presence of the women. The angel too (in v. 5) addresses the women, as if still sitting upon the stone he had rolled away. The apparent discrepancy, if any, here arises simply from Matthew’s brevity in omitting to state in full what his own narrative presupposes. According to v. 6, Christ was already risen; and therefore the earthquake and its accompaniments must have taken place at an earlier point of time, to which the sacred writer returns back in his narration. And although Matthew does not represent the women as entering the sepulchre, yet in v. 8, he speaks of them as going out of it; so that of course their interview with the angel took place, not outside of the sepulchre, but in it, as narrated by the other Evangelists. When therefore the angel says to them in v. 6, “Come, see the place where the Lord lay,” this is not said without the tomb to induce them to enter, as Strauss avers; but within the sepulchre, just as in Mark v. 6. IV. _The Vision of Angels in the Sepulchre._ Of this John says nothing. Matthew and Mark speak of one angel; Luke of two. Mark says he was sitting; Luke speaks of them as standing. This difference in respect to numbers is parallel to the case of the women, which we have just considered; and requires therefore no further illustration. There is likewise some diversity in the language addressed to the women by the angels. In Matthew and Mark, the prominent object is the charge to the disciples to depart into Galilee. In Luke this is not referred to; but the women are reminded of our Lord’s own previous declaration, that he would rise again on the third day. Neither of the Evangelists here professes to report _all_ that was said by the angels; and of course there is no room for contradiction. § 3. _The return of the Women to the city, and the first appearance of our Lord._ Matt. 28: 7-10. Mark 16: 8. Luke 24: 9-11. John 20: 1, 2. John, speaking of Mary Magdalene alone, says that having seen that the stone was taken away from the sepulchre, she went in haste (ran) to tell Peter and John. He says nothing of her having seen the angels, nor of her having entered the sepulchre at all. The other Evangelists, speaking of the women generally, relate that they entered the tomb, saw the angels and then returned into the city. On their way Jesus meets them. They recognize him; fall at and embrace his feet; and receive his charge to the disciples.—Was Mary Magdalene now with the other women? Or did she enter the city by another way? Or had she left the sepulchre before the rest? It is evident that Mary Magdalene was not with the other women when Jesus thus met them. Her language to Peter and John forbids the supposition, that she had already seen the Lord: “They have taken away the Lord out of the sepulchre, and we know not where they have laid him.” She therefore must have entered the city by another path and gate; or else have left the sepulchre before the rest; or possibly both these positions may be true. She bore her tidings expressly to Peter and John, who would seem to have lodged by themselves in a different quarter of the city; while the other women went apparently to the rest of the disciples. But this supposition of a different route is essential, only in connection with the view, that she left the tomb with the other women. That, however, she actually departed from the sepulchre before her companions, would seem most probable; inasmuch as she speaks to Peter and John only of the absence of the Lord’s body; says nothing in this connection of a vision of angels; and when, after returning again to the tomb, she sees the angels, it is evidently for the first time; and she repeats to them as the cause of her grief her complaint as to the disappearance of the body; John 20: 12, 13. She may have turned back from the tomb without entering it at all, so soon as she saw that it was open; inferring from the removal of the stone, that the sepulchre had been rifled. Or, she may first have entered with the rest, when, according to Luke, “they found not the body of the Lord Jesus,” and “were much perplexed thereabout,” before the angels became visible to them. The latter supposition seems best to meet the exigencies of the case. “As the other women went to tell his disciples, behold, Jesus met them, saying, All hail. And they came, and held him by the feet, and worshipped him. Then Jesus said unto them, Be not afraid; go, tell my brethren, that they go into Galilee, and there shall they see me.” The women had left the sepulchre “with fear and great joy” after the declaration of the angels that Christ was risen; or, as Mark has it, “they trembled and were amazed.” Jesus meets them with words of gentleness to quiet their terrors; “Be not afraid.” He permits them to approach, and embrace his feet, and testify their joy and homage. He reiterates to them the message of the angels to his “brethren,” the eleven disciples; see v. 16. This appearance and interview is narrated only by Matthew; none of the other Evangelists give any hint of it. Matthew here stops short. Mark simply relates that the women fled from the tomb; “neither said they anything to any one, for they were afraid.” This of course can only mean, that they spoke of what they had thus seen to no one while on their way to the city; for the very charge of the angels, which they went to fulfil, was, that they should “go their way and tell his disciples;” v. 7. Luke narrates more fully, that “they returned from the sepulchre, and told all these things unto the eleven, and to all the rest.—And their words seemed to them as idle tales, and they believed them not.” We may perhaps see in this language one reason why the other Evangelists have omitted to mention this appearance of our Lord. The disciples _disbelieved the report of the women_, that they had seen Jesus. In like manner they afterwards disbelieved the report of Mary Magdalene to the same effect; Mark 16: 11. They were ready, it would seem, to admit the testimony of the women to the absence of the body, and to the vision of angels; but not to the resurrection of Jesus and his appearance to them; Luke 24: 21-24. And afterwards, when the eleven had become convinced by the testimony of their own senses, those first two appearances to the women became of less importance and were less regarded. Hence the silence of three Evangelists as to the one; of two as to the other; and of Paul as to both; 1 Cor. 15: 5, 6. § 4. _Peter and John visit the Sepulchre. Jesus appears to Mary Magdalene._ John 20: 3-18. Luke 24: 12. Mark 16: 9-11. The full account of these two events is given solely by John. Matthew has not a word of either; Luke merely mentions, in general, that Peter, on the report of the women, went to the sepulchre; while Mark speaks only of our Lord’s appearance to Mary Magdalene, which he seems to represent as his _first_ appearance. According to John’s account, Peter and the beloved disciple, excited by the tidings of Mary Magdalene that the Lord’s body had been taken away, hasten to the sepulchre. They run; John outruns Peter, comes first to the tomb, and stooping down, sees the grave-clothes lying, but he does not enter. The other women are no longer at the tomb; nor have the disciples met them on the way. Peter now comes up; he enters the the tomb, and sees the grave-clothes lying, and the napkin that was about his head not lying with the rest, but wrapped together in a place by itself. John too now enters the sepulchre; “and he saw and believed.” What was it that John thus believed? The mere report of Mary Magdalene, that the body had been removed? So much he must have believed when he stooped down and looked into the sepulchre. For this, there was no need that he should enter the tomb. His belief must have been of something more and greater. The grave-clothes lying orderly in their place, and the napkin folded together by itself, made it evident that the sepulchre had not been rifled nor the body stolen by violent hands; for these garments and spices would have been of more value to thieves, than merely a naked corpse; at least, they would not have taken the trouble thus to fold them together. The same circumstances showed also that the body had not been removed by friends; for they would not thus have left the grave-clothes behind. All these considerations produce in the mind of John the germ of a belief that Jesus was risen from the dead. He believed _because_ he saw; “_for_ as yet they knew not the Scripture;” (v. 9). He now began more fully to recall and understand our Lord’s repeated declaration, that he was to rise again on the third day;(314) a declaration on which the Jews had already acted in setting a watch.(315) In this way, the difficulty which is sometimes urged of an apparent want of connection between verses 8 and 9, disappears. The two disciples went their way, “wondering in themselves at what was come to pass.” Mary Magdalene who had followed them back to the sepulchre, remained before it weeping. While she thus wept, she too, like John, stooped down and looked in, “and seeth two angels, in white, sitting, the one at the head and the other at the feet, where the body of Jesus had lain.” To their inquiry why she wept, her reply was the same report which she had before borne to the two disciples: “Because they have taken away my Lord, and I know not where they have laid him,” v. 13. Of the angels we learn nothing further. The whole character of this representation seems to show clearly, that Mary had not before seen the angels; and also that she had not before been told, that Jesus was risen. We must otherwise regard her as having been in a most unaccountably obtuse and unbelieving frame of mind; the very contrary of which seems to have been the fact. If also she had before informed the two disciples of a vision of angels and of Christ’s resurrection, it is difficult to see, why John should omit to mention this circumstance, so important and so personal to himself. After replying to the angels, Mary turns herself about, and sees a person standing near, whom, from his being present there, she takes to be the keeper of the garden. He too inquires, why she weeps. Her reply is the same as before; except that she, not unnaturally, supposes him to have been engaged in removing the body, which she desires to recover. He simply utters in reply, in well-known tones, the name Mary! and the whole truth flashes upon her soul; doubt is dispelled, and faith triumphs. She exclaims: “Rabboni!” as much as to say, “My dearest Master!” and apparently, like the other women,(316) falls at his feet in order to embrace and worship him. This Jesus forbids her to do, in these remarkable words: “Touch me not: for I am not yet ascended to my Father. But go to my brethren, and say unto them, I ascend unto my Father and your Father, and to my God and your God;” v. 17. There remains to be considered the circumstance, that Mark, in v. 9, seems to represent this appearance of Jesus at the sepulchre to Mary Magdalene, as his first appearance: “Now, being risen early the first of the week, he appeared _first_ to Mary Magdalene.” In attempting to harmonize this with Matthew’s account of our Lord’s appearance to the other women on their return from the sepulchre, several methods have been adopted; but the most to the purpose is the view which regards the word _first_, in Mark v. 9, as put not absolutely, but relatively. That is to say, Mark narrates three, and only three, appearances of our Lord; _of these three_, that to Mary Magdalene takes place _first_, and that to the assembled disciples the same evening occurs _last_, v. 14. A similar example occurs in 1 Cor. 15: 5-8, where Paul enumerates those to whom the Lord showed himself after his resurrection, viz. to Peter, to the twelve, to five hundred brethren, to James, to all the apostles, and _last of all_ to Paul also. Now had Paul written here, as with strict propriety he might have done, “he was seen _first_ of Cephas,” assuredly no one would ever have understood him as intending to assert that the appearance to Peter was the first absolutely; that is, as implying that Jesus was seen of Peter before he appeared to Mary Magdalene and the other women. In like manner when John declares (21: 14) that Jesus showed himself to his disciples by the lake of Galilee for the _third_ time after he was risen from the dead; this is said relatively to the two previous appearances to the assembled apostles; and does by no means exclude the four still earlier appearances, viz. to Peter, to the two at Emmaus, to Mary Magdalene, and to the other women,—one of which John himself relates in full. In this way the old difficulty in the case before us disappears; and the complex and cumbrous machinery of earlier commentators becomes superfluous. After her interview with Jesus, Mary Magdalene returns to the city, and tells the disciples that she had seen the Lord and that he had spoken these things unto her. According to Mark (vs. 10, 11), the disciples were “mourning and weeping;” and when the heard that Jesus was alive and had been seen of her, they believed not. § 5. _Jesus appears to two disciples on the way to Emmaus. Also to Peter._ Luke 24: 13-35. Mark 16: 12, 13. 1 Cor. 15: 5. This appearance on the way to Emmaus is related in full only by Luke. Mark merely notes the fact; while the other two Evangelists and Paul (1 Cor. 15: 5) make no mention of it. On the afternoon of the same day on which our Lord arose, two of his disciples, one of them named Cleopas, were on their way on foot to a village called Emmaus, sixty stadia or seven and a half Roman miles distant from Jerusalem,—a walk of some two or two and a half hours. They had heard and credited the tidings brought by the women, and also by Peter and John, that the sepulchre was open and empty; and that the women had also seen a vision of angels, who said that Jesus was alive. They had most probably likewise heard the reports of Mary Magdalene and the other women, that Jesus himself had appeared to them; but these they did not regard, and do not mention them (v. 24); because they, like the other disciples, had looked upon them “as idle tales, and they believed them not;” v. 11. As they went, they were sad, and talked together of all these things which had happened. After some time Jesus himself drew near and went with them. But they knew him not. Mark says he was in another form; Luke affirms that “their eyes were holden, that they should not know him;” v. 16. Was there in this anything miraculous? The “another form” of Mark, Doddridge explains by “a different habit from what he ordinarily wore.” His garments, of course, were not his former ones; and this was probably one reason why Mary Magdalene had before taken him for the keeper of the garden.(317) It may be, too, that these two disciples had not been intimately acquainted with the Lord. He had arrived at Jerusalem only six days before his crucifixion; and these might possibly have been recent converts, who had not before seen him. To such, the change of garments, and the unexpectedness of the meeting, would render a recognition more difficult; nor could it be regarded as surprising, that under such circumstances they should not know him. Still, all this is hypothesis; and the averment of Luke, that “their eyes were holden,” and the manner of our Lord’s parting from them afterwards, seem more naturally to imply that the idea of a supernatural agency, affecting not Jesus himself, but the eyes or minds of the two disciples, was in the mind of the sacred writer. Jesus inquires the cause of their sadness; chides them for their slowness of heart to believe what the prophets had spoken; and then proceeds to expound unto them “in all the Scriptures the things concerning himself.” They feel the power of his words; and their hearts burn within them. By this time they drew nigh to the village whither they went; it was toward evening, and the day was far spent. Their journey was ended; and Jesus was about to depart from them. In accordance with oriental hospitality they constrained him to remain with them. He consents; and as he sat at meat with them, he took bread, and blessed and brake, and gave unto them. At this time, and in connection with this act, their eyes were opened; they knew him; and he vanished away from them. Here too the question is raised, whether the language necessarily implies anything miraculous? Our English translators have rendered this passage in the margin, “he ceased to be seen of them;” and have referred to Luke 4: 30, and John 8: 59, as illustrating this idea. They might also have referred to Acts 8: 39. Still, the language is doubtless such as the sacred writers would most naturally have employed in order directly to express the idea of supernatural agency. Full of wonder and joy, the two disciples set off the same hour and return to Jerusalem. They find the eleven and other disciples assembled; and as they enter, they are met with the joyful exclamation: “The Lord is risen indeed, and hath appeared unto Simon;” v. 34. They then rehearse what had happened to themselves; but, according to Mark, the rest believed them not. As in the case of the women, so here, there would seem to have been something in the position or character of these two disciples, which led the others to give less credit to their testimony, than to that of Peter, one of the leading apostles. This appearance to Peter is mentioned by no other Evangelist; and we know nothing of the particular time, nor of the attending circumstances. It would seem to have taken place either not long before, or else shortly after, that to the two disciples. It had not happened when they left Jerusalem for Emmaus; or, at least, they had not heard of it. It had occurred when they returned; and that long enough before to have been fully reported to all the disciples and believed by them. It may perhaps have happened about the time when the two disciples set off, or shortly afterwards. Paul, in enumerating those by whom the Lord was seen after his resurrection (1 Cor. 15: 5), mentions Peter first; passing over the appearances to the women, and also that to the two disciples; probably because they did not belong among the apostles. § 6. _Jesus appears to the Apostles in the absence of Thomas; and afterwards when Thomas is present._ Mark 16: 14-18. Luke 24: 36-48. John 20: 19-29. 1 Cor. 15: 5. The narrative of our Lord’s first appearance to the apostles is most fully given by Luke: John adds a few circumstances; and Mark, as well as Luke, has preserved the first charge thus privately given to the apostles, to preach the Gospel in all the world,—a charge afterwards repeated in a more public and solemn manner on the mountain in Galilee. When Paul says the Lord appeared to _the twelve_, he obviously employs this number as being the usual designation of the apostles; and very probably includes both the occasion narrated in this section. Mark and Luke speak in like manner of _the eleven_; and yet we know from John, that Thomas was not at first among them; so that of course only _ten_ were actually present. According to Mark, the disciples were at their evening meal; which implies a not very late hour. John says the doors were shut, for fear of the Jews. While the two who had returned from Emmaus were still recounting what had happened unto them, Jesus himself “came and stood in the midst of them, and saith unto them, Peace be unto you!” The question here again is raised, whether this entrance of our Lord was miraculous? That it might have been so, there is no reason to doubt. He who in the days of his flesh walked upon the waters, and before whose angel the iron gate of the prison opened of its own accord so that Peter might pass out; he who was himself just risen from the dead; might well in same miraculous way present himself to his followers in spite of bolts and bars. But does the language here necessarily imply a miracle? The doors indeed were shut; but the word used does not of itself signify that they were bolted or fastened. The object no doubt was, to prevent access to spies from the Jews; or also to guard themselves from the danger of being arrested; and both these objects might perhaps have been as effectually accomplished by a watch at or before the door. Nor do the words used of our Lord strictly indicate anything miraculous. We do not find here a form of the word commonly employed to express the sudden appearance of angels; but, “he _came_ and stood in the midst of them;” implying _per se_ nothing more than the ordinary mode of approach. There is, in fact, nothing in the whole account to suggest a miracle, except the remark of John respecting the doors; and as this circumstance is not mentioned either by Mark or Luke, it may be doubtful whether we are necessarily compelled by the language to regard the mode of our Lord’s entrance as miraculous. At this interview Thomas was not present. On his return the other disciples relate to him the circumstances. But Thomas now disbelieved the others; as they before had disbelieved the women. His reply was, “except I shall see in his hands the print of the nails, and put my finger into the print of the nails, and thrust my hand into his side, I will not believe.” Our Lord had compassion upon his perverseness. Eight days afterwards, when the disciples were again assembled and Thomas with them, our Lord came as before, and stood in the midst, and said, Peace be unto you! He permits to Thomas the test he had demanded; and charges him to be not faithless, but believing. Thomas, convinced and abashed, exclaims in the fulness of faith and joy, My Lord and my God! recognising and acknowledging thereby the divine nature thus manifested in the flesh. The reply of our Lord to Thomas is strikingly impressive and condemnatory of his want of faith: “Thomas, because thou hast seen me, thou hast believed; blessed are they that have not seen, and yet have believed!” He and the other disciples, who were to be the heralds of the Lord’s resurrection to the world as the foundation of the hope of the Gospel, refused to believe except upon the evidence of their own senses; while all who after them have borne the Christian Name, have believed this great fact of the Gospel solely upon their testimony. God has overruled their unbelief for good, in making it a powerful argument for the truth of their testimony in behalf of this great fact, which they themselves were so slow to believe. Blessed, indeed, are they who have received their testimony. § 7. _Our Lord’s Appearance in Galilee._ John 21: 1-24. Matt. 28: 16-20. 1 Cor. 15: 6. It appears from the narrative of Matthew, that while the disciples were yet in Jerusalem, our Lord had appointed a time, when he would meet them in Galilee, upon a certain mountain.(318) They therefore left Jerusalem after the passover, probably soon after the interview at which Thomas was present, and returned to Galilee, their home. While waiting for the appointed time, they engaged in their usual occupation of fishermen. On a certain day, as John relates, towards evening, seven of them being together, including Peter, Thomas, and the sons of Zebedee, they put out upon the lake with their nets in a fishing boat; but during the whole night they caught nothing. At early dawn Jesus stood upon the shore, from which they were not far off, and directed them to cast the net upon the right side of the boat. “They cast therefore, and now they were not able to draw it for the multitude of the fishes.” Recognising in this miracle their risen Lord, they pressed around him. Peter, with his characteristic ardour, threw himself into the water in order to reach him the sooner. At their Lord’s command they prepared a meal from the fish they had thus taken. “Jesus then cometh and taketh bread, and giveth them, and fish likewise.” This was his third appearance to the eleven; or rather to a large number of them together. It was on this occasion, and after their meal, that our Lord put to Peter the touching and thrice repeated question, “Lovest thou me?” At length the set time arrived; and the eleven disciples went away into the mountain “where Jesus had appointed them.” It would seem most probable, that this time and place had been appointed of our Lord for a solemn and more public interview, not only with the eleven, whom he had already met, but with all his disciples in Galilee; and that therefore it was on this same occasion, when, according to Paul, “he was seen of above five hundred brethren at once.”(319) That the interview was not confined to the eleven alone, would seem evident from the fact that “some doubted;” for this could hardly be supposed true of any of the eleven, after what had already happened to them in Jerusalem and Galilee, and after having been appointed to meet their risen Lord at this very time and place. The appearance of the five hundred must at any rate be referred to Galilee; for even after our Lord’s ascension, the number of the names in Jerusalem were together only about an hundred and twenty.(320) I do not hesitate, therefore, to hold with Flatt, Olshausen, Hengstenberg, and others, that the appearances thus described by Matthew and Paul, were identical. It was a great and solemn occasion. Our Lord had directed that the eleven and all his disciples in Galilee should thus be convened upon the mountain. It was the closing scene of his ministry in Galilee. Here his life had been spent. Here most of his mighty works had been done and his discourses held. Here his followers were as yet most numerous. He therefore here takes leave on earth of those among whom he had lived and laboured longest; and repeats to all his disciples in public the solemn charge, which he had already given in private to the apostles: “Go ye therefore and teach all nations:—and lo, I am with you alway, even unto the end of the world.” It was doubtless his last interview with his disciples in that region,—his last great act in Galilee. § 8. _Our Lord’s further Appearances at Jerusalem, and his Ascension._ 1 Cor. 15: 7. Acts 1: 3-12. Luke 24: 49-53. Mark 16: 19, 20. Luke relates, in Acts 1: 3, that Jesus showed himself alive to his apostles, “after his passion, by many infallible proofs, being seen of them forty days, and speaking of the things pertaining to the kingdom of God.” This would seem to imply interviews and communications, as to which we have little more than this very general notice. One of these may have been the appearance to James, mentioned by Paul alone (1 Cor. 15: 7), as subsequent to that to the five hundred brethren. It may be referred with most probability to Jerusalem, after the return of the Apostles from Galilee. That this return took place by the Lord’s direction, there can be no doubt; although none of the Evangelists have given us the slightest hint as to any such direction. Indeed, it is this very brevity,—this omission to place on record the minor details which might serve to connect the great facts and events of our Lord’s last forty days on earth, that has occasioned all the doubt and difficulty with which this portion of the written history of these events has been encompassed.—The James here intended was probably our Lord’s brother; who was of high consideration in the church, and is often, in the latter books, simply so named without any special designation.(321) At the time when Paul wrote, the other James, “the brother of John,” as he is called, was already dead.(322) After thus appearing to James, our Lord, according to Paul, was seen “of all the apostles.” This, too, was apparently an appointed meeting; and was doubtless the same of which Luke speaks, as occurring in Jerusalem immediately preceding the ascension. It was, of course, the Lord’s last interview with his apostles. He repeats to them the promise of the baptism with the Holy Spirit as soon to take place; and charges them not to depart from Jerusalem until this should be accomplished.(323) Strange as it may appear, the twelve, in this last solemn moment, put to him the question, “Lord, wilt thou at this time restore the kingdom to Israel?” How, indeed, were they to believe! Their gross and darkened minds, not yet enlightened by the baptism of the Spirit, clung still to the idea of a temporal Prince and Saviour, who should deliver his people, not from their sins, but from the galling yoke of Roman dominion. Our Lord deals gently with their ignorance and want of faith: “It is not for you to know the times and seasons;—but ye shall receive the power of the Holy Ghost coming upon you; and ye shall be witnesses unto me—unto the uttermost part of the earth.” During this discourse, or in immediate connection with it, our Lord leads them out _as far as to_ Bethany, and lifting up his hands he blessed them; Luke 24: 50. This act of blessing must be understood, by all the laws of language, as having taken place at or near Bethany. “And it came to pass, _while_ he blessed them, he was parted from them, and carried up into heaven.” Our Lord’s ascension, then, took place at or near Bethany. Indeed, the sacred writer could hardly have found words to express this fact more definitely and fully; and a doubt on this point could never have suggested itself to the mind of any reader, but for the language of the same writer, in Acts 1: 12, where he relates that after the ascension the disciples “returned unto Jerusalem by the mount called Olivet.” Luke obviously did not mean to contradict himself; and the most that his expression can be made to imply, is, that from Bethany, where their Lord had ascended, which lies on the eastern slope of the Mount of Olives, a mile or more below the summit of the ridge, the disciples returned to Jerusalem by a path across the mount. As these disciples stood gazing and wondering, while a cloud received their Lord out of their sight, two angels stood by them in white apparel, announcing unto them, that this same Jesus, who was thus taken up from them into heaven, shall again so come, in like manner as they had seen him go into heaven. With this annunciation closes the written history of our Lord’s resurrection and ascension. AN ACCOUNT OF THE TRIAL OF JESUS. The death of Jesus is universally regarded among Christians as a cruel murder, perpetrated under the pretence of a legal sentence, after a trial, in which the forms of law were essentially and grossly violated. The Jews to this day maintain, that, whatever were the merits of the case, the trial was at least regular, and the sentence legally just; that he was accused of blasphemy, and convicted of that offence by legal evidence. The question between them involves two distinct points of inquiry, namely, first, whether he was guilty of blasphemy; and, secondly, whether the arraignment and trial were conducted in the ordinary forms of law. But there will still remain a third question, namely, whether, admitting that, as a mere man, he had violated the law against blasphemy, he could legally be put to death for that cause; and if not, then whether he was justly condemned upon the new and supplemental accusation of treason or of sedition, which was vehemently urged against him. The first and last of these inquiries it is proposed briefly to pursue; but it will be necessary previously to understand the light in which he was regarded by the Jewish rulers and people, the state of their criminal jurisprudence and course of proceeding, and especially the nature and extent of the law concerning blasphemy, upon which he was indicted. In the early period of the ministry of Jesus, he does not appear to have excited among the Pharisees any emotion but wonder and astonishment, and an intense interest respecting the nature of his mission. But the people heard him with increasing avidity, and followed him in countless throngs. He taught a purer religion than the Scribes and Pharisees, whose pride and corruption he boldly denounced. He preached charity and humility, and perfect holiness of heart and life, as essential to the favour of God, whose laws he expounded in all the depth of their spirituality, in opposition to the traditions of the elders, and the false glosses of the Scribes and Pharisees. These sects he boldly charged with making void and rejecting the law of God, and enslaving men by their traditions; he accused them of hypocrisy, covetousness, oppression, and lust of power and popularity; and denounced them as hinderers of the salvation of others, as a generation of serpents and vipers, doomed to final perdition. It was natural that these terrific denunciations, from such a personage, supported by his growing power and the increasing acclamations of the people, should alarm the partisans of the ancient theocracy, and lead them to desire his destruction. This alarm evidently increased with the progress of his ministry; and was greatly heightened by the raising of Lazarus from the dead, on which occasion the death of Jesus was definitively resolved on;(324) but no active measures against him seem to have been attempted, until the time when, under the parable of the wicked husbandmen who cast the heir out of the vineyard and slew him, he declared that the kingdom of God should be taken from them, and given to others more worthy. Perceiving that he spake this parable against them, from that hour they sought to lay hands on him, and were restrained only by fear of the popular indignation.(325) Having thus determined to destroy Jesus at all events, as a person whose very existence was fatal to their own power, and perhaps, in their view, to the safety of their nation, the first step was to render him odious to the people; without which the design would undoubtedly recoil on the heads of its contrivers, his popularity being unbounded. Countless numbers had received the benefit of his miraculous gifts; and it was therefore deemed a vain attempt to found an accusation, at that time, on any past transaction of his life. A new occasion was accordingly sought, by endeavouring to “entangle him in his talk;” a measure, planned and conducted with consummate cunning and skill. The Jews were divided into two political parties. One of these consisted of the Pharisees, who held it unlawful to acknowledge or pay tribute to the Roman emperor, because they were forbidden, by the law of Moses,(326) to set a king over them who was a stranger, and not one of their own countrymen. The other party was composed of the partisans of Herod, who understood this law to forbid only the voluntary election of a stranger, and therefore esteemed it not unlawful to submit and pay tribute to a conqueror. These two parties, though bitterly opposed to each other, united in the attempt to entrap Jesus, by the question,—“Is it lawful to give tribute to Cæsar, or not?”(327) If he answered in the negative, the Herodians were to accuse him to Pilate, for treason; if in the affirmative, the Pharisees would denounce him to the people, as an enemy to their liberties.(328) This insidious design was signally frustrated by the wisdom of his reply, when, referring to Cæsar’s image and legend, on the coins which they all received as legally current, he showed the inconsistency of withholding the honour due to one thus implicitly acknowledged by both parties to be their lawful sovereign. Defeated in this attempt to commit him politically, their next endeavour was to render him obnoxious to one or the other of the two great religious sects, which were divided upon the doctrine of the resurrection, the Pharisees affirming, and the Sadducees denying, that the dead would rise again. The latter he easily silenced, by a striking exposition of their own law. They asked him which, of several husbands, would be entitled in the next world to the wife whom they successively had married in this; and in reply, he showed them that in heaven the relation of husband and wife was unknown.(329) Their last trial was made by a lawyer, who sought to entrap him into an assertion that one commandment in the law was greater than another; a design rendered abortive by his reply that they were all of equal obligation.(330) It being apparent, from these successive defeats, that any farther attempt to find new matter of accusation would result only in disgrace to themselves, the enemies of Jesus seem to have come to the determination to secure his person secretly, and afterwards to put him to death, in any manner that would not render them odious to the people. In execution of this design, they first bribed Judas to betray him by night into their hands. This object being attained, the next step was to destroy his reputation, and if possible to render him so vile in the public estimation, as that his destruction would be regarded with complacency. Now no charge could so surely produce this effect, and none could so plausibly be preferred against him, as that of blasphemy; a crime which the Jews regarded with peculiar horror. Even their veneration of Jesus, and the awe which his presence inspired, had not been sufficient to restrain their rising indignation on several occasions, when they regarded his language as the blasphemous arrogation of a divine character and power to himself; and could they now be brought to believe him a blasphemer, and see him legally convicted of this atrocious crime, his destruction might easily be brought about, without any very scrupulous regard to the form, and even with honour to those by whom it might be accomplished. It will now be necessary to consider more particularly the nature of the crime of blasphemy, in its larger signification, as it may be deduced from the law of God. That the spirit of this law requires from all men, everywhere, and at all times, the profoundest veneration of the Supreme Being, and the most submissive acknowledgment of Him as their rightful Sovereign, is too plain to require argument. If proof were wanted, it is abundantly furnished in the Decalogue,(331) which is admitted among Christians to be of universal obligation. At the time when the Jewish Theocracy was established, idolatry had become generally prevalent, and men had nearly lost all just notions of the nature and attributes of their Creator. It is therefore supposed that the design of Jehovah, in forming the Jewish constitution and code of laws, was to preserve the knowledge of himself as the true God, and to retain that people in the strictest possible allegiance to him alone; totally excluding every acknowledgment of any other being, either as an object of worship or a source of power. Hence the severity with which he required that sorceries, divinations, witchcrafts and false prophecies, as well as open idolatries, should be punished, they being alike acts of treason, or, as we might say, of _præmunire_, amounting to the open acknowledgment of a power independent of Jehovah. Hence, too, the great veneration in which he commanded that his name and attributes should be held, even in ordinary conversation. It is the breach of this last law, to which the term _blasphemy_, in its more restricted sense, has usually been applied;(332) but originally the command evidently extended to every word or act, directly in derogation of the sovereignty of Jehovah, such as speaking in the name of another god,(333) or omitting, on any occasion that required it, to give to Jehovah the honour due to his own name.(334) Thus, when Moses and Aaron, at the command of God, smote the rock in Kadesh, that from it waters might flow to refresh the famishing multitude, but neglected to honour him as the source of the miraculous energy, and arrogated it to themselves, saying, “Hear now, ye rebels, must _we_ bring you water out of this rock?”(335) this omission drew on them his severe displeasure. “And the Lord spake unto Moses and Aaron, Because ye believed me not, to sanctify _me_ in the eyes of the children of Israel, therefore _ye_ shall not bring this congregation into the land which I have given them.” Accordingly, both Moses and Aaron died before the Israelites entered into the promised land.(336) No other deity was permitted to be invoked; no miracle must be wrought, but in the name of God alone. “I am Jehovah; that is my name; and my glory will I not give to another, neither my praise to graven images.”(337) This was ever a cardinal principle of his law, neither newly announced by Isaiah, nor by Moses. Its promulgation on Mount Sinai was merely declaratory of what had been well understood at the beginning, namely, that God alone was the Lord of all power and might, and would be expressly acknowledged as such, in every exertion of superhuman energy or wisdom. Thus Joseph, when required to interpret the dream of Pharaoh, replied, “It is not in me: God shall give Pharaoh an answer of peace.”(338) And Moses, in all the miracles previously wrought by him in Egypt, expressly denounced them as the judgments of God, by whose hand alone they were inflicted.(339) After the solemn re-enactment of this law on Mount Sinai, its signal violation by Moses and Aaron deserved to be made as signal an example of warning; and this judgment of Jehovah may be said to constitute the leading case under this article of the law; forming a rule of action and of judgment for all cases of miracles which might be wrought in all coming time. The same principle was afterwards expressly extended to prophesying. “The prophet—that shall speak in the name of other gods, even that prophet shall die.”(340) His character of prophet, and even his inspiration, shall not authorize him to prophesy but in the name of the Lord. He shall not exercise his office in his own name, nor in any name but that of Jehovah, from whom his power was derived. That such was understood to be the true meaning of this law of God, is further evident from the practice of the prophets, in later times, to whom was given the power of working miracles. These they always wrought in his name, expressly acknowledged at the time. Thus, the miracle of thunder and rain in the season of the wheat-harvest, called for by Samuel, he expressly attributed to the Lord.(341) So did Elijah, when he called fire from heaven to consume his sacrifice, in refutation of the claims of Baal.(342) So did Elisha, when he divided the waters of Jordan, by smiting them with the mantle of Elijah;(343) and again, when he miraculously multiplied the loaves of bread, for the people that were with him;(344) and again, when he caused the young man’s eyes to be opened, that he might behold the hosts of the Lord around him, and smote his enemies with blindness.(345) And even the angel Gabriel, when sent to interpret to Daniel the things which should befall his people in the latter days, explicitly announced himself as speaking in Jehovah’s name.(346) The same view of the sinfulness of exercising superhuman power without an express acknowledgment of God as its author, and of any usurpation of his authority, continued to prevail, down to the time of our Saviour. Thus, when he said to the sick of the palsy, “Son, be of good cheer, thy sins be forgiven thee,” certain of the Scribes said within themselves, “This man blasphemeth. Who can forgive sins, but God alone?”(347) And again, when the Jews, on another occasion, took up stones to stone him, and Jesus, appealing to his good works done among them, asked for which of them he was to be stoned; they replied, “For a good work we stone thee not, but for blasphemy, and because that thou, being a man, makest thyself God.”(348) Yet Jesus had on no occasion mentioned the _name_ of Jehovah, but with profound reverence. Thus it appears that the law of blasphemy, as it was understood among the Jews, extended not only to the offence of impiously using the name of the Supreme Being, but to every usurpation of his authority, or arrogation, by a created being, of the honour and power belonging to him alone.(349) Like the crime of treason among men, its essence consisted in acknowledging or setting up the authority of another sovereign than one’s own, or invading the powers pertaining exclusively to him; an offence, of which the case of Moses, before cited, is a prominent instance, both in its circumstances and in its punishment. Whether a false god was acknowledged or the true one denied, and whether the denial was in express terms, or by implication, in assuming to do, by underived power, and in one’s own name, that which God only could perform, the offence was essentially the same. And in such horror was it held by the Israelites, that in token of it every one was obliged, by an early and universal custom, to rend his garments, whenever it was committed or related in his presence.(350) This sentiment was deeply felt by the whole people, as a part of their religion. Such being the general scope and spirit of the law, it would seem to have been easy to prove that Jesus had repeatedly incurred its penalties. He had performed many miracles, but never in any other name than his own. In his own name, and without the recognition of any higher power, he had miraculously healed the sick, restored sight to the blind and strength to the lame, cast out devils, rebuked the winds, calmed the sea, and raised the dead. In his own name, also, and with no allusion to the Omniscient, no “Thus saith the Lord,” he had prophesied of things to come. He had by his own authority forgiven sins, and promised, by his own power, not only to raise the dead, but to resume his own life, after he should, as he predicted, be put to death. Finally, he had expressly claimed for himself a divine origin and character, and the power to judge both the quick and the dead(351). Considered as a man, he had usurped the attributes of God. That he was not arrested at an earlier period, is to be attributed to his great popularity, and the astounding effect of his miracles. His whole career had been resplendent with beneficence to the thousands who surrounded him. His eloquence surpassed all that had been uttered by man. The people were amazed, bewildered, and fascinated, by the resistless power of his life. It was not until his last triumphal visit to Jerusalem, after he had openly raised Lazarus from the dead, when the chief priests and elders perceived that “the world was gone after him,” that they were stricken with dismay and apprehension for their safety, and under this panic resolved upon the perilous measure of his destruction. The only safe method in which this could be accomplished, was under the sanction of a legal trial and sentence. Jesus, therefore, upon his apprehension, was first brought before the great tribunal of the Sanhedrim, and charged with the crime of blasphemy. What were the specifications under this general charge, or whether any were necessary, we are not informed. But that this was the offence charged, is manifest both from the evidence adduced and from the judgment of conviction.(352) Such was the estimation in which he was held, that it was with great difficulty that witnesses could be found to testify against him; and the two who at last were procured, testified falsely, in applying his words to the temple of Solomon, which he spake of the temple of his body. When, upon the occasion of his scourging the money-changers out of the temple, the Jews demanded by what authority he did this, Jesus replied, alluding to his own person, “Destroy _this_ temple, and in three days I will raise it up.”(353) But though the witnesses swore falsely in testifying that he spake of the Jewish temple, yet his words, in either sense, amounted to a claim of the power of working miracles, and so brought him within the law. The high priest, however, still desirous of new evidence, which might justify his condemnation in the eyes of the people, proceeded to interrogate Jesus concerning his character and mission. “I adjure thee, by the living God, that thou tell us whether thou be the Christ, the Son of God. Jesus saith unto him, Thou hast said: nevertheless, I say unto you, hereafter ye shall see the Son of Man sitting on the right hand of power, and coming in the clouds of heaven. Then the high priest _rent his clothes_, saying He hath _spoken blasphemy_; what _further_ need have we of witnesses? Behold, now _ye have heard his blasphemy_. What think ye? They answered and said, _He is guilty of death_.”(354) We may suppose the multitude standing without the hall of judgment, able, through its avenues and windows, to see, but not to hear, all that was transacting within. It became important, therefore, to obtain some reason upon which the high priest might rend his clothes in their sight, thus giving to the people, by this expressive and awful sign, the highest evidence of blasphemy, uttered by Jesus in the presence of that august assembly. This act turned the tide of popular indignation against him, whose name, but a short time before, had been the theme of their loudest hosannas. There was now no need to go into the past transactions of his ministry, for matter of accusation. His friends might claim for him on that score all that the warmest gratitude and love could inspire; and all this could be safely conceded. But here, his accusers might say, was a new and shocking crime, just perpetrated in the presence of the most sacred tribunal; a crime so shocking, and so boldly committed, that the high priest rent his clothes with horror, in the very judgment seat, in the presence of all the members of the Sanhedrim, who, with one accord, upon that evidence alone, immediately convicted the offender and sentenced him to death. If we regard Jesus simply as a Jewish citizen, and with no higher character, this conviction seems substantially right in point of law, though the trial were not legal in all its forms. For, whether the accusation were founded on the first or second commands in the decalogue, or on the law, laid down in the thirteenth chapter of Deuteronomy, or on that in the eighteenth chapter and twentieth verse, he had violated them all, by assuming to himself powers belonging alone to Jehovah. And even if he were recognized as a prophet of the Lord, he was still obnoxious to punishment, under the decision in the case of Moses and Aaron, before cited. It is not easy to perceive on what ground his conduct could have been defended before any tribunal, unless upon that of his superhuman character. No lawyer, it is conceived, would think of placing his defence upon any other basis. The great object of exciting the people against Jesus being thus successfully accomplished, the next step was to obtain legal authority to put him to death. For though the Sanhedrim had condemned him, they had not the power to pass a capital sentence; this being a right which had passed from the Jews by the conquest of their country, and now belonged to the Romans alone. They were merely citizens of a Roman province; they were left in the enjoyment of their civil laws, the public exercise of their religion, and many other things relating to their police and municipal regulations; but they had not the power of life and death. This was a principal attribute of sovereignty, which the Romans always took care to reserve to themselves in order to be able to reach those individuals who might become impatient of the yoke, whatever else might be neglected. _Apud quos (Romanos), vis imperii valet; inania transmittuntur_.(355) The jurisdiction of capital cases belonged ordinarily to the governor general or _Præses_ of a province, the _Procurator_ having for his principal duty only the charge of the revenue and the cognizance of revenue causes. But the right of taking cognizance of capital crimes was, in some cases, given to certain _Procurators_, who were sent into small provinces, to fill the places of governors, (_Vice Præsides_,) as clearly appears from the Roman laws. The government of all Syria was at this time under a governor general, or _Præses_; of which Judea was one of the lesser dependencies, under the charge of Pilate as _Vice Præses_, with capital jurisdiction.(356) It could not be expected that Pilate would trouble himself with the cognizance of any matter, not pertaining to the Roman law; much less with an alleged offence against the God of the Jews, who was neither acknowledged nor even respected by their conquerors. Of this the chief priests and elders were fully aware; and therefore they prepared a second accusation against Jesus, founded on the Roman law; as likely to succeed with Pilate, as the former had done with the people. They charged him with attempting to restore the kingdom of Israel, under his own dominion as king of the Jews. “We found this fellow, said they, perverting the nation, and forbidding to give tribute to Cæsar, saying, That he himself is Christ, a king.”(357) It was a charge of high treason against the Roman state and emperor; a charge which was clearly within Pilate’s cognizance, and which, as they well knew, no officer of Tiberius would venture lightly to regard. Pilate accordingly forthwith arraigned Jesus, and called upon him to answer this accusation. It is worthy of note, that from the moment when he was accused of treason before Pilate, no further allusion was made to the previous charge of blasphemy; the Roman governor being engaged solely with the charge newly preferred before himself. The answer of Jesus to this charge satisfied Pilate that it was groundless, the kingdom which he set up appearing plainly to be not a kingdom of this world, but his spiritual reign in righteousness and holiness and peace, in the hearts of men. Pilate therefore acquitted him of the offence. “He went out again unto the Jews, and saith unto them, _I find in him no fault at all_.”(358) Here was a sentence of acquittal, judicially pronounced, and irreversible, except by a higher power, upon appeal; and it was the duty of Pilate thereupon to have discharged him. But the multitude, headed now by the priests and elders, grew clamorous for his execution; adding, “He stirreth up the people, teaching throughout all Jewry, beginning from Galilee to this place.”(359) Hearing this reference to Galilee, Pilate seized the opportunity, thus offered, of escaping from the responsibility of a judgment, either of acquittal or of condemnation, by treating the case as out of his jurisdiction, and within that of Herod, tetrarch of Galilee, who was then in Jerusalem on a visit. He therefore sent Jesus and his accusers to Herod; before whom the charge was vehemently renewed and urged. But Herod, too, perceived that it was utterly groundless, and accordingly treated it with derision, arraying Jesus in mock habiliments of royalty, and remanding him to Pilate.(360) The cause was then solemnly re-examined by the Roman governor, and a second judgment of acquittal pronounced. For “Pilate, when he had called together the chief priests and the rulers, and the people, said unto them, Ye have brought this man unto me, as one that perverteth the people; and behold, I having examined him before you, have found no fault in this man, touching those things whereof ye accuse him: No, nor yet Herod: for I sent you to him; and lo, nothing worthy of death is done unto him. I will therefore chastise him and release him.”(361) It may seem strange to us that after a judgment of acquittal thus solemnly pronounced, any judge, in a civilized country, should venture to reverse it, upon the same evidence, and without the pretence of mistake or error in the proceedings. Probably, in the settled jurisprudence of the city of Rome, it could not have been done. But this was in a remote province of the empire, under the administration not of a jurist, but a soldier; and he, too, irresolute and vacillating; fearful for his office, and even for his life, for he served the “dark and unrelenting Tiberius.” As soon as he proposed to release Jesus, “the Jews cried out, saying, If thou let this man go, thou art not Cæsar’s friend. Whosoever maketh himself a king, speaketh against Cæsar.”(362) Whereupon “Pilate gave sentence that it should be as they required.”(363) That Jesus was executed under the pretence of treason, and that alone, is manifest from the tenor of the writing placed over his head, stating that he was king of the Jews; such being the invariable custom among the Romans, in order that the public might know for what crime the party had been condemned.(364) The remaining act in this tragedy is sufficiently known. In the preceding remarks, the case has been considered only upon its general merits, and with no reference to the manner in which the proceedings were conducted. But M. Dupin, in his tract on the Trial of Jesus before the Sanhedrim, in reply to Mr. Salvador’s account of it, has satisfactorily shown that throughout the whole course of that trial the rules of the Jewish law of procedure were grossly violated, and that the accused was deprived of rights, belonging even to the meanest citizen. He was arrested in the night, bound as a malefactor, beaten before his arraignment, and struck in open court during the trial; he was tried on a feast day, and before sunrise; he was compelled to criminate himself, and this, under an oath or solemn judicial adjuration; and he was sentenced on the same day of the conviction. In all these particulars the law was wholly disregarded.(365) THE JEWISH ACCOUNT OF THE TRIAL OF JESUS. BY MR. SALVADOR. MR. JOSEPH SALVADOR, a physician and a learned Jew, a few years ago published at Paris, a work, entitled, “Histoire des Institutions de Moïse et du Peuple Hébreu,” in which, among other things, he gives an account of their course of criminal procedure, in a chapter on “The Administration of Justice;” which he illustrates, in a succeeding chapter, by an account of the trial of Jesus. As this is the recent work of a man of learning, himself a Jew, it may be regarded as an authentic statement of what is understood and held by the most intelligent and best informed Jews, respecting the claims of our Lord, the tenor of his doctrines, the nature of the charge laid against him before the Sanhedrim, and the grounds on which they condemned him. The following translation of the last-mentioned chapter will therefore not be unacceptable to the reader. It will be found in Book IV. chapter iii., entitled, “The Trial and Condemnation of Jesus.” The reader will bear in his mind, that it is the language of an enemy of our Saviour, and in justification of his murderers. “According to this exposition of judicial proceedings,” says the Jew, “I shall follow out the application of them in the most memorable tried in history, that of Jesus Christ. I have already explained the motives which have directed me, and the point of view in which I have considered the subject; I have already shown, that among the Jews no title was a shelter against a prosecution and sentence. Whether the law or its forms were good or bad, is not the object of my present investigation; neither is it to ascertain whether we ought to pity the blindness of the Hebrews in not discovering a Deity in Jesus, or to be astonished that a God personified could not make himself comprehended when he desired it. But since they regarded him only as a citizen, did they not try him according to their law and its existing forms? This is my question, which can admit of no equivocation. I shall draw all my facts from the Evangelists themselves, without inquiring whether all this history was developed after the event, to serve as a form to a new doctrine, or to an old one which had received a fresh impulse. Jesus was born of a family of small fortune; Joseph, his supposed father, perceived that his wife was big before they had come together. If he had brought her to trial, in the ordinary course of things, Mary, according to the 23rd verse of the 22nd chapter of Deuteronomy, would have been condemned, and Jesus, having been declared illegitimate, could never, according to the 2nd verse of the 23rd chapter, have been admitted to a seat in the Sanhedrim.(366) But Joseph, who, to save his wife from disgrace, had taken the resolution of sending her away privately, soon had a dream which consoled him.(367) After having been circumcised, Jesus grew like other men, attended the solemn feasts, and early displayed surprising wisdom and sagacity. In the assembly on the Sabbath, the Jews, eager for the disputes to which the interpretation of the law gave rise, loved to hear him. But he soon devoted himself to more important labours; he pronounced censures against whole towns, Capernaum, Chorazin and Bethsaida.(368) Recalling the times of Isaiah and Jeremiah, he thundered against the chiefs of the people with a vehemence which would in our day be terrific.(369) The people then regarded him as a prophet;(370) they heard him preach in towns and country without opposition; they saw him surrounded with disciples according to the custom of the learned men of the age; whatever may have been the resentment of the chief men, they were silent as long as he confined himself to the law. But Jesus, in presenting new theories, and in giving new forms to those already promulgated, speaks of himself as God; his disciples repeat it; and the subsequent events prove in the most satisfactory manner, that they thus understood him.(371) This was shocking blasphemy in the eyes of the citizens: the law commands them to follow Jehovah alone, the only true God; not to believe in gods of flesh and bone, resembling men or women; neither to spare nor listen to a prophet who, even doing miracles, should proclaim a new god, a god whom neither they nor their fathers had known.(372) Jesus having said to them one day: “I have come down from heaven to do these things,” the Jews, who till then had listened to him, murmured and cried: “Is not this Jesus, the son of Joseph and of Mary? we know his father, his mother, and his brethren; why then does he say that he has come down from heaven?”(373) On another day, the Jews, irritated from the same cause, took stones and threatened him. Jesus said unto them, “I have done good works in your eyes by the power of my Father, for which of these works would you stone me? It is for no good work,” replied the Jews, who stated the whole process in few words, “but because of thy blasphemy; for being a man,(374) thou makest thyself God.”(375) His language was not always clear. Often his disciples themselves did not comprehend him. Among his maxims, some of which showed the greatest mildness, there were some which the Hebrews, who were touched only through their natural sense, thought criminal. “Think not that I am come to send peace on earth; I came not to send peace, but a sword. For I am come to set a man at variance against his father, and the daughter against her mother, and the daughter-in-law against her mother-in-law. And a man’s foes shall be they of his own household. He that loveth father or mother more than me, is not worthy of me.”(376) Finally, if he wrought miracles before certain of the people, his replies to the questions of the doctors were generally evasive.(377) In regard to political relations, he caused dissensions.(378) A great number of disorderly persons whom he had the design of reclaiming, but who inspired dread in the national council, attached themselves to him;(379) his discourse flattered them inasmuch as he pronounced anathemas against riches. “Know,” said he, “that it is easier for a camel to go through the eye of a needle, than for a rich man to enter the kingdom of heaven.”(380) In this state of affairs, the council deliberates; some are of opinion that he should be regarded as a madman,(381) others say that he seeks to seduce the people.(382) Caiaphas, the high priest, whose dignity compels him to defend the letter of the law, observes that these dissensions would furnish an excuse to the Romans for overwhelming Judea, and that the interests of the whole nation must outweigh those of a single individual; he constitutes himself the accuser of Jesus.(383) The order is given to seize him. But let us pause here upon a fact of the highest importance. The senate did not begin by actually seizing Jesus, as is now the practice; they begin by giving, after some debate, an order that he should be seized.(384) This decree is made public; it is known to all, especially to Jesus. No opposition is offered to his passing the frontier: his liberty depends entirely upon himself. This is not all; the order for his arrest was preceded by a decree of admonition. One day, Jesus having entered the temple, took upon himself authority contrary to the common law; then he preached to the people, and said: “That those who should believe in him should be able to do all things, so that if they should say to a mountain, remove thyself and cast thyself into the sea, it would obey.” Then the chief priest and senators went to find him and said to him, “By what authority doest thou these things? who gave thee this power?”(385) Meanwhile a traitor discloses the place whither the accused had retired; the guards, authorized by the high priest and by the elders,(386) hasten to seize him. One of his disciples, breaking into open rebellion, with a stroke of his sword cuts off the ear of one of them, and brings upon himself the reproof of his master.(387) As soon as Jesus is arrested, the zeal of the apostles is extinguished; all forsake him.(388) He is brought before the grand council, where the priests sustain the accusation. The witnesses testify, and they are numerous; for the deeds of which he is accused were done in the presence of all the people. The two witnesses whom St. Matthew and St. Mark accuse of perjury, relate a discourse which St. John declares to be true, with regard to the power which Jesus arrogates to himself.(389) Finally, the high priest addresses the accused, and says: “Is it true that thou art Christ, that thou art the Son of God?” “I am he,” replies Jesus; “you shall see me hereafter at the right hand of the majesty of God, who shall come upon the clouds of heaven.” At these words, Caiaphas rent his garments in token of horror.(390) “You have heard him.” They deliberate. The question already raised among the people was this: Has Jesus become God? But the senate having adjudged that Jesus, son of Joseph, born at Bethlehem, had profaned the name of God by usurping it to himself, a mere citizen, applied to him the law of blasphemy, and the law in the 13th chapter of Deuteronomy, and the 20th verse in chapter 18, according to which every prophet, even he who works miracles, must be punished, when he speaks of a god unknown to the Jews and their fathers:(391) the capital sentence was pronounced. As to the ill-treatment which followed the sentence, it was contrary to the spirit of the Jewish law; and it is not in the course of nature, that a senate composed of the most respectable men of a nation, who, however they might have been deceived, yet intended to act legally, should have permitted such outrages against him whose life was at their disposal. The writers who have transmitted to us these details, not having been present at the trial, have been disposed to exaggerate the picture, either on account of their prejudices, or to throw greater obloquy on the judges. One thing is certain, that the council met again on the morning of the next day or the day following that,(392) as the law requires, to confirm or to annul the sentence: it was confirmed. Jesus was brought before Pilate, the procurator that the Romans had placed over the Jews. They had retained the power of trying according to their own laws, but the executive power was in the hands of the procurator alone: no criminal could be executed without his consent: this was in order that the Senate should not have the means of reaching men who were sold to foreigners.(393) Pilate, the Roman, signed the decree. His soldiers, an impure mixture of diverse nations, were charged with the punishment. These are they who brought Jesus to the judgment hall, who stripped him before the whole cohort, who placed upon his head a crown of thorns, and a reed in his hand, who showed all the barbarity to which the populace in all ages is disposed; who finally caused him to undergo a punishment common at Rome, and which was not in use among the Jews.(394) But before the execution, the governor had granted to the condemned an appeal to the people, who, respecting the judgment of their own council, would not permit this favour, couching their refusal in these terms: “We have a law; and by our law he ought to die, because he made himself the Son of God.”(395) Then Pilate left them the choice of saving Jesus, or a man accused of murder in a sedition; the people declared for the latter; saying that the other would scatter the seeds of discord in the bosom of the nation, at a time when union was most necessary.(396) “Jesus was put to death. The priests and elders went to the place of punishment; and as the sentence was founded upon this fact, that he had unlawfully arrogated to himself the title of Son of God, God himself, they appealed to him thus: ‘Thou wouldst save others; thyself thou canst not save. If thou art indeed the king of Israel, come down into the midst of us, and we will believe in thee, since thou hast said, I am the Son of God, let that God who loves thee come now to thine aid.’(397) According to the Evangelist, these words were a mockery; but the character of the persons who pronounced them, their dignity, their age, the order which they had observed in the trial, prove their good faith. Would not a miracle at this time have been decisive?” THE TRIAL OF JESUS BEFORE CAIAPHAS AND PILATE. Being A Refutation Of Mr. Salvador’s Chapter Entitled “The Trial And Condemnation Of Jesus.” By M. Dupin. Translated From The French by John Pickering, LL.D. Preface. A few years ago, Mr. Joseph Salvador, a physician—and a descendant of one of those Jewish families, whom the intolerance of Ferdinand the Catholic expelled, in a body, from Spain, about the year 1492—published at Paris a learned work, entitled “Histoire des Institutions de Moïse et du Peuple Hébreu,” or History of the Institutions of Moses and the Hebrew People; and in one chapter of his work he gives an account of the _Administration of Justice_ among the Hebrews. To that chapter he has subjoined an account of the “Trial and Condemnation of Jesus;” in the course of which he expresses his opinion, that the trial, considered merely _as a legal proceeding_, was conformable to the Jewish laws. The author of the following little work, M. Dupin, who is one of the most eminent lawyers of the French Bar, immediately called in question the correctness of Mr. Salvador’s opinion, and entered upon an analysis of this portion of his work, with a view to examine its soundness, and the present volume contains the result of that examination, conducted with great legal skill and extensive learning. It appears, that he had, many years before, in a little work, entitled “_The Free_ Defence of Accused Persons,” published in 1815, taken the same views of this great trial; which, as he observes, has been justly called “the _Passion_ or _Suffering_ of our Saviour; for he did in truth _suffer_, and had not a trial.” The author’s attention, however, had been withdrawn from this subject for several years, when it was again brought under his notice by the work of Mr. Salvador, a copy of which was sent to him by that writer, with a request that M. Dupin would give some account of it. Accordingly, says the latter, “it is in compliance with _his request_, and not from a spirit of hostility, that I have made this examination of his work;” and he gives ample proof of his good feeling towards Mr. Salvador, with whom, he says, he is personally acquainted and for whose talents he has a great respect. With this friendly spirit he enters upon his examination; which is conducted with an ability, learning, animation, and interest, that leave nothing to be desired. As an argument, his work is unanswerable,—he has demolished that of his adversary; and, for intense interest, we do not know any publication of the present day to be compared with it. The introductory _Analysis_ of Mr. Salvador’s chapter on the Administration of Justice according to the Jewish Law will be highly instructive and interesting; and those persons, who have not been accustomed to read the Bible with particular reference to the _Law_, will find many new and striking views of that portion of the Scriptures. They cannot fail to be particularly struck with the extraordinary care taken to secure by law the personal liberty and rights of the citizen. According to Mr. Salvador’s view, “the fundamental division into _castes_ is the principal basis of the oriental theocracies.” Moses, on the contrary, took for his basis the _unity_ of the people. In his system of legislation the people are every thing; and the author shows us, that every thing, eventually, is done for them, by them, and with them. The tribe of Levi was established, only to supply a secondary want; and that tribe was very far from obtaining all the powers which we are apt to attribute to it; it did not make, nor develope the laws; it did not judge or govern; all its members, even the high priest himself, were subject to the control of the Elders of the nation, or of a Senate legally assembled. Intimately connected with these rights of the people was the _liberty of speech_; and Mr. Salvador, in his chapter on the _Public Orators and Prophets_, maintains, and in the opinion of M. Dupin, proves clearly, that in no nation was the liberty of speech ever so unlimited, as among the Hebrews. Accordingly he observes—“What an additional difference was this between the Israelites and the Egyptians! Among the latter, the mass of the people did not dare, without incurring the hazard of the most terrible punishment, to utter a word on affairs of state; it was Harpocrates, the god of silence with his finger on his closed lips, who was their God; in Israel, it was _the right of speech_.” But we forbear any further reflections, and submit this remarkable performance to our readers. Those, who are familiar with the animated tone of French writers, will perhaps discover in this translation some loss of the fire and intensity of the original; but the translator’s purpose will be effected, if his version shall be found to be a faithful one. September 3, 1839. Analysis Of The Chapter Of Mr. Salvador, Entitled “The Administration Of Justice” Among The Jews.(398) Mr. Salvador has discussed with particular care whatever relates to the _administration of justice_ among the Jewish people. We shall dwell upon this chapter, which undoubtedly will most interest our readers. _Judicare_ and _judicari_, to judge and to be judged, express the rights of every Hebrew citizen; that is, no one could be condemned without a judgment, and every one might, in his turn, be called upon to sit in judgment upon others. Some exceptions to this principle are explained; but they do not affect the rule. In matters of mere interest each party chose a judge, and these two chose a third person. If a discussion arose as to _the interpretation of a law_, they carried it to the lower council of Elders, and from thence to the Great council at Jerusalem. Each town of more than one hundred and twenty families was to have its lower council, consisting of twenty-three members; and these had jurisdiction in criminal cases. The expressions, _he shall die, he shall be cut off from the people_, which are so often used in the Mosaic law, embrace three very different significations, which we are accustomed to confound. They indicate the suffering of death as a punishment, civil death, and that premature death, with which an individual is naturally threatened, who departs from those rules which are useful to the nation and to the individual himself. Civil death is the last degree of _separation_, or _excommunication_; it is pronounced, as a judicial punishment, by the assembly of the judges. There were three kinds of separation; which Mr. Salvador compares to the three degrees of civil excommunication provided for in the French Penal Code, and which condemn the criminal to hard labour either for life or for a term of years, or to certain correctional punishments. But the Hebrew excommunication had this advantage, that the party _never lost all hope of regaining his original standing_. The Hebrew lawyers, in relation to the punishment of death, maintained opinions, which deserve to be quoted:— “A tribunal, which condemns to death _once in seven years_, may be called _sanguinary_.”—“It deserves this appellation, says doctor Eliezer, when it pronounces a like sentence once in seventy years.”—“If we had been members of the high court, say the doctors Tyrphon and Akiba, we should never have condemned a man to death.” Simeon, the son of Gamaliel, replied—“Would not that be an abuse? Would you not have been afraid of multiplying crimes in Israel?” Mr. Salvador answers—“No, certainly; far from lessening their number, the severity of the punishment increases it, by giving a more resolute character to the men who are able to brave it; and, at the present day, how many intelligent minds range themselves on the side of Akiba and Tyrphon! How many consciences refuse to participate, in any manner, in the death of a man! The flowing of blood, the multitude excited by an unbecoming curiosity, the victim dragged in triumph to the horrible altar, the impossibility of repairing a mistake, (from which human wisdom is never exempt), the dread of one day seeing a departed shade rising up and saying, ‘_I was innocent_,’ the facility which modern nations have of expelling from among them the man whose presence pollutes them—the influence of general depravity on the production of crimes—and finally the absurd contrast of the whole of society, while in possession of strength, intelligence, and arms, opposing itself to an individual wretch (who has been drawn on by want, by passion, or by ignorance) and yet finding no other means of redress than by exceeding him in cruelty—all these things, and many others, have so deeply penetrated the minds of all ranks of people, that there will one day proceed from them the most striking proof of the power of morals over the laws; for the law will be changed by the simple fact, that we shall not find any person who will consent to apply it.” I feel honoured in having maintained the same opinion in my _Observations on Criminal Legislation_; but I solicit those, who wish to see this question discussed in its whole extent, to read the profound reflections which the Duke de Broglie has just published on the subject, in the last number of the _Revue Française_ (for October, 1828.) The whole criminal procedure in the Pentateuch rests upon three principles, which may be thus expressed; publicity of the trial, entire liberty of defence allowed to the accused; and a guaranty against the dangers of testimony. According to the Hebrew text _one_ witness is no witness; there must be at least two or three who know the fact. The witness, who testifies against a man, must swear that he speaks the truth; the judges then proceed to take exact information of the matter; and, if it is found that the witness has sworn falsely, they compel him to undergo the punishment to which he would have exposed his neighbour. The discussion between the accuser and the accused is conducted before the whole assembly of the people. When a man is condemned to death, those witnesses whose evidence decided the sentence inflict the first blows, in order to add the last degree of certainty to their evidence. Hence the expression—_Let him among you, who is without sin, cast the first stone_. If we pursue their application of these fundamental rules in practice, we shall find that a trial proceeded in the following manner. On the day of the trial, the executive officers of justice caused the accused person to make his appearance. At the feet of the Elders were placed men who, under the name of _auditors_, or _candidates_, followed regularly the sittings of the Council. The papers in the case were read; and the witnesses were called in succession. The president addressed this exhortation to each of them: “It is not conjectures, or whatever public rumour has brought to thee, that we ask of thee; consider that a great responsibility rests upon thee: that we are not occupied by an affair, like a case of pecuniary interest, in which the injury may be repaired. If thou causest the condemnation of a person unjustly accused, his blood, and the blood of all the posterity of him, of whom thou wilt have deprived the earth, will fall upon thee; God will demand of thee an account, as he demanded of Cain an account of the blood of Abel. Speak.” A woman could not be a witness, because she would not have the courage to give the first blow to the condemned person; nor could a child, that is irresponsible, nor a slave, nor a man of bad character, nor one whose infirmities prevent the full enjoyment of his physical and moral faculties. _The simple confession of an individual against himself_, or the declaration of a prophet, however renowned, would not decide a condemnation. The Doctors say—“We hold it as fundamental, that _no one shall prejudice himself_. If a man accuses himself before a tribunal, we must not believe him, unless the fact is attested by two other witnesses; and it is proper to remark, that the punishment of death inflicted upon Achan, in the time of Joshua(399) was an exception, occasioned by the nature of the circumstances; for our law does not condemn upon the simple confession of the accused, nor upon the declaration of one prophet alone.” The witnesses were to attest to the identity of the party, and to depose to the month, day, hour, and circumstances of the crime. After an examination of the proofs, those judges who believed the party innocent stated their reasons; those who believed him guilty spoke afterwards, and _with the greatest moderation_. If one of the _auditors_, or _candidates_, was entrusted by the accused with his defence, or if he wished in his own name to present any elucidations in favour of innocence, he was admitted to the seat, from which he addressed the judges and the people. But this liberty was not granted to him, if his opinion was in favour of condemning. Lastly; when the accused person himself wished to speak, they gave the most profound attention. When the discussion was finished, one of the judges recapitulated the case; they removed all the spectators; two scribes took down the votes of the judges; one of them noted those which were in favour of the accused, and the other, those which condemned him. Eleven votes, out of twenty-three, were sufficient to acquit; but it required thirteen to convict. If any of the judges stated that they were not sufficiently informed, there were added two more Elders, and then two others in succession, till they formed a council of sixty-two, which was the number of the Grand Council. If a majority of votes acquitted, the accused was discharged _instantly_; if he was to be punished, the judges postponed pronouncing sentence till the third day; during the intermediate day they could not be occupied with anything but the cause, and they abstained from eating freely, and from wine, liquors, and everything which might render their minds less capable of reflection. On the morning of the third day they returned to the judgment seat. Each judge, who had not changed his opinion, said, _I continue of the same opinion and condemn_; any one, who at first condemned, might at this sitting acquit; but he who had once acquitted was not allowed to condemn. If a majority condemned, two _magistrates_ immediately accompanied the condemned person to the place of punishment. The Elders did not descend from their seats; they placed at the entrance of the judgment hall an officer of justice with a small flag in his hand; a second officer, on horseback, followed the prisoner, and constantly kept looking back to the place of departure. During this interval, if any person came to announce to the Elders any new evidence favourable to the prisoner, the first officer waved his flag, and the second one, as soon as he perceived it, brought back the prisoner. If the prisoner declared to the _magistrates_, that he recollected some reasons which had escaped him, they brought him before the _judges_ no less than five times. If no incident occurred, the procession advanced slowly, preceded by a herald who, in a loud voice, addressed the people thus: “This man (stating his name and surname) is led to punishment for such a crime; the witnesses who have sworn against him are such and such persons; if any one has evidence to give in his favour, let him come forth quickly.” It was in consequence of this rule that the youthful Daniel caused the procession to go back, which was leading Susanna to punishment, and he himself ascended the seat of justice to put some new questions to the witnesses. At some distance from the place of punishment, they urged the prisoner to confess his crime, and they made him drink a stupefying beverage, in order to render the approach of death less terrible.(400) By this mere analysis of a part of Mr. Salvador’s work we may judge of the extreme interest of the whole. His principal object has been, to make apparent the mutual aids which history, philosophy, and legislation afford in explaining the institutions of the Jewish people. His book is a scientific work, and at the same time a work of taste. His notes indicate vast reading; and in the choice of his citations he gives proofs of his critical skill and discrimination. Mr. Salvador belongs, by his age, to that new generation, which is distinguished as much by its application to solid studies, as by elevation and generosity of sentiment. Trial Of Jesus. Refutation Of The Chapter Of Mr. Salvador, Entitled “The Trial And Condemnation Of Jesus.” “The chapter, in which Mr. Salvador treats of _the Administration of Justice among the Hebrews_, is altogether theoretical. He makes an exposition of the law—that things, in order to be _conformable to rule_, must be transacted in a certain mode. In all this I have not contradicted him, but have let him speak for himself. In the subsequent chapter the author announces: “That according to this _exposition of judicial proceedings_ he is going to follow out the application of them to the most memorable trial in all history, that of Jesus Christ.” Accordingly the chapter is entitled: _The Trial and Condemnation of Jesus_. The author first takes care to inform us under what point of view he intends to give an account of that accusation: “That we ought to lament the blindness of the Hebrews for not having recognised a God in Jesus, is a point which I do not examine.” (There is another thing also, which he says he shall not examine.) “But, when they discovered in him _only a citizen_, did they try him _according to existing laws and formalities_?” The question being thus stated, Mr. Salvador goes over all the various aspects of the accusation; and his conclusion is, that the procedure was perfectly regular, and the condemnation perfectly appropriate to the act committed. “Now,” says he, (p. 87,) “the Senate, having adjudged that Jesus, the son of Joseph, born in Bethlehem, had profaned the name of God by usurping it himself, though a simple citizen, applied to him the law against blasphemy, the law in the 13th chapter of Deuteronomy, and verse 20, chapter 18th, conformably to which every prophet, even one that performs miracles, is to be punished when he speaks of a God unknown to the Hebrews or their fathers.” This conclusion is formed to please the followers of the Jewish law; it is wholly for their benefit, and the evident object is, to justify them from the reproach of _deïcide_. We will, however, avoid treating this grave subject in a theological point of view. As to myself, Jesus Christ is the _Man-God_; but it is not with arguments drawn from my religion and my creed, that I intend to combat the statement and the conclusion of Mr. Salvador. The present age would charge me with being intolerant; and this is a reproach which I will never incur. Besides, I do not wish to give to the enemies of Christianity the advantage of making the outcry, that we are afraid to enter into a discussion with them, and that we wish to crush rather than to convince them. Having thus contented myself with declaring my own faith, as Mr. Salvador has let us clearly understand his, I shall also examine the question under a merely _human_ point of view, and proceed to inquire, with him, “Whether Jesus Christ, considered _as a simple citizen_, was tried according to the existing laws and formalities.” The catholic religion itself warrants me in this; it is not a mere fiction; for God willed, that Jesus should be clothed in the forms of humanity (_et homo factus est_), and that he should undergo the lot and sufferings of humanity. The _son of God_, as to his moral state and his holy spirit, he was also, in reality, the _Son of Man_, for the purpose of accomplishing the mission which he came upon earth to fulfil. This being the state of the question, then, I enter upon my subject; and I do not hesitate to affirm, because I will prove it, that, upon examining all the circumstances of this great trial, we shall be very far from discovering in it the application of those legal maxims, which are the safeguard of the rights of accused persons, and of which Mr. Salvador, in his chapter _On the Administration of Justice_, has made a seductive exposition. The accusation of Jesus, instigated by the hatred of the priests and the Pharisees, and presented at first as a charge of _sacrilege_, but afterwards converted into a _political_ crime and _an offence against the state_, was marked, in all its aspects, with the foulest acts of violence and perfidy. It was not so much _a trial_ environed with legal forms, as a real _passion_, or prolonged suffering, in which the imperturbable gentleness of the victim displays more strongly the unrelenting ferocity of his persecutors. When Jesus appeared among the Jews, that people was but the shadow of itself. Broken down by more than one subjugation, divided by factions and irreconcilable sects, they had in the last resort been obliged to succumb to the Roman power and surrender their own sovereignty. Jerusalem, having become a mere appendage to the province of Syria, saw within its walls an imperial garrison; Pilate commanded there, in the name of Cæsar; and the late people of God were groaning under the double tyranny of a conqueror, whose power they abhorred and whose idolatry they detested, and of a priesthood that exerted itself to keep them under the rigorous bonds of a religious fanaticism. Jesus Christ deplored the misfortunes of his country. How often did he weep for Jerusalem! Read in Bossuet’s _Politics drawn from the Holy Scriptures_, the admirable chapter entitled, _Jesus Christ the good citizen_. He recommended to his countrymen _union_, which constitutes the strength of states. “O Jerusalem, Jerusalem, (said he,) thou that killest the prophets and stonest them which are sent unto thee, how often would I have gathered thy children together, even as a hen gathereth her chickens under her wings, and ye would not!” He was supposed to be not favorable to the Romans; but he only loved his own countrymen more. Witness the address of the Jews, who, in order to induce him to restore to the centurion a sick servant that was dear to him, used as the most powerful argument these words—that he was worthy for whom he should do this, for he loveth our nation. And Jesus went with them. Luke vii. 4, 5. Touched with the distresses of the nation, Jesus comforted them by holding up to them the hope of another life; he alarmed the great, the rich, and the haughty, by the prospect of a final judgment, at which every man would be judged not according to his rank, but his works. He was desirous of again bringing back man to his original dignity; he spoke to him of his _duties_, but at the same time of his _rights_. The people heard him with avidity, and followed him with eagerness; his words affected them; his hand healed their diseases, and his moral teaching instructed them; he preached, and practised one virtue till then unknown, and which belongs to him alone—_charity_. This celebrity, however, and these wonders excited envy. The partisans of the _ancient theocracy_ were alarmed at the _new doctrine_; the chief priests felt that their power was threatened; the pride of the Pharisees was humbled; the scribes came in as their auxiliaries, and the destruction of Jesus was resolved upon. Now, if his conduct was reprehensible, if it afforded grounds for a _legal accusation_, why was not that course taken openly? Why not try him for the acts committed by him, and for his public discourses? Why employ against him subterfuges, artifice, perfidy, and violence? for such was the mode of proceeding against Jesus. Let us now take up the subject, and look at the narratives which have come down to us. Let us, with Mr. Salvador, open the books of the Gospels; for he does not object to that testimony; nay, he relies upon it: “It is by the Gospels themselves,” says he, “that I shall establish _all the facts_.” In truth, how can we (except by contrary evidence, of which there is none) refuse to place confidence in an historian, who tells us, as Saint John does, with affecting simplicity: “He that saw it bare record, and his record is true, and he knoweth that he saith true, that ye might believe.” John xix. 35. Section I.—SPIES, OR INFORMERS. Who will not be surprised to find in this case the odious practice of employing hired informers? Branded with infamy, as they are in modern times, they will be still more so when we carry back their origin to the trial of Christ. It will be seen presently, whether I have not properly characterized by the name of hired informers those emissaries, whom the chief priests sent out to be about Jesus. We read in the evangelist Luke, chap. xx. 20: _Et observantes miserunt insidiatores, qui se justos simularent, ut caperent eum in sermone, et traderent illum principatui et potestati præsidis_. I will not translate this text myself, but will take the language of a translator whose accuracy is well known, Mr. De Sacy: “As they only sought occasions for his destruction, they sent to him _apostate persons who feigned themselves just men_, in order to _take hold_ of his words, that they might deliver him unto magistrate and into the power of the governor.” And Mr. De Sacy adds—“if there should escape from him the least word against the public authorities.” This first artifice has escaped the sagacity of Mr. Salvador. Section II.—THE CORRUPTION AND TREACHERY OF JUDAS. According to Mr. Salvador, the senate, as he calls it, did not commence their proceedings by arresting Jesus, as would be done at the present day; but they began by passing a preliminary decree, that he should be arrested; and he cites, in proof of his assertion, St. John xi. 53, 54, and St. Matthew xxvi. 4, 5. But St. John says nothing of this pretended decree. He speaks, too, not of a public sitting, but of a consultation held by the chief priests and the _Pharisees_, who did not, to my knowledge, constitute a judicial tribunal among the Jews. “Then gathered the chief priests and the Pharisees a council, and said, What do we? for this man _doeth many miracles_.” John xi. 47. They add: “If we let him thus alone, all men will believe on him,”—which imported also, in their minds, _and they will no longer believe in us_. Now, in this, I can readily perceive the fear of seeing the morals and doctrines of Jesus prevail; but where is the preliminary _judgment_, or decree? I cannot discover it. “And one of them, named Caiaphas, being the high priest that same year, said unto them, Ye know nothing at all, nor consider, that it is expedient for us, that one man should die for the people ... and he _prophesied_, that Jesus should die for the nation of the Jews.” But to _prophesy_ is not to _pass judgment_; and the individual opinion of Caiaphas, who was only one among them, was not the opinion of all, nor a _judgment of the senate_. We, therefore, still find a _judgment_ wanting; and we only observe, that the priests and Pharisees are stimulated by a violent hatred of Jesus, and that “from that day forth they took counsel together for _to put him to death; ut interficerent eum_.” John xi. 53. The authority of St. John, then, is directly in contradiction of the assertion, that there was an _order of arrest_ previously passed by a regular tribunal. St. Matthew, in relating the same facts, says, that the chief priests assembled at the palace of the high priest, who was called Caiaphas, and there held counsel together. But what counsel? and what was the result of it? Was it to issue an _order of arrest_ against Jesus, that they might hear him and then pass sentence? Not at all; but they held counsel together, “that they might take Jesus _by subtilty_, or _fraud_, and _kill him_”; _concilium fecerunt_, _ut Jesum_ DOLO _tenerent et_ OCCIDERENT. Matt. xxvi. 5. Now in the Latin language, a language perfectly well constituted in everything relating to terms of the law, the words _occidere_ and _interficere_ were never employed to express the act of passing _sentence_, or _judgment of death_, but simply to signify _murder_ or _assassination_.(401) This _fraud_, by the aid of which they were to get Jesus into their power, was nothing but the bargain made between the chief priests and Judas. Judas, one of the twelve, goes to find the chief priests, and says to them, What will ye give me, and I will deliver him unto you? Matt. xxvi. 14, 15. And they covenanted with him for thirty pieces of silver! Jesus, who foresaw his treachery, warned him of it mildly, in the midst of the Last Supper, where the voice of his master, in the presence of his brethren, should have touched him and awakened his reflections! But not so; wholly absorbed in his reward, Judas placed himself at the head of a gang of servants, to whom he was to point out Jesus; and, then, by a _kiss_ consummated his treachery!(402) Is it thus that a _judicial decree was to be executed_, if there had really been one made for the arrest of Jesus? Section III.—PERSONAL LIBERTY.—RESISTANCE TO AN ARMED FORCE. The act was done in the night time. After having celebrated the Supper, Jesus had conducted his disciples to the Mount of Olives. He prayed fervently; but they fell asleep. Jesus awakes them, with a gentle reproof for their weakness, and warns them that the moment is approaching. “Rise, let us be going; behold he is at hand that doth betray me.” Matt. xxvi. 46. Judas was not alone; in his suite there was a kind of ruffian band, almost entirely composed of servants of the high priest, but whom Mr. Salvador honours with the title of the _legal soldiery_. If in the crowd there were any Roman _soldiers_, they were there as spectators, and without having been legally called on duty; for the Roman commanding officer, Pilate, had not yet heard the affair spoken of. This personal seizure of Jesus had so much the appearance of a forcible arrest, an illegal act of violence, that his disciples made preparation to repel force by force. Malchus, the insolent servant of the high priest, having shown himself the most eager to rush upon Jesus, Peter, not less zealous for his own master, cut off the servant’s right ear. This resistance might have been continued with success, if Jesus had not immediately interfered. But what proves that Peter, even while causing bloodshed, was not resisting a _legal order_, a _legal judgment_ or decree, (which would have made his resistance an act of _rebellion by an armed force against a judicial order_,) is this—that he was not arrested, either at the moment or afterwards, at the house of the high priest, to which he followed Jesus, and where he was most distinctly recognised by the maid servant of the high priest, and even by a relative of Malchus. Jesus alone was arrested; and although he had not individually offered any active resistance, and had even restrained that of his disciples, they bound him as a malefactor; which was a criminal degree of rigour, since for the purpose of securing a single man by a numerous band of persons armed with swords and staves it was not necessary. “Be ye come out as against a thief with swords and staves?” Luke xxii. 52. Section IV.—OTHER IRREGULARITIES IN THE ARREST.—SEIZURE OF THE PERSON. They dragged Jesus along with them; and, instead of taking him directly to the proper magistrate, they carried him before Annas, who had no other character than that of being _father-in-law to the high priest_. John xviii. 13. Now, if this was only for the purpose of letting him be seen by him, such a curiosity was not to be gratified; it was a vexatious proceeding, an irregularity. From the house of Annas they led him to that of the high priest; all this time being _bound_. John xviii. 24. They placed him in the court yard; it was cold, and they made a fire; it was in the night time, but by the light of the fire Peter was recognised by the people of the palace. Now the Jewish law prohibited _all proceedings by night_; here, therefore, there was another infraction of the law. Under this state of things, his person being forcibly seized and detained in a private house, and delivered into the hands of servants, in the midst of a court, how was Jesus treated? St. Luke says, the men that held Jesus _mocked_ him and _smote_ him; and when they had blindfolded him, they struck him on the face, and asked him, saying, Prophesy, who is it that smote thee? And many other things blasphemously spake they against him. Luke xxii. 63, 64, 65. Will it be said, as Mr. Salvador does, that all this took place out of the presence of the senate? Let us wait, in this instance, till the senate shall be called up, and we shall see how far they protected the accused person. Section V.—CAPTIOUS INTERROGATORIES.—ACTS OF VIOLENCE TOWARDS JESUS. Already had the cock crowed! But it was not yet day. The elders of the people and the chief priests and the scribes came together, and, having caused Jesus to appear before their council, they proceeded to interrogate him. Luke xxii. 66. Now, in the outset, it should be observed, that if they had been less carried away by their hatred, they should, as it was the _night time_, not only have postponed, but put a stop to the proceedings, because it was _the feast of the Passover_, the most solemn of all festivals; and according to their law no _judicial procedure_ could take place on a feast-day, under the penalty of being null.(403) Nevertheless, let us see who proceeded to interrogate Jesus. This was that same Caiaphas, who, if he had intended to remain a _judge_, was evidently liable to objection; for in the preceding assemblage he had made himself the _accuser_ of Jesus.(404) Even before he had seen or heard him, he declared him to be _deserving of death_. He said to his colleagues, that “it was _expedient_ that one man should die for all.” John xviii. 14. Such being the opinion of Caiaphas, we shall not be surprised, if he shows partiality. Instead of interrogating Jesus respecting _positive acts done_, with their circumstances, and respecting _facts personal to himself_, Caiaphas interrogates him respecting _general facts_, respecting his disciples (whom it would have been much more simple to have called as witnesses), and respecting his _doctrine_, which was a mere abstraction so long as no external acts were the consequence of it. “The high priest then asked Jesus of his disciples and of his doctrine.” John xviii. 19. Jesus answered with dignity: “I spake openly to the world; I ever taught in the synagogue and in the temple, whither the Jews always resort; and in secret have I said nothing.” Ib. 20. “Why askest thou me? Ask them which heard me, _what I have said unto them_; behold, they know what I said.” Ib. 21. “And when he had thus spoken, one of the officers which stood by struck Jesus with the palm of his hand, saying, Answerest thou the high priest so?” Ib. 22. Will it here be still said, that this violence was the individual act of the person who thus struck the accused? I answer, that on this occasion the fact took place in the presence and under the eyes of the whole council; and, as the high priest who presided did not restrain the author of it, I come to the conclusion, that he became an accomplice, especially when this violence was committed under the pretence of avenging the alleged affront to his dignity. But in what respect could the answer of Jesus appear offensive? “If I have spoken evil,” said Jesus, “bear witness of the evil; but if well, why smitest thou me?”(405) John xviii. 23. There remained no mode of escaping from this dilemma. They accused Jesus; it was for those, who accused, to prove their accusation. An accused person is not obliged to criminate himself. He should have been convicted by proofs; he himself called for them. Let us see what witnesses were produced against him. Section VI.—WITNESSES.—NEW INTERROGATORIES.—THE JUDGE IN A PASSION. “And the chief priests and all the council sought for witness against Jesus to put him to death; and found none.” Mark xiv. 55. “For many bare _false witness_ against him, but their witness agreed not together.” Ib. 56. “And there arose certain, and bare false witness against him, saying, We heard him say, I will destroy this temple that is made with hands, and within three days I will build another made without hands.” Ib. 57, 58. “But (to the same point still) neither so did their witness agree together.” Ib. 59. Mr. Salvador, on this subject, says, p. 87: “The two witnesses, whom St. Matthew and St. Mark charge with _falsehood_, narrate a discourse which St. John declares to be _true_, so far as respects the power which Jesus Christ attributed to himself.” This alleged contradiction among the Evangelists does not exist. In the first place, St. Matthew does not say that the discourse was had by Jesus. In chapter xxvi. 61, he states the depositions of the witnesses, but saying at the same time that they were _false witnesses_; and in chapter xxvii. 40, he puts the same declaration into the mouth of those who insulted Jesus at the foot of the cross; but he does not put it into the mouth of Christ. He is in accordance with St. Mark. St. John, chapter ii. 19, makes Jesus speak in these words: “Jesus answered and said unto them, Destroy this temple, and in three days I will raise it up.” And St. John adds: “He spake of the temple of his body.” Thus Jesus did not say in an affirmative and somewhat menacing manner, _I will destroy this temple_, as the witnesses _falsely_ assumed; he only said, hypothetically, _Destroy this temple_, that is to say, suppose this temple should be destroyed, I will raise it up in three days. Besides, they could not dissemble, that he referred to a temple altogether different from theirs, because he said, I will raise up another in three days, _which will not be made by the hands of man_. It hence results, at least, that the Jews did not understand him, for they cried out, “Forty and six years was this temple in building, and wilt thou rear it up in three days?” Thus, then, the witnesses did not agree together, and their declarations had nothing conclusive. Mark xiv. 59. We must, therefore, look for other proofs. “Then the high priest, (we must not forget, that he is still the accuser,) the high priest stood up in the midst, and asked Jesus, saying, Answerest thou nothing? what is it, which these witness against thee? But he held his peace, and answered nothing.” Mark xiv. 60. In truth, since the question was not concerning the temple of the Jews, but an ideal temple, not made by the hand of man, and which was alone in the thoughts of Jesus, the explanation was to be found in the very evidence itself. The high priest continued: “I adjure thee, by the living God, that thou tell us, whether thou be the Christ, the Son of God.” Matt. xxvi. 63. I adjure thee, I call upon thee on oath! a gross infraction of that rule of morals and jurisprudence, which forbids our placing an accused person between the danger of perjury and the fear of inculpating himself, and thus making his situation more hazardous. The high priest, however, persists, and says to him: Art thou the Christ, the Son of God?(406) Jesus answered, _Thou hast said_. Matthew xxvi. 64; _I am_. Mark xiv. 62. “Then the high priest rent his clothes, saying, _He hath spoken blasphemy; what further need have we of witnesses_? behold, now _ye have heard his blasphemy_. What think ye? They answered and said, He is guilty of death.” Matt. xxvi. 66. Let us now compare this scene of violence with the mild deduction of principles, which we find in the chapter of Mr. Salvador _On the Administration of Justice_; and let us ask ourselves, if, as he alleges, we find a just _application_ of them in the proceedings against Christ? Do we discover here that _respect_ of the Hebrew judge towards the party accused, when we see that Caiaphas permitted him to be struck, in his presence, _with impunity_? What was this Caiaphas, at once an accuser and judge?(407) A passionate man, and too much resembling the odious portrait which the historian Josephus has given us of him!(408) A judge, who was irritated to such a degree, that he rent his clothes; who imposed upon the accused a most solemn oath, and who gave to his answers the criminal character, that _he had spoken_ blasphemy! And, from that moment, he wanted no more witnesses, notwithstanding the law required them. He would not have an inquiry, which he perceived would be insufficient; he attempts to supply it by captious questions. He is desirous of having him condemned _upon his own declaration alone_, (interpreted, too, as he chooses to understand it,) though that was forbidden by the laws of the Hebrews! And, in the midst of a most violent transport of passion, this accuser himself, a high priest, who means to speak in the name of the living God, is the first to pass sentence of death, and carries with him the opinions of the rest! In this hideous picture I cannot recognise that justice of the Hebrews, of which Mr. Salvador has given so fine a view in _his theory_! Section VII.—SUBSEQUENT ACTS OF VIOLENCE. Immediately after this kind of sacerdotal verdict rendered against Jesus, the acts of violence and insults recommenced with increased strength; the fury of the judge must have communicated itself to the bystanders. St. Matthew says: “Then did they spit in his face, and buffeted him; and others smote him with the palms of their hands, saying, Prophesy unto us, thou Christ; who is he that smote thee?” Matt. xxvi. 67, 68. Mr. Salvador does not contest the truth of this ill treatment. In page 88 he says, “It was contrary to the spirit of the Hebrew law, and that it was not according to the order of nature, that a senate composed of the most respectable men of a nation,—that a senate, which might perhaps be mistaken, but which thought it was acting mildly, should have permitted such outrages against him whose life it held in its own hands. The writers who have transmitted these details to us, not having been present themselves at the trial, were disposed to overcharge the picture, either on account of their own feelings, or to throw upon their judges a greater odium.” I repeat; this ill treatment was entirely contrary to the spirit of the law. And what do I want more, since my object is to make prominent _all the violations of law_. “It is not in nature to see a body, which respects itself, authorize such attempts.” But of what consequence is that, when the fact is established? “The historians, it is said, were not present at the trial.” But was Mr. Salvador there present himself, so that he could give a flat denial of their statements? And when even an able writer, who was not an eye-witness, relates the same events after the lapse of more than eighteen centuries, he ought at least to bring opposing evidence, if he would impeach that of contemporaries; who, if they were not in the very hall of the council, were certainly on the spot, in the vicinity, perhaps in the court yard, inquiring anxiously of every thing that was happening to the man whose disciples they were.(409) Besides, the learned author whom I am combating says, in the outset (p. 81), “it is from the Gospels themselves that he will take all his facts.” He must then take the whole together, as well those which go to condemn, as those which are in palliation or excuse. Those gross insults, those inhuman acts of violence, even if they are to be cast upon the servants of the high priest and the persons in his train, do not excuse those individuals, who, when they took upon themselves the authority of judges, were bound at the same time to throw around him all the protection of the law. Caiaphas, too, was culpable as the master of the house (for every thing took place in his house), even if he should not be responsible as high priest and president of the council for having permitted excesses, which, indeed were but too much in accordance with the rage he had himself displayed upon the bench. These outrages, which would be inexcusable even towards a man irrevocably condemned to punishment, were the more criminal towards Jesus, because, legally and judicially speaking, there had not yet been any sentence properly passed against him according to the public law of the country; as we shall see in the following section, which will deserve the undivided attention of the reader. Section VIII.—THE POSITION OF THE JEWS IN RESPECT TO THE ROMANS. We must not forget, _that Judea was a conquered country_. After the death of Herod—most inappropriately surnamed _the Great_—Augustus had confirmed his last will, by which that king of the Jews had arranged the division of his dominions between _his_ two sons: but Augustus did not continue their title of _king_, which their father had borne. Archeläus, on whom Judea devolved, having been recalled on account of his cruelties, the territory, which was at first intrusted to his command, was united to the province of Syria. (_Josephus_, Antiq. Jud. lib. 17, cap. 15.) Augustus then appointed particular officers for Judea. Tiberius did the same; and at the time of which we are speaking, Pilate was one of those officers. (_Josephus_, lib. 18, cap. 3 & 8.) Some have considered Pilate as governor, by title, and have given him the Latin appellation, _Præses_, president or governor. But they have mistaken the force of the word. Pilate was one of those public officers, who were called by the Romans, _procuratores Cæsaris_, Imperial procurators. With this title of _procurator_, he was placed under the superior authority of the governor of Syria, the true _præses_, or governor of that province, of which Judea was then only one of the dependencies. To the governor (_præses_) peculiarly belonged the right of taking cognizance of _capital_ cases.(410) The _procurator_, on the contrary, had, for his principal duty, nothing but the collection of the revenue, and the trial of revenue causes. But the right of taking cognizance of _capital_ cases did, in some instances, belong to certain _procurators_, who were sent into small provinces to fill the places of governors (_vice præsides_), as appears clearly from the Roman laws.(411) Such was _Pilate_ at Jerusalem.(412) The Jews, placed in this political position—notwithstanding they were left in the enjoyment of their civil laws, the public exercise of their religion, and many things merely relating to their police and municipal regulations—the Jews, I say, had not the _power of life and death_; this was a principal attribute of sovereignty, which the Romans always took great care to reserve to themselves, even if they neglected other things. _Apud Romanos, jus valet gladii; cætera transmittuntur_. TACIT. What then was the right of the Jewish authorities in regard to Jesus? Without doubt the scribes, and their friends the Pharisees, might well have been alarmed, as a body and individually, at the preaching and success of Jesus; they might be concerned for their worship; and they might have interrogated the man respecting his creed and his doctrines,—they might have made a kind of preparatory proceeding,—they might have declared, in point of fact, that those doctrines, which threatened their own, were contrary to their law, as understood by themselves. But that law, although it had not undergone any alteration as to the affairs of religion, had no longer any coercive power as to the external or civil regulations of society. In vain would they have undertaken to pronounce sentence of death under the circumstances of the case of Jesus; the council of the Jews had not the power to pass a _sentence of death_; it only would have had power to make _an accusation_ against him before the governor, or his deputy, and then deliver him over to be tried by him. Let us distinctly establish this point; for here I entirely differ in opinion from Mr. Salvador. According to him, (p. 88), “the Jews had _reserved the power of trying, according to their law_; but it was in the hands of the _procurator_ alone, that the executive power was vested; every culprit must be put to death by _his_ consent, in order that the senate should not have the means of reaching persons that were sold to foreigners.” No; the Jews had not reserved _the right of passing sentence of death_. This right had been transferred to the Romans by the very act of conquest; and this was not merely that the senate should not have the means of reaching persons who were sold to foreign countries; but it was done, in order that the conqueror might be able to reach those individuals who should become _impatient of the yoke_; it was, in short, for the equal protection of all, as all had become Roman subjects; and to Rome alone belonged the highest judicial power, which is the principal attribute of sovereignty. Pilate, as the representative of Cæsar in Judea, was not merely an agent of the _executive authority_, which would have left the _judiciary_ and _legislative_ power in the hands of the conquered people—he was not simply an officer appointed to give an _exequatur_ or mere approval (_visa_) to sentences passed by _another authority_, the _authority of the Jews_. When the matter in question was a _capital_ case, the Roman authorities not only ordered the _execution_ of a sentence, but also took cognizance (_cognitio_) of the crime; it had the right of jurisdiction _à priori_, and that of _passing judgment in the last resort_. If Pilate himself had not had this power by special delegation, _vice præsidis_, it was vested in the governor, within whose territorial jurisdiction the case occurred; but in any event we hold it to be clear, that the Jews had lost the right of _condemning to death_ any person whatever, not only so far as respects the _execution_ but the _passing_ of the sentence. This is one of the best settled points in the provincial law of the Romans. The Jews were not ignorant of this; for when they went before Pilate, to ask of him the condemnation of Jesus, they themselves declared, that it was not permitted to them to put any person to death: “It is not lawful for us to put any man to death.” John xviii. 31. Here I am happy to be able to support myself by the opinion of a very respectable authority, the celebrated Loiseau, in his treatise on _Seigneuries_, in the chapter on the administration of _justice belonging to cities_. “In truth,” says he, “there is some evidence, that the _police_, in which the people had the sole interest, was administered by officers of the people; but I know not upon what were founded the concessions of power to some cities of France to exercise criminal jurisdiction; nor why the Ordinance of Moulins left that to them rather than civil cases; for the criminal jurisdiction is the _right of the sword_, the _merum imperium_, or absolute sovereignty. Accordingly, by the Roman law, the administration of justice was so far prohibited to the officers of cities, that they could not punish even by a simple fine. _Thus it is doubtless that we must understand_ that passage of the Gospel, where the Jews say to Pilate, _It is not lawful for us to put any man to death_; for, after they were subjected to the Romans, they had not jurisdiction of crimes.” Let us now follow Jesus to the presence of Pilate. Section IX.—THE ACCUSATION MADE BEFORE PILATE. At this point I must entreat the particular attention of the reader. The irregularities and acts of violence, which I have hitherto remarked upon, are nothing in comparison with the unbridled fury, which is about to display itself before the _Roman Judge_, in order to extort from him, against his own conviction, a sentence of death. “And straightway in the morning the chief priests held a consultation with the elders, and scribes, and the whole council, and bound Jesus, and carried him away, and delivered him to Pilate.” Mark xv. 1. _As soon as the morning was come_; for, as I have observed already, every thing which had been done thus far against Jesus was done _during the night_. They then led Jesus from Caiaphas unto the Hall of Judgment of Pilate.(413) It was early; and they themselves went not into the judgment hall, lest _they should be defiled_; but that they might eat the passover. John xviii. 28. Singular scrupulousness! and truly worthy of the Pharisees! They were afraid of _defiling themselves on the day of the passover_ by entering _the house of_ a heathen! And yet, the same day, only some hours before presenting themselves to Pilate, they had, in contempt of their own law, committed the outrage of _holding a council_ and deliberating upon _an accusation of a capital crime_. As they would not enter, “Pilate went out to them.” John xviii. 29. Now observe his language. He did not say to them, _Where is the sentence you have passed_; as he must have done, if he was only to give them his simple _exequatur_, or permission to execute the sentence; but he takes up the matter from the beginning, as would be done by one who had _plenary jurisdiction_; and he says to them: What accusation bring ye against this man? They answered, with their accustomed haughtiness: If he were not _a malefactor_ we would not have delivered him up to thee. John xviii. 30. They wished to have it understood, that, being a question of _blasphemy_, it was the _cause of their religion_, which they could appreciate better than any others could. Pilate, then, would have been under the necessity of believing them _on their word_. But this Roman, indignant at their proposed course of proceeding, which would have restricted his jurisdiction by making him the passive instrument of the wishes of the Jews, answered them in an ironical manner: Well, since you say he has sinned against your law, take him yourselves and judge him according to your law. John xviii. 31. This was an absolute mystification to them, for they knew their own want of power to condemn him to death. But they were obliged to yield the point, and to submit to Pilate himself their _articles of accusation_. Now what were the grounds of this accusation? Were they _the same_ which had hitherto been alleged against Jesus—the charge of _blasphemy_—which was the only one brought forward by Caiaphas before the council of the Jews? Not at all; despairing of obtaining from the Roman judge a sentence of _death_ for a _religious_ quarrel, which was of no interest to the Romans,(414) they suddenly changed their plan; they abandoned their first accusation, the charge of blasphemy, and substituted for it a _political_ accusation, an _offence against the state_. Here we have the very crisis, or essential incident, of the passion; and that which makes the heaviest accusation of guilt on the part of the informers against Jesus. For, being fully bent on destroying him in any manner whatever, they no longer exhibited themselves as the avengers of _their religion_, which was alleged to have been outraged, or of their worship, which it was pretended was threatened; but, ceasing to appear as Jews, in order to affect sentiments belonging to a foreign nation, those hypocrites held out the appearance of being concerned for the interests of _Rome_; they accused their own countryman of an intention to restore the kingdom of Jerusalem, to make himself _king_ of the _Jews_, and to make an insurrection of the people against their conquerors. Let us hear them speak for themselves: “And they began to _accuse_ him, saying, We found this fellow perverting the nation, and forbidding to give tribute to Cæsar, saying, that he himself is Christ a _king_.” Luke xxiii. 2. What a calumny! Jesus forbidding to give tribute to Cæsar! when he had answered the Pharisees themselves, in presence of the whole people, by showing them the image of Cæsar upon a Roman piece of money, and saying, Give unto Cæsar the things which are Cæsar’s. But this accusation was one mode of interesting Pilate in respect to his jurisdiction; for, as an imperial _procurator_, he was specially to superintend the collection of the revenue. The second branch of the accusation still more directly affected the sovereignty of the Romans: “He holds himself up for a _king_.” The accusation having thus assumed a character purely _political_, Pilate thought he must pay attention to it. “Then Pilate entered into the judgment hall,” (the place where justice was administered,) and having _summoned Jesus to appear_ before him, he proceeds to his Examination, and says to him: “Art thou the king of the Jews?” John xviii. 33. This question, so different from those which had been addressed to him at the house of the high priest, appears to have excited the astonishment of Jesus; and, in his turn, he asked Pilate: “Sayest thou this thing of thyself, or did others tell it thee of me?” Ib. 24. In reality, Jesus was desirous of knowing, first of all, the authors of this new accusation—Is this an accusation brought against me by the _Romans_ or by the _Jews_? Pilate replied to him—“Am I a Jew? Thine own nation and the chief priests have delivered thee unto me; what hast thou done?” Ib. 35. All the particulars of this procedure are important; I cannot too often repeat the remark, that in no part of the transactions before Pilate is there any question at all respecting a previous sentence, a judgment already passed—a judgment, the execution of which was the only subject of consideration; it was a case of a capital accusation; but an accusation which was then just beginning; they were about the preliminary _interrogatories_ put to the accused, and Pilate says to him, “What hast thou done?” Jesus, seeing by the explanation what was the source of the _prejudging_ of his case, and knowing the secret thoughts which predominated in making the accusation, and that his enemies wanted to arrive at the same end by an artifice, answered Pilate—“_My kingdom is not of this world_; if my kingdom were of this world, then would my servants fight, that I should not be delivered to the Jews;” (we see, in fact, that Jesus had forbidden his people to resist) but, he added, “now is my kingdom not from hence.” John xviii. 36. This answer of Jesus is very remarkable; it became the foundation of his religion, and the pledge of its universality, because it detached it from the interests of all governments. It rests not merely in assertion, in doctrine; it was given in _justification_, in _defence_ against the accusation of intending to make himself _King of the Jews_. Indeed, if Jesus had affected a _temporal_ royal authority, if there had been the least attempt, on his part, to usurp _the power of Cæsar_, he would have been guilty of treason in the eyes of the magistrate. But, by answering twice, _my kingdom is not of this world_, my kingdom _is not from hence_, his justification was complete. Pilate, however, persisted and said to him: “Art thou a king then?” Jesus replied, Thou sayest that I am a king. To this end was I born, and for this cause came I into the world, that I should bear witness unto the truth. Every one that is of the truth heareth my voice. John xviii. 37. Pilate then said to him: _What is the truth?_ This question proves, that Pilate had not a very clear idea of what Jesus called _the truth_. He perceived nothing in it but _ideology_; and, satisfied with having said (less in the manner of a question than of an exclamation) “_What is the truth_,” he went on to the Jews (who remained outside) and said to them, “_I find in him no fault at all_.” John xviii. 38. Here, then, we see Jesus absolved from the accusation by the declaration of the Roman judge himself. But the accusers, persisting still farther, added—“_He stirreth up the people, teaching_ throughout all Jewry, beginning from Galilee to this place.” Luke xxiii. 5. “He stirreth up the people!” This is a charge of sedition; and for Pilate. But observe, it was _by the doctrine which he teaches_; these words comprehend the real complaint of the Jews. To them it was equivalent to saying—He _teaches_ the people, he instructs them, he enlightens them; he preaches _new doctrines_ which are not _ours_. “He stirs up the people!” This, in their months signified—the people hear him willingly; the people follow and become attached to him; for he preaches a doctrine that is friendly and consolatory to the people; he unmasks our pride, our avarice, our insatiable spirit of domination! Pilate, however, does not appear to have attached much importance to this new turn given to the accusation; but he here betrays a weakness. He heard the word _Galilee_; and he makes that the occasion of shifting off the responsibility upon another public officer, and seizes the occasion with avidity. He says to Jesus—you are a _Galilean_ then? and, upon the answer being in the affirmative, considering Jesus as belonging to the jurisdiction of Herod-Antipas, who, by the good pleasure of Cæsar, was then tetrarch of Galilee, he sent him to Herod. Luke xxiii. 6, 7. But Herod, who, as St. Luke says, had been long desirous of _seeing Jesus_ and had hoped to see some miracle done by him, after satisfying an idle curiosity and putting several questions to him, which Jesus did not deign to answer,—Herod, notwithstanding the presence of the priests, (who had not yet gone off, but stood there with their scribes,) and notwithstanding the pertinacity with which they continued to accuse Jesus, perceiving nothing but what was merely chimerical in the _accusation of being a king_, made a mockery of the affair, and sent Jesus back to Pilate, _after having arrayed him in a gorgeous robe_, in order to show that he thought this pretended royalty was a subject of ridicule rather than of apprehensions. Luke xxiii. 8, &c., and De Sacy. Ib. Section X.—THE LAST EFFORTS BEFORE PILATE. No person, then, was willing to condemn Jesus; neither Herod, who only made the case a subject of mockery, nor Pilate, who had openly declared that he found nothing criminal in him. But the hatred of the priests was not disarmed—so far from it, that the chief priests, with a numerous train of their partisans, returned to Pilate with a determination to force him to a decision. The unfortunate Pilate, reviewing his proceedings in their presence, said to them again: “Ye have brought this man unto me as one that perverteth the people—and, behold, I, having examined him before you, _have found no fault in this man touching those things whereof ye accuse him_: No, nor yet Herod; for I sent you to him, and lo, _nothing worthy of death is done unto him_. I will therefore chastise him and release him.” Luke xxiii. 14, 15. After “chastising” him! And was not this a piece of cruelty, when he considered him to be innocent?(415) But this was an act of condescension by which Pilate hoped to quiet the rage with which he saw they were agitated. “Then Pilate therefore took Jesus and scourged him.” John xix. 1. And, supposing that he had done enough to disarm their fury, he exhibited him to them in that pitiable condition; saying to them at the same time, Behold the man! _Ecce homo_. John xix. 5. Now, in my turn, I say, here is indeed a decree of Pilate, and an unjust decree; but it is not the pretended decree alleged to have been made by the Jews. It is a decision wholly different; an unjust decision, it is true; but sufficient to avail as _a legal bar_ to any new proceedings against Jesus for the same act. _Non bis in idem_, no man shall be put twice in jeopardy, &c. is a maxim, which has come down to us from the Romans. Accordingly, “from thenceforth Pilate sought to _release_ Jesus.” John xix. 12. Here, now, observe the deep perfidy of his accusers. “If thou let this man go, thou art not Cæsar’s friend; whosoever maketh himself a _king_ speaketh against Cæsar.” Ib. It does not appear that Pilate was malignant; we see all the efforts he had made at different times to save Jesus. But he was a _public officer_, and was attached to _his office_; he was intimidated by the outcry which called in question his _fidelity to the emperor_; he was afraid of a _dismissal_: and he yielded. He immediately reascended the judgment-seat; (Matt. xxvii. 19), and, as new light had thus come upon him, he proceeded to make a second decree! But being for a moment stopped by the voice of his own conscience, and by the advice which his terrified wife sent to him—“_Have thou nothing to do with that just man_”—(Matt. xxvii. 19)—he made his last effort, by attempting to influence the populace to accept of Barabbas instead of Jesus. “But the chief priests moved the people, that he should rather release Barabbas unto them.” Mark xv. 11. Barabbas! a murderer! an assassin! Pilate spoke to them again: _What will ye then, that I should do with Jesus?_ And they cried out, _Away with him, crucify him_. Pilate still persisted: _Shall I crucify your king?_ thus using terms of raillery, in order to disarm them. But here showing themselves to be more truly Roman than Pilate himself, the chief priests hypocritically answered: _We have no king but Cæsar._ John xix. 15. The outcry was renewed—Crucify him, crucify him! And the clamour became more and more threatening; “and the voices of them and of the chief priests prevailed.” Luke xxiii. 23. At length Pilate, _being desirous of pleasing the multitude_, proceeds to speak. But can we call it a legal adjudication, a _judgment_, that he is about to pronounce? Is he, at the moment, in that free state of mind which is necessary for a judge, who is about to pass a _sentence of death_? What new witnesses, what proofs have been brought forward to change his conviction and opinion, which had been so energetically declared, of the innocence of Jesus? “When Pilate saw that he could prevail nothing, but that rather a tumult was made, he took water and washed his hands before the multitude, saying, _I am innocent of the blood of this just person_; see ye to it. Matt. xxvii. 24. And Pilate gave sentence, that it should be as they required. Luke xxiii. 24. And he delivered him to them to be crucified.” Matt. xxvii. 26. Well mayest thou wash thy hands, Pilate, stained as they are with innocent blood! Thou hast authorised the act in thy weakness; thou art not less culpable, than if thou hadst sacrificed him through wickedness! All generations, down to our own time, have repeated that the _Just One_ suffered _under Pontius Pilate_. Thy name has remained in history, to serve for the instruction of all public men, all pusillanimous judges, in order to hold up to them the shame of _yielding contrary to one’s own convictions_. The populace, in its fury, made an outcry at the foot of thy judgment-seat, where, perhaps, thou thyself didst not sit securely! But of what importance was that? Thy _duty_ spoke out; and in such a case, better would it be to suffer death, than to inflict it on another.(416) We will now come to a conclusion. The _proof_ that Jesus was not, as Mr. Salvador maintains, put to death for the crime of blasphemy or sacrilege, and for having preached a new religious worship in contravention of the Mosaic law, results from _the very sentence_ pronounced by Pilate; a sentence, in pursuance of which he was led to execution by Roman soldiers. There was among the Romans a custom, which we borrowed from their jurisprudence, and which is still followed, of placing over the head of a condemned criminal a writing containing _an extract from his sentence_, in order that the public might know _for what crime_ he was condemned. This was the reason why Pilate put on the cross a label, on which he had written these words: _Jesus Nazarenus Rex Judæorum_, (Jesus of Nazareth, King of the Jews), which has since been denoted by the initials J. N. R. J. This was the alleged cause of his condemnation. St. Mark says—“And the superscription of his _accusation_ was written over—_The King of the Jews_.” Mark xv. 26. This inscription was first in _Latin_, which was the legal language of the _Roman_ judge; and it was repeated in _Hebrew_ and _Greek_, in order to be understood by the people of the nation and by foreigners. The chief priests, whose indefatigable hatred did not overlook the most minute details, being apprehensive that people would take it to be literally a fact affirmed, that Jesus _was the King of the Jews_, said to Pilate: “Write not _King of the Jews_, but that _he said_ I am king of the Jews.” But Pilate answered: “What I have written I have written.” John xix. 21, 22. This is a conclusive answer to one of the last assertions of Mr. Salvador, (p. 88,) that “the Roman Pilate signed the sentence;” by which he always means that Pilate did nothing but sign a sentence, which he supposes to have been passed by the Sanhedrim; but in this he is mistaken. Pilate did not merely _sign_ the sentence, or decree, but _drew it up_; and, when his draft was objected to by the priests, he still adhered to it, saying, what I have written shall remain as written. Here then we see the true cause of the condemnation of Jesus! Here we have the “_judicial and legal proof_.” Jesus was the victim of a _political_ accusation! He was put to death for the imaginary crime of having aimed at the power of Cæsar, by calling himself _King of the Jews_! Absurd accusation; which Pilate never believed, and which the chief priests and the Pharisees themselves did not believe. For they were not authorized to arrest Jesus on that account; it was a new, and totally different, accusation from that which they first planned—a sudden accusation of the moment, when they saw that Pilate was but little affected by their _religious_ zeal, and they found it necessary to arouse _his zeal for_ Cæsar. “_If thou let this man go, thou art not Cæsar’s friend!_” This alarming language has too often, since that time, reverberated in the ears of timid judges, who, like Pilate, have rendered themselves criminal by delivering up victims through want of firmness, whom they would never have condemned, if they had listened to the voice of their own consciences. Let us now recapitulate the case, as I have considered it from the beginning. Is it not evident, contrary to the conclusion of Mr. Salvador, that Jesus, considered merely as _a simple citizen_, was not tried and sentenced either _according to law_, or _agreeably to the forms of legal proceedings then existing_? God, according to his eternal design, might permit the just to suffer by the malice of men; but he also intended, that this should at least happen by a disregard of all laws, and by a violation of all established rules, in order that the entire contempt of forms should stand as the first warning of the violation of law. Let us not be surprised then, that in another part of his work, Mr. Salvador (who, it is gratifying to observe, discusses his subject dispassionately) expresses some regret in speaking of the “_unfortunate sentence against Jesus_.” Vol. i. p. 59. He has wished to excuse the Hebrews; but, one of that nation, in giving utterance to the feelings of his heart, still says—in language which I took from his own mouth, “We should be very cautious of condemning him at this day.” I pass over the excesses which followed the order of Pilate; as, the violence shown to Simon, the Cyrenian, who was made in some degree a sharer in the punishment, by being compelled to carry the cross; the injurious treatment which attended the victim to the place of the sacrifice, and even to the cross, where Jesus still prayed for his brethren and his executioners! To the heathen themselves I would say—You, who have gloried in the death of Socrates, how much must you be struck with wonder at that of Jesus! Ye, censors of the Areopagus, how could you undertake to excuse the Synagogue, and justify the sentence of the Hall of Judgment? Philosophy herself has not hesitated to proclaim, and we may repeat with her—“Yes, if the life and death of _Socrates_ were those of a sage, the life and death of _Jesus_ were those of a divinity.” FOOTNOTES 1 Cicero, Philip. II. § 43. 2 Nov. Org. 1. 68. “Ut non alius fere sit aditus ad regnum hominus, quod fundatur in scientiis, quam ad regnum cœlorum, in quod, nisi sub persona infantis, intrare non datur.” 3 Bishop Wilson’s Evidences, p. 38. 4 See Dr. Hopkins’s Lowell Lectures, particularly Lect. 2. Bp. Wilson’s Evidences of Christianity, Vol. i. pp. 45-61. Horne’s Introduction, Vol. i. pp. 1-39. Mr. Horne having cited all the best English writers on this subject, it is sufficient to refer to his work alone. 5 Hopkins’s Lowell Lect., p. 48. 6 It has been well remarked, that, if we regard man as in a state of innocence, we should naturally expect that God would hold communications with him; that if we regard him as guilty, and as having lost the knowledge and moral image of God, such a communication would be absolutely necessary, if man was to be restored.—Dr. Hopkins’s Lowell Lect., p. 62. 7 The argument here briefly sketched, is stated more at large, and with great clearness and force, in an essay entitled “The Philosophy of the Plan of Salvation,” pp. 13-107. 8 See Professor Stuart’s Critical History and Defence of the Old Testament Canon, where this is abundantly proved. 9 Per Tindal, Ch. Just., in the case of the Bishop of Meath v. the Marquis of Winchester, 3 Bing. N. C. 183, 200, 201. “It is when documents are found in other than their proper places of deposit,” observed the Chief Justice, “that the investigation commences, whether it was reasonable and natural, under the circumstances of the particular case, to expect that they should have been in the place where they are actually found; for it is obvious, that, which there can be only one place of deposit strictly and absolutely proper, there may be many and various, that are reasonable and probable, though differing in degree, some being more so, some less; and in these cases the proposition to be determined is, whether the actual custody is so reasonably and probably accounted for, that it impresses the mind with the conviction that the instrument found in such custody must be genuine.” See the cases cited in 1 Greenleaf on Evidence § 142. See also 1 Stark. on Evidence, pp. 332-335, 381-386. Croughton v. Blake, 12 Mees. & Welsb. 205, 208. Doe v. Phillips, 10 Jurist, p. 34. It is this defect, namely, that they do not come from the proper or natural repository, which shows the fabulous character of many pretended revelations, from the Gospel of the Infancy to the Book of Mormon. 10 1 Greenleaf on Evid. § 34, 142, 570. 11 Morewood v. Wood, 14 East, 329, n. Per Lord Kenyon. Weeks v. Sparke, 1 M. & S. 686; the Berkeley Peerage Case, 4 Campb. 416. Per Mansfield, Ch. J. See 1 Greenleaf on Evidence, § 128. 12 1 Starkie on Evidence, pp. 195, 230; 1 Greenleaf on Evidence, § 483. 13 The arguments for the genuineness and authenticity of the books of the Holy Scriptures are briefly, yet very fully stated, and almost all the writers of authority are referred to by Mr. Horne, in his Introduction to the Study of the Holy Scriptures, vol. i., passim. The same subject is discussed in a more popular manner in the Lectures of Bp. Wilson, and of Bp. Sumner of Chester, on the Evidences of Christianity; and, in America, the same question, as it relates to the Gospels, has been argued by Bp. M’Ilvaine, in his Lectures. 14 See the case of the Slane Peerage, 5 Clark & Finelly’s Rep., p. 24. See also the case of the Fitzwalter Peerage, 10 Clark & Finelly’s Rep., p. 948. 15 Matt. ix. 10; Mark ii. 14, 15; Luke v. 29. 16 The authorities on this subject are collected in Horne’s Introduction, vol. iv. pp. 234-238, part 2, chap. ii. sec. 2. 17 See Horne’s Introduction, vol. iv. p. 229-232. 18 See Campbell on the Four Gospels, vol. iii. pp. 35, 36; Preface to St. Matthew’s Gospel, § 22, 23. 19 See Gibbon’s Rome, vol. i. ch. vi. and vol. iii. ch. xvii. and authorities there cited. Cod. Theod. Lib. xi. tit. 1-28, with the notes of Gothofred. Gibbon treats particularly of the revenues of a later period than our Saviour’s time; but the general course of proceeding, in the levy and collection of taxes, is not known to have been changed since the beginning of the empire. 20 Acts xii. 12, 25; xiii. 5, 13; and xv. 36-41; 2 Tim. iv. 11; Phil. 24; Col. iv. 10; 1 Pet. v. 13. 21 Horne’s Introduction, vol. iv. pp. 252, 253. 22 Mark vii. 2, 11; and ix. 43, and elsewhere. 23 Mr. Norton has conclusively disposed of this objection, in his Evidences of the Genuineness of the Gospels, vol. i. Additional Notes, see. 2, pp. cxv-cxxxii. 24 Compare Mark x. 46, and xiv. 69, and iv. 35, and i. 35, and ix. 28, with Matthew’s narrative of the same events. 25 See Horne’s Introd. vol. iv. pp 252-259. 26 Acts xvi. 10, 11. 27 Col. iv. 14. Luke, the beloved physician. 28 Luke v. 12; Matt. viii. 2; Mark i. 40. 29 Luke vi. 6; Matt. xii. 10; Mark iii. 1. 30 Luke viii. 55; Matt. ix. 25; Mark v. 42. 31 Luke vi. 19. 32 Luke xxii. 44, 45, 51. 33 See Horne’s Introd. vol. iv. pp. 260-272, where references may be found to earlier writers. 34 See Lardner’s Works, 8vo. vol. vi. pp. 138, 139; 4to. vol. iii. pp. 203, 204; and other authors, cited in Horne’s Introd. vol. iv. p. 267. 35 2 Phillips on Evidence, p. 95, (9th edition.) 36 When Abbot, Archbishop of Canterbury, in shooting at deer with a cross-bow, in Bramsil park, accidentally killed the keeper, King James I. by a letter dated Oct. 3, 1621, requested the Lord Keeper, the Lord Chief Justice, and others, to inquire into the circumstances and consider the case and “the scandal that may have risen thereupon,” and to certify the King what it may amount to. Could there be any reasonable doubt of their report of the facts, thus ascertained? See Spelman’s Posthumous Works, p. 121. 37 The case of the ill-fated steamer President furnishes an example of this sort of inquiry. This vessel, it is well-known, sailed from New York for London in the month of March, 1841 having on board many passengers, some of whom were highly connected. The ship was soon overtaken by a storm, after which she was never heard of. A few months afterwards a solemn inquiry was instituted by three gentlemen of respectability, one of whom was a British admiral, another was agent for the underwriters at Lloyd’s, and the other a government packet agent, concerning the time, circumstances and causes of that disaster; the result of which was communicated to the public, under their hands. This document received universal confidence, and no further inquiry was made. 38 Mark i. 20. 39 John xix. 26, 27. 40 John xiii. 23. 41 Matt. xxvii. 55, 56; Mark xv. 40, 41. 42 John xviii. 15, 16. 43 Luke viii. 51; Matt. xvii. 1, and xxvi. 37. 44 This account is abridged from Horne’s Introd. vol. iv. pp. 286-288. 45 Horne’s Introd. vol. iv. p. 289, and authors there cited. 46 See, among others, John i. 38, 41, and ii. 6, 13, and iv. 9, and xi. 55. 47 See Horne’s Introd. vol. iv. pp. 297, 298. 48 See Gambier’s Guide to the Study of Moral Evidence, p. 121. 49 1 Stark. Evid. pp. 514, 577; 1 Greenl. on Evid. §§ 1, 2; Wills on Circumstantial Evid., p. 2; Whately’s Logic, b. iv. ch. iii. § 1. 50 See 1 Stark. Evid. pp. 16, 480, 521. 51 This subject has been treated by Dr. Chalmers, in his Evidences of the Christian Revelation, chapter iii. The following extract from his observations will not be unacceptable to the reader. “In other cases, when we compare the narratives of contemporary historians, it is not expected that all the circumstances alluded to by one will be taken notice of by the rest; and it often happens that an event or a custom is admitted upon the faith of a single historian; and the silence of all other writers is not suffered to attach suspicion or discredit to his testimony. It is an allowed principle, that a scrupulous resemblance betwixt two histories is very far from necessary to their being held consistent with one another. And what is more, it sometimes happens that, with contemporary historians, there may be an apparent contradiction, and the credit of both parties remain as entire and unsuspicious as before. Posterity is, in these cases, disposed to make the most liberal allowances. Instead of calling it a contradiction, they often call it a difficulty. They are sensible that, in many instances a seeming variety of statement has, upon a more extensive knowledge of ancient history, admitted of a perfect reconciliation. Instead, then, of referring the difficulty in question to the inaccuracy or bad faith of any of the parties, they, with more justness and more modesty, refer it to their own ignorance, and to that obscurity which necessarily hangs over the history of every remote age. These principles are suffered to have great influence in every secular investigation; but so soon as, instead of a secular, it becomes a sacred investigation, every ordinary principle is abandoned, and the suspicion annexed to the teachers of religion is carried to the dereliction of all that candour and liberality with which every other document of antiquity is judged of and appreciated. How does it happen that the authority of Josephus should be acquiesced in as a first principle, while every step, in the narrative of the evangelists, must have foreign testimony to confirm and support it? How comes it, that the silence of Josephus should be construed into an impeachment of the testimony of the evangelists, while it is never admitted, for a single moment, that the silence of the evangelists can impart the slightest blemish to the testimony of Josephus? How comes it, that the supposition of two Philips in one family should throw a damp of scepticism over the Gospel narrative, while the only circumstance which renders that supposition necessary is the single testimony of Josephus; in which very testimony it is necessarily implied that there are two Herods in that same family? How comes it, that the evangelists, with as much internal, and a vast deal more of external evidence in their favour, should be made to stand before Josephus, like so many prisoners at the bar of justice? In any other case, we are convinced that this would be looked upon as _rough handling_. But we are not sorry for it. It has given more triumph and confidence to the argument. And it is no small addition to our faith, that its first teachers have survived an examination, which, in point of rigour and severity, we believe to be quite unexampled in the annals of criticism.” See Chalmers’s Evidences, pp. 72-74. 52 See 1 Stark. Evid. pp. 480, 545. 53 If the witnesses could be supposed to have been biassed, this would destroy their testimony to matters of fact; it would only detract from the weight of their judgment in matters of opinion. The rule of law on this subject has been thus stated by Dr. Lushington: “When you examine the testimony of witnesses nearly connected with the parties, and there is nothing very peculiar tending to destroy their credit, when they depose to mere facts, their testimony is to be believed; when they depose as to matter of opinion, it is to be received with suspicion.” Dillon _v._ Dillon, 3 Curteis’s Eccl. Rep. pp. 96, 102. 54 This subject has been so fully treated by Dr. Paley, in his view of the Evidences of Christianity, Part I., Prop. I., that is it unnecessary to pursue it farther in this place. 55 1 Stark. Evid., pp. 483, 548. 56 Campbell’s Philosophy of Rhetoric, c. v. b. 1. Part 3, p. 125. Whately’s Rhetoric, Part 1. ch. 2. § 4. 1 Stark. Evid., p. 487. 57 See the Quarterly Review, vol. xxviii. p. 465. These narrators were, the Duchess D’Angoulême herself, the two Messrs. De Bouillè, the Duc De Choiseul, his servant, James Brissac, Messrs. De Damas and Deslons, two of the officers commanding detachments on the road, Messrs. De Moustier and Valori, the garde du corps who accompanied the king, and finally M. de Fontanges, archbishop of Toulouse, who though not himself a party to the transaction, is supposed to have written from the information of the queen. An earlier instance of similar discrepancy is mentioned by Sully. After the battle of Aumale, in which Henry IV. was wounded, when the officers were around the king’s bed, conversing upon the events of the day, there were not two who agreed in the recital of the most particular circumstances of the action. D’Aubigné, a contemporary writer, does not even mention the king’s wound, though it was the only one he ever received in his life. See Memoirs of Sully, vol. i. p. 245. If we treated these narratives as sceptics would have us treat these of the sacred writers, what evidence should we have of any battle at Aumale, or of any flight to Varennes? 58 Far greater discrepancies can be found in the different reports of the same case, given by the reporters of legal judgments than are shown among the evangelists; and yet we do not consider them as detracting from the credit of the reporters, to whom we still resort with confidence, as to good authority. Some of these discrepancies seem utterly irreconcilable. Thus, in a case, 45 Edw. III. 19, where the question was upon a gift of lands to J. de C. with Joan, the sister of the donor, and to their heirs, Fitzherbert (tit. _Tail_, 14) says it was adjudged fee simple, and not frankmarriage; Statham (tit. _Tail_) says it was adjudged a gift in frankmarriage; while Brook (tit. _Frankmarriage_) says it was not decided. (Vid. 10 Co. 118.) Others are irreconcilable, until the aid of a third reporter is invoked. Thus, in the case of Cooper v. Franklin, Croke says it was not decided, but adjourned; (Cro. Jac. 100); Godbolt says it was decided in a certain way, which he mentions; (Godb. 269); Moor also reports it as decided, but gives a different account of the question raised; (Moor, 848); while Bulstrode gives a still different report of the judgment of the court, which he says was delivered by Croke himself. But by his account it further appears, that the case was previously twice argued; and thus it at length results that the other reporters relate only what fell from the court on each of the previous occasions. Other similar examples may be found in 1 Dougl. 6, n. compared with 5 East, 475, n. in the case of Galbraith _v_. Neville; and in that of Stoughton _v_. Reynolds, reported by Fortescue, Strange, and in Cases temp. Hardwicke. (See 3 Barnw. & Ald. 247, 248.) Indeed, the books abound in such instances. Other discrepancies are found in the names of the same litigating parties, as differently given by reporters; such as, Putt _v_. Roster, (2 Mod. 318); Foot _v_. Rastall, (Skin. 49), and Putt _v_. Royston, (2 Show. 211); also, Hosdell _v_. Harris, (2 Keb. 462); Hodson _v_. Harwich, (Ib. 533), and Hodsden _v_. Harridge, (2 Saund. 64), and a multitude of others, which are universally admitted to mean the same cases, even when they are not precisely within the rule of _idem sonans_. These diversities, it is well known, have never detracted in the slightest degree from the estimation in which the reporters are all deservedly held, as authors of merit, enjoying, to this day, the confidence of the profession. Admitting now, for the sake of argument, (what is not conceded in fact,) that diversities equally great exist among the sacred writers; how can we consistently, and as lawyers, raise any serious objection against them on that account, or treat them in any manner different from that which we observe towards our own reporters? 59 Mr. Hume’s argument is thus refuted by Lord Brougham. “Here are two answers, to which the doctrine proposed by Mr. Hume is exposed, and either appears sufficient to shake it. “_First_—Our belief in the uniformity of the laws of nature rests not altogether upon our own experience. We believe no man ever was raised from the dead,—not merely because we ourselves never saw it, for indeed that would be a very limited ground of deduction; and our belief was fixed on the subject long before we had any considerable experience,—fixed chiefly by authority,—that is, by deference to other men’s experience. We found our confident belief in this negative position partly, perhaps chiefly, upon the testimony of others; and at all events, our belief that in times before our own the same position held good, must of necessity be drawn from our trusting relations of other men—that is, it depends upon the evidence of testimony. If, then, the existence of the law of nature is proved, in great part at least, by such evidence, can we wholly reject the like evidence when it comes to prove an exception to the rule—a deviation from the law? The more numerous are the cases of the law being kept—the more rare those of its being broken—the more scrupulous certainly ought we to be in admitting the proofs of the breach. But that testimony is capable of making good the proof there seems no doubt. In truth, the degree of excellence and of strength to which testimony may arise seems almost indefinite. There is hardly any cogency which it is not capable by possible supposition of attaining. The endless multiplication of witnesses,—the unbounded variety of their habits of thinking, their prejudices, their interests,—afford the means of conceiving the force of their testimony, augmented _ad infinitum_, because these circumstances afford the means of diminishing indefinitely the chances of their being mistaken, all misled, or all combining to deceive us. Let any man try to calculate the chances of a thousand persons who come from different quarters, and never saw each other before, and who all vary in their habits, stations, opinions, interests,—being mistaken or combining to deceive us, when they give the same account of an event as having happened before their eyes,—these chances are many hundreds of thousands to one. And yet we can conceive them multiplied indefinitely; for one hundred thousand such witnesses may in all like manner bear the same testimony; and they may all tell us their story within twenty-four hours after the transaction, and in the next parish. And yet, according to Mr. Hume’s argument, we are bound to disbelieve them all, because they speak to a thing contrary to our own experience, and to the accounts which other witnesses had formerly given us of the law of nature, and which our forefathers had handed down to us as derived from witnesses who lived in the old time before them. It is unnecessary to add that no testimony of the witnesses, whom we are supposing to concur in their relation, contradicts any testimony of our own senses. If it did, the argument would resemble Archbishop Tillotson’s upon the Real Presence, and our disbelief would be at once warranted. “_Secondly_—This leads us to the next objection to which Mr. Hume’s argument is liable, and which we have in part anticipated while illustrating the first. He requires us to withhold our belief in circumstances which would force every man of common understanding to lend his assent, and to act upon the supposition of the story told being true. For, suppose either such numbers of various witnesses as we have spoken of; or, what is perhaps stronger, suppose a miracle reported to us, first by a number of relators, and then by three or four of the very soundest judges and most incorruptibly honest men we know,—men noted for their difficult belief of wonders, and, above all, steady unbelievers in miracles, without any bias in favour of religion, but rather accustomed to doubt, if not disbelieve,—most people would lend an easy belief to any miracles thus vouched. But let us add this circumstance, that a friend on his death-bed had been attended by us, and that we had told him a fact known only to ourselves,—something that we had secretly done the very moment before we told it to the dying man, and which to no other being we had ever revealed,—and that the credible witnesses we are supposing, informed us that the deceased appeared to them, conversed with them, remained with them a day or two, accompanying them, and to avouch the fact of his reappearance on this earth, communicated to them the secret of which we had made him the sole depository the moment before his death;—according to Mr. Hume, we are bound rather to believe, not only that those credible witnesses deceive us, or that those sound and unprejudiced men were themselves deceived, and fancied things without real existence, but further, that they all hit by chance upon the discovery of a real secret, known only to ourselves and the dead man. Mr. Hume’s argument requires us to believe this as the lesser improbability of the two—as less unlikely than the rising of one from the dead; and yet every one must feel convinced, that were he placed in the situation we have been figuring, he would not only lend his belief to the relation, but if the relators accompanied it with a special warning from the deceased person to avoid a certain contemplated act, he would, acting upon the belief of their story, take the warning, and avoid doing the forbidden deed. Mr. Hume’s argument makes no exception. This is its scope; and whether he chooses to push it thus far or no, all miracles are of necessity denied by it, without the least regard to the kind or the quantity of the proof on which they are rested; and the testimony which we have supposed, accompanied by the test or check we have supposed, would fall within the grasp of the argument just as much and as clearly as any other miracle avouched by more ordinary combinations of evidence. “The use of Mr. Hume’s argument is this, and it is an important and a valuable one. It teaches us to sift closely and rigorously the evidence for miraculous events. It bids us remember that the probabilities are always, and must always be incomparably greater against, than for, the truth of these relations, because it is always far more likely that the testimony should be mistaken or false, than that the general laws of nature should be suspended. Further than this the doctrine cannot in soundness of reason be carried. It does not go the length of proving that those general laws cannot, by the force of human testimony, be shown to have been, in a particular instance, and with a particular purpose, suspended.” See his Discourse of Natural Theology, Note 5, p. 210-214. (Ed. 1835.) Laplace, in his Essai sur les Probabilités, maintains that, the more extraordinary the fact attested, the greater the probability of error or falsehood in the attestor. Simple good sense, he says, suggests this; and the calculation of probabilities confirms its suggestion. There are some things, he adds, so extraordinary, that nothing can balance their improbability. The position here laid down is, that the probability of error, or of the falsehood of testimony, becomes in _proportion_ greater, as the fact which is attested is more extraordinary. And hence a fact extraordinary in the highest possible degree, becomes in the highest possible degree improbable; or so much so, that nothing can counterbalance its improbability. This argument has been made much use of, to discredit the evidence of miracles, and the truth of that divine religion which is attested by them. But however sound it may be, in one sense, this application of it is fallacious. The fallacy lies in the meaning affixed to the term “extraordinary.” If Laplace means a fact extraordinary _under_ its existing circumstances and relations, that is, a fact remaining extraordinary, notwithstanding all its circumstances, the position need not here to be controverted. But if the term means extraordinary _in the abstract_, it is far from being universally true, or affording a correct test of truth, or rule of evidence. Thus, it is extraordinary that a man should leap fifteen feet at a bound; but not extraordinary that a strong and active man should do it, under a sudden impulse to save his life. The former is improbable in the abstract; the latter is rendered probable by the circumstances. So, things extraordinary, and therefore improbable under one hypothesis, become the reverse under another. Thus, the occurrence of a violent storm at sea, and the utterance by Jesus of the the words, “Peace, be still,” succeeded instantly by a perfect calm, are facts which, taken separately from each other, are not in themselves extraordinary. The connexion between the command of Jesus and the ensuing calm, as cause and effect, would be extraordinary and improbable if he were a mere man; but it becomes perfectly natural and probable, when his divine power is considered. Each of those facts is in its nature so simple and obvious, that the most ignorant person is capable of observing it. There is nothing extraordinary in the facts themselves; and the extraordinary coincidence, in which the miracle consists, becomes both intelligible and probable upon the hypothesis of the Christian. (See the Christian Observer for Oct. 1838, p. 617.) The theory of Laplace may, with the same propriety, be applied to the creation of the world. That matter was created out of nothing is extremely improbable, in the abstract, that is, if there is no God; and therefore it is not to be believed. But if the existence of a Supreme Being is conceded, the fact is perfectly credible. Laplace was so fascinated with his theory, that he thought the calculus of probabilities might be usefully employed in discovering the value of the different methods resorted to, in those sciences which are in a great measure conjectural, as medicine, agriculture, and political economy. And he proposed that there should be kept, in every branch of the administration, an exact register of the trials made of different measures, and of the results, whether good or bad, to which they have led. (See the Edinburgh Review, vol. xxiii. pp 335, 336.) Napoleon, who appointed him Minister of the Interior, has thus described him: “A geometrician of the first class, he did not reach mediocrity as a statesman. He never viewed any subject in its true light; he was always occupied with subtleties; his notions were all problematic; and he carried into the administration the spirit of the _infinitely_ small.” See the Encyclopedia Britannica, art. Laplace, vol. xiii. p. 101. Memoires Ecrits à Ste. Helena, i. 3. The injurious effect of deductive reasoning, upon the minds of those who addict themselves to this method alone, to the exclusion of all other modes of arriving at the knowledge of truth in fact, is shown with great clearness and success, by Mr. Whewel in the ninth of the Bridgewater Treatises, book 3, ch. 6. The calculus of probabilities has been applied by some writers, to judicial evidence; but its very slight value as a test, is clearly shown in an able article on Presumptive Evidence, in the Law Magazine, vol. i. pp. 28-32 (New Series.) 60 See Mr. Norton’s “Discourse on the latest form of Infidelity,” p. 18. 61 The arguments on this subject are stated in a condensed form, by Mr. Horne, in his Introduction to the Study of the Holy Scriptures, vol. i. ch. 4, sec. 2; in which he refers, among others, to Doctor Gregory’s Letters on the Evidences of the Christian Revelation; Dr. Campbell’s Dissertation on Miracles; Vince’s Sermons on the Credibility of Miracles; Bishop Marsh’s Lectures, part 6, lect. 30; Dr. Adam’s Treatise in reply to Mr. Hume; Bishop Gleig’s Dissertation on Miracles, (in the third volume of his edition of Stackhouse’s History of the Bible, p. 240, &c.); Dr. Key’s Norissian Lectures, vol. i. See also Dr. Hopkins’s Lowell Lectures, lect. I. and II. delivered in Boston in 1844, where this topic is treated with great perspicuity and cogency. Among the more popular treatises on miracles, are Bogue’s Essay on the Divine Authority of the New Testament, ch. 5; Bishop Wilson’s Evidences of Christianity, vol. i. lect. 7; Bishop Sumner’s Evidences, ch. 10; Gambier’s Guide to the Study of Moral Evidence, ch. v.; Mr. Norton’s Discourse on the latest form of Infidelity, and Dr. Dewey’s Dudleian Lecture, delivered before Harvard University, in May, 1836. 62 See Bishop Wilson’s Evidences, lect. 7, p. 130. 63 1 Stark on Evid. p. 496-499. 64 1 Stark. on Evid. p. 523. 65 1 Stark. Evid. 487. The Gospels abound in instances of this. See, for example, Mark, xv. 21. John, xviii. 10. Luke, xxiii. 6. Matt. xxvii. 58-60, John xi. 1. 66 1 Stark. Evid. 522, 585. 67 See 1 Stark. Evid. 498. Wills on Circumstantial Evidence, pp. 128, 129. 68 See Chalmers’s Evidence, chap. iii. 69 See Chalmers’s Evidence, pp. 76-78, Amer. ed. Proofs of this kind are copiously referred to by Mr. Horne, in his Introduction, &c. vol. i., ch. 3, sect. II. 2. 70 See Mark viii. 32; ix. 5; and xiv. 29; Matt. xvi. 22; and xvii. 5; Luke ix. 33; and xviii. 18; John xiii, 8; and xviii. 15. 71 Mark viii. 29; Matt. xvi. 16; Luke ix. 20. 72 Matt. xviii. 21; and xix. 27; John xiii. 36. 73 Gal. ii. 11. 74 John xx. 3-6. 75 Matt. xiv. 30. 76 Acts i. 15. 77 Acts ii. 14. 78 Matt. xvi. 16; Mark viii. 29; Luke ix. 20; John vi. 69. 79 Matt. xxvi. 33, 35; Mark xiv. 29. 80 See Paley’s view of the Evidences of Christianity, part ii. chapters iii. iv. v. vi. vii; Ibid. part iii. ch. i.; Chalmers on the Evidence and Authority of the Christian Revelation, ch. iii. iv. viii.; Wilson’s Evidences of Christianity, lect. vi.; Bogue’s Essay on the Divine Authority of the New Testament, chap. iii. iv. 81 See Bogue’s Essay, chap. i. sect. 2; Newcome’s Obs. part ii. ch. i. sec. 14. 82 Mal. iv. 5, 6. 83 Mic. iv. 7. 84 Is. xli. 8, 9; Gen. xxii. 16, seq. 85 Gen. xxii. 16, seq. 86 Matt. i. 19. _husband_. There was commonly an interval of ten or twelve months, between the making of the contract of marriage and the time of its celebration. _Gen_. xxiv. 55; _Judg_. xiv. 8. During this period, though there was no intercourse between the bride and bridegroom, not even so much as an interchange of conversation, yet they were considered and spoken of as husband and wife. If, at the end of this probationary period, the bridegroom was unwilling to solemnize his engagements by the marriage of the bride, he was bound to give her a bill of divorce, as if she had been his wife. And if she, during the same period, had illicit intercourse with another man, she was liable to punishment, as an adulteress. JAHN’S Archæol. § 154. 87 Is. vii. 14. 88 Luke ii. 1. _a decree_. This decree was issued eleven years before it was carried into effect, the delay having been procured by Herod. This fact reconciles the evangelist with the Roman historians, from whom it appears that Cyrenius was not governor when the decree was issued, though he held that office when the census was taken and the tax assessed. See TOWNSEND, _in loc._ 89 Gen. xvii. 12; Lev. xii. 3. 90 Ex. xiii. 2; Numb. viii. 16, 17. 91 Lev. xii. 6, 8. 92 Is. viii. 14. 93 Matth. ii. 3, _he was troubled_. According to Josephus, Herod was always in fear for the stability of his throne, and anxious to pry into futurity to discover whether it was likely to endure. Thus, when advanced to regal power, he sent for Manahem, an Essene, who had predicted of him when a boy that he would be a king, to inquire of him how long he should reign. JOSEPH. Ant. xv. § 5. BLUNT, Veracity, &c. § ii. 2. 94 Mic. v. 2. 95 Hos. xi. 1. 96 Jer. xxxi. 15, and xl. 1. 97 Matth. ii. 22, _he was afraid_. The naked statement of this fact, without explanation, is a mark of the sincerity of the evangelist, for the value of which we are indebted to Josephus, who relates, (Ant. b. 17, ch. 9, § 3,) an instance of savage cruelty in Archelaus, immediately on his coming to the throne, in causing three thousand persons to be butchered in cold blood, at the first passover after Herod’s death. Such an act, committed under such circumstances, must have been rapidly made known abroad, and inspired all persons with horror. Well, therefore, might Joseph fear to return. But Matthew’s incidental allusion to the cause, is characteristic of a man intent only upon the statement of the main facts, and regardless of appearances or explanations. BLUNT, Veracity, &c. § ii. 3. 98 Is. xi. 1, and liii. 2; Zech. vi. 12; Rev. v. 5. 99 Luke ii. 42; _twelve years old_. Jewish children were not obliged to the observances of the ceremonial law, until they attained to years of discretion, which, in males, was fixed by common consent at twelve years. On arriving at this age, they were taken to Jerusalem at the passover, of which they thenceforth participated, as “sons of commandment,” being fully initiated into the doctrines and ceremonies of the Jewish church, probably after examination by the doctors. This accounts for the circumstance of his being found among them, both hearing, and asking them questions. STACKHOUSE, Hist. N. T. ch. i.; BLOOMFIELD, _in loc_. 100 Luke ii. 44; _in the company_. All who came, not only from the same city, but from the same canton or district, made one company. They carried necessaries along with them, and tents for their lodging at night. Such companies they now call _caravans_, and in several places have houses fitted up for their reception, called _caravanseries_. This account of their manner of travelling furnishes a ready answer to the question, How could Joseph and Mary make a day’s journey, without discovering, before night, that Jesus was not in the company? In the day-time, we may reasonably presume, the travellers would mingle with different parties of their friends and acquaintance; but in the evening, when they were about to encamp, every one would join the family to which he belonged. CAMPBELL, _in loc_. 101 The Genealogy of Jesus, as given by Luke, is here inverted for the sake of more convenient comparison with that given by Matthew. The apparent discrepancies in these accounts are reconciled by Dr. Robinson, in the following manner: “I. In the genealogy given by Matthew, considered by itself, some difficulties present themselves. “1. There is some diversity among commentators in making out the three divisions, each of fourteen generations, v. 17. It is, however, obvious, that the first division begins with Abraham and ends with David. But does the second begin with David, or with Solomon? Assuredly with the former; because, just as the first begins _apo Abraham_, so the second also is said to begin _apo David_. The first extends _heos David_, and includes him; the second extends to an epoch and not to a person; and therefore the persons who are mentioned as coeval with this epoch are not reckoned before it. After the epoch the enumeration begins again with Jechoniah, and ends with Jesus. In this way the three divisions are made out thus:— 1. Abraham. 2. Isaac. 3. Jacob. 4. Judah. 5. Phares. 6. Esrom. 7. Aram. 8. Aminadab. 9. Naasson. 10. Salmon. 11. Boaz. 12. Obed. 13. Jesse. 14. David. 1. David. 2. Solomon. 3. Roboam. 4. Abiah. 5. Asa. 6. Josaphat. 7. Joram. 8. Uzziah (Ozias). 9. Jotham. 10. Ahaz. 11. Hezekiah. 12. Manasseh. 13. Amon. 14. Josiah. 1. Jechoniah. 2. Salathiel. 3. Zorobabel. 4. Abiud. 5. Eliakim. 6. Azor. 7. Sadoc. 8. Achim. 9. Eliud. 10. Eleazar. 11. Matthan. 12. Jacob. 13. Joseph. 14. Jesus. “2. Another difficulty arises from the fact, that between Joram and Ozias, in v. 8, three names of Jewish kings are omitted, viz. Ahaziah, Joash, and Amaziah; see 2 K. 8, 25 and Chr. 22, 1. 2 K. 11, 2. 21 and 2 Chr. 22, 11. 2 K. 12, 21. 14, 1 and 2 Chr. 24, 27. Further, between Josiah and Jechoniah in v. 11, the name of Jehoiakim is also omitted; 2 K. 23, 34. 2 Chr. 36, 4. comp. 1 Chr. 3, 15, 16. If these four names are to be reckoned, then the second division, instead of fourteen generations, will contain eighteen, in contradiction to v. 17. To avoid this difficulty, Newcome and some others have regarded v. 17 as a mere gloss, ‘a marginal note taken into the text.’ This indeed is in itself possible; yet all the external testimony of manuscripts and versions is in favour of the genuineness of that verse. It is better therefore to regard these names as having been customarily omitted in the current genealogical tables, from which Matthew copied. Such omissions of particular generations did sometimes actually occur, ‘propteres quod malæ essent et impiæ,’ according to R. Sal. Jarchi; Lightfoot, Hor. Heb. in Matth. 1, 8. A striking example of an omission of this kind, apparently without any such reason, is found in Ezra 7, 1-5, compared with 1 Chr. 6, 3-15. This latter passage contains the lineal descent of the high-priests from Aaron to the captivity; while Ezra, in the place cited, in tracing back his own genealogy through the very same line of descent, omits at least six generations. A similar omission is necessarily implied in the genealogy of David, as given Ruth 4, 20-22. 1 Chr. 2, 10-12. Matth. 1, 5, 6. Salmon was contemporary with the capture of Jericho by Joshua, and married Rahab. But from that time until David, an interval of at least four hundred and fifty years (Acts 13, 20,) there intervened, according to the list, only four generations, averaging of course more than one hundred years to each. But the highest average in point of fact is _three_ generations to a century; and if reckoned by the eldest sons they are usually shorter, or three generations for every seventy-five or eighty years. See Sir I. Newton’s Chronol. p. 53. Lond. 1728. “We may therefore rest in the necessary conclusion, that as our Lord’s regular descent from David was always asserted, and was never denied even by the Jews; so Matthew, in tracing this admitted descent, appealed to genealogical tables, which were public and acknowledged in the family and tribe from which Christ sprang. He could not indeed do otherwise. How much stress was laid by the Jews upon lineage in general, and how much care and attention were bestowed upon such tables, is well known. See Lightfoot, Hor. Heb. in Matth. 1, 1. Comp. Phil. 3, 4, 5. “II. Other questions of some difficulty present themselves, when we compare together the two genealogies. “1. Both tables at first view purport to give the lineage of our Lord through Joseph. But Joseph cannot have been the son by natural descent of both Joseph and Heli (Eli), Matth. 1, 16. Luke 3, 23. Only one of the tables therefore can give his true lineage by generation. This is done apparently in that of Matthew; because, beginning at Abraham, it proceeds by natural descent, as we know from history, until after the exile; and then continues on in the same mode of expression until Joseph. Here the phrase is changed; and it is no longer Joseph who ’begat’ Jesus, but Joseph ‘the husband of Mary, of whom was born Jesus who is called the Christ.’ See Augustine, de Consensu Evangel. II. 5. “2. To whom then does the genealogy in Luke chiefly relate? If in any way to Joseph, as the language purports, then it must be because he in some way bore the legal relation of son to Heli, either by adoption or by marriage. If the former simply, it is difficult to comprehend why, along with his true personal lineage as traced by Matthew up through the royal line of Jewish kings to David, there should be given also another subordinate genealogy, not personally his own, and running back through a different and inferior line to the same great ancestor. If, on the other hand, as is most probable, this relation to Heli came by marriage with his daughter, so that Joseph was truly his _son-in-law_ (comp. Ruth 1, 8. 11. 12); then it follows, that the genealogy in Luke is in fact that of Mary the mother of Jesus. This being so, we can perceive a sufficient reason why this genealogy should be thus given, viz. in order to show definitely, that Jesus was in the most full and perfect sense a descendant of David: not only by law in the royal line of kings, through his reputed father, but also in fact by direct personal descent through his mother. “That Mary, like Joseph, was a descendant of David, is not indeed elsewhere expressly said in the New Testament. Yet a very strong presumption to that effect is to be drawn from the address of the angel in Luke 1, 32; as also from the language of Luke 2, 5, where Joseph, as one of the posterity of David, is said to have gone up to Bethlehem, to _enroll himself with Mary his espoused wife_. The ground and circumstances of Mary’s enrolment must obviously have been the same as in the case of Joseph himself. Whether all this arose from her having been an only child and heiress, as some suppose, so that she was espoused to Joseph in accordance with Num. 36, 8, 9, it is not necessary here to inquire. See Michaelis ‘Commentaries on the Laws of Moses,’ Part II. § 78. “It is indeed objected, that it was not customary among the Jews to trace back descent through the female line, that is, on the mother’s side. There are, however, examples to show that this was sometimes done; and in the case of Jesus, as we have seen, there was a sufficient reason for it. Thus in 1 Chr. 2, 22, Jair is enumerated among the posterity of Judah by regular descent. But the grandfather of Jair had married the daughter of Machir, one of the heads of Manasseh, 1 Chr. 2, 21. 7, 14; and therefore in Num. 32, 40. 41, Jair is called the son (descendant) of Manasseh. In like manner, in Ezra, 2, 61, and Neh. 7, 63, a certain family is spoken of as ‘the children of Barzillai;’ because their ancestor ‘took a wife of the daughters of Barzillai the Gileadite, and was called after their name.’ “3. A question is raised as to the identity, in the two genealogies, of the Salathiel and Zorobabel named as father and son, Matth. 1, 12. Luke 3, 27. The Zorobabel of Matthew is no doubt the chief, who led back the first band of captives from Babylon, and rebuilt the temple, Ezra c. 2-6. He is also called the son of Salathiel in Ezra 3, 2. Neb. 12, 1. Hagg. 1, 1. 2, 2. 23. Were then the Salathiel and Zorobabel of Luke the same persons? Those who assume this, must rest solely on the identity of the names; for there is no other possible evidence to prove, either that they were contemporary, or that they were not different persons. On the other hand, there are one or two considerations, of some force, which go to show that they were probably not the same persons. “First, if Salathiel and Zorobabel are indeed the same in both genealogies, then Salathiel who, according to Matthew, was the son of Jechoniah by natural descent, must have been called the son of Neri in Luke either from adoption or marriage. In that case, his connection with David through Nathan, as given by Luke, was not his own personal genealogy. It is difficult, therefore, to see Luke, after tracing back the descent of Jesus to Salathiel, should abandon the true personal lineage in the royal line of kings, and turn aside again to a merely collateral and humbler line. If the mother of Jesus was in fact descended from the Zorobabel and Salathiel of Matthew, she, like them, was descended also from David through the royal line. Why rob her of this dignity, and ascribe to her only a descent through an inferior lineage? See Spanheim Dubia Evangel. I. p. 108, sq. “Again, the mere identity of names under these circumstances, affords no proof; for nothing is more common even among contemporaries. Thus we have two Ezras; one in Neh. 12, 1. 13, 33; from whom Ezra the scribe is expressly distinguished in v. 36. We have likewise two Nehemiahs; one who went up with Zorobabel, Ezra 2, 2; and the other the governor who went later to Jerusalem, Neh. 2, 9, sq. So too, as contemporaries, Joram son of Ahab, king of Israel, and Joram (Jehoram,) son of Jehoshaphat, king of Judah; 2 K. 8, 16, coll. v. 23, 24. Also Joash king of Judah, and Joash king of Israel; 2 K. 13, 9, 10. Further, we find in succession among the descendants of Cain the following names: Enoch, Irad, Mehujael, Methusael, Lamech, Gen. 4, 17, 18; and later among the descendants of Seth these similar ones: Enoch, Methusalah, Lamech, Gen. 5, 21-25.” See Dr. Robinson’s Greek Harmony of the Gospels, pp. 183-187. 102 Mal. iii. 1; Is. xl. 3. 103 In the New Testament, the same word is used for _the high priests_, and the chief priests, who were the heads of the twenty-four courses. So that the two persons whom the Roman governor considered as the chief of the priests, and whose names stood as such in those public registers which seem here referred to, may be intended. An irregularity had arisen out of the confusion of the times: and the ruler or prince under the Romans, though a chief priest, was a distinct person from the high priest: Annas being the one, and Caiaphas the other. Scott, _in loc._ See also Campbell, _in loc._ 104 Is. xl. 3, seq. 105 Deut. viii. 3. 106 Deut. vi. 16. 107 Ps. xci. 11. 108 Deut. vi. 13. 109 There is a seeming discrepancy between Matthew and Luke, in the order of the temptations; but Luke does not affirm the order; whereas Matthew uses particles, in v. 2 and 8, which seem to fix it as he has written. NEWCOME. 110 John means that he was not really Elias risen from the dead. But when Jesus says, (Matth. xvii. 12, and xi. 14,) that Elias was come already, he means that John had appeared _in the spirit and power of Elias_. Luke i. 17. Thus likewise, John here denies that he is one of the ancient prophets again appearing on earth: see Luke ix 19; with which our Lord’s assertion that he was an eminent prophet, Luke vii. 28, seems perfectly consistent. Newcome. 111 Is. xl. 3. 112 Kings and princes very often changed the names of those who held offices under them, particularly when they first attracted their notice and were taken into their employ; and when subsequently they were elevated to some new station, and crowned with additional honours. Gen. xli. 45; and xvii. 5; and xxxii. 28; and xxxv. 10; 2 Kin. xxiii. 34, 35; and xxiv. 17; Dan. i. 6. Hence a name (_a new name_) occurs topically, as a token of honour, in Phil. ii. 9; Heb. i. 4; Rev. ii. 17. See also Mark iii. 17. Jahn’s Archæol. § 164. _ 113 Nathanael_. This apostle is supposed to be the same with _Bartholomew_, of whom John says nothing; and the others make no mention of _Nathanael_. This seems to have been his proper name; since the name of _Bartholomew_ is not a proper name, but only signifies _the son of Ptolomy_. _Nathanael_ is also ranked among the Apostles to whom Jesus showed himself. _John_ xxi. 2-4. A. Clarke, _in loc_. 114 Gen. xxviii. 12. 115 Ps. lxix. 9. 116 Numb. xxi. 8, seq. 117 Is. ix. 1. 118 Is. lxi. 1, and lviii. 6. 119 This word denotes only a subordinate officer, who attended the minister and obeyed his orders in what concerned the more servile part of the work. Among other things he had charge of the sacred books, and delivered them to those to whom he was commanded by his superiors to deliver them. After the reading was over, he deposited them in their proper place. CAMPBELL, _in loc_. 120 The service of the synagogue consisted of reading the scriptures, prayer, and preaching. The posture in which the latter was performed, whether in the synagogue or elsewhere, (see _Matth_. v. 1; _Luke_ v. 3,) was sitting. Accordingly when our Saviour had read the portion of scripture, in the synagogue at Nazareth, of which he was a member, having been brought up in that city, and then, instead of retiring to his place, _sat down_ in the desk or pulpit, it is said “the eyes of all that were present were fastened upon him,” because they perceived, by this posture, that he was about to preach to them. See also Acts xiii. 14, 15. JENNINGS, Ant. 375. 121 1 Kings xvii. 1, 9. 122 2 Kings v. 14. 123 The accuracy of this description is attested by travellers, to this day. See ROBINSON’S Travels in Palestine, vol. iii., pp. 186, 187. 124 Matthew says that the disciples were called by Christ while walking by the sea, because that calling followed the walk by the sea. “We say that a thing was done by one walking in this or that place, because he took such a walk, whether he who did the act was then walking, or sitting or standing.” Spanb. dub. lxxii. v. 2. This remark reconciles “_walking_,” Matth. iv. 18 with “_stood_,” Luke v. 1. A like remark may be made with respect to the passages placed parallel to Luke v. 6. Jesus is concisely represented as if he had at first seen Peter and Andrew casting a net into the sea, because they were employed thus in consequence of the interview. Luke does not deny that more than Simon were seen, nor does he affirm that Simon was seen. Indeed our Lord is said to have seen two ships by the lake. The calling of others beside Simon not only is not denied by Luke, but is sufficiently indicated in v. 11. The words of Matthew (v. 21) “going on from thence,” are not to be understood as implying a great distance, but as relating to the neighbouring shore. Matthew relates the principal fact, the calling and the following; Luke has the accompanying circumstances. And there is a remarkable harmony between them. Matthew records the repairing of their nets by the fishermen; Luke shows how they became broken,—by the great draught they had taken. What is related by Luke, is not denied by Matthew, but omitted only. Nothing, indeed, is more common than to find the omission of some supplied by the other Evangelists. NEWCOME. 125 The death of Zebedee is nowhere mentioned in the gospels; yet an undesigned coincidence, and proof of the veracity of the Evangelists, is evident by comparing this place with others, in which his death is tacitly alluded to. Thus, in Chap. viii. 21, it is related that “another of his _disciples_ said unto him, Lord, suffer me first to go and _bury my father_;” and in Chap. xx. 20, it is said, “Then came to him the _mother of Zebedee’s children_ with her sons, worshipping him,” &c. See also Chap. xxvii. 55. BLUNT, Veracity of the Gospels, Sec. I. 2. See note on Mark vi. 3; Post, § 55. 126 There is no inconsistency between this place and the last clause of Luke iv. 35. The word translated _torn_, signifies to move, agitate, convulse. It occurs only twice in the Septuagint. In 2. Sam. xxii. 8, the Hebrew signifies to be shaken, _ut in terræ motu_. In Jer. iv. 19, it is applied to commotion of mind. Here, the demoniac was violently agitated; but the agitation left no lasting bad effect; he was restored to perfect health and soundness. NEWCOME. 127 Is. liii. 4. 128 This clause may be rendered “when the day was coming on,” and thus be reconciled with the words of Mark, who says it was a great while before day, namely, before broad day-light. SCOTT, _in loc_ 129 “The miraculous cure of the leprosy was thought by the Jews to be characteristic of the Messiah; and therefore there was peculiar reason for enjoining this man silence.” _Benson’s Life of Christ_, p. 340. NEWCOME. For the consequences of a premature full manifestation of himself as the Messiah, by awakening the jealousy of the Roman government, might, humanly speaking, have impeded his ministry. Yet there was great propriety in the private exhibition, to the priesthood, of full proof that he was the Messiah; after which, their obstinacy in rejecting him was inexcusable. In this, and divers other instances, our Lord manifested his intent not to be generally known to the Jews as their Messiah, till the consummation of his ministry. A general announcement of his divine character at the outset would have been productive of no good; on the contrary it would have excited the malice of the Scribes, Pharisees and Herodians against him; would have favoured the conceit of the Jews that he was to be their temporal king; would have awakened the jealousy of the Roman government; and in the natural course of things, would have prevented him from giving the many miraculous proofs which he gave of his ministry, and thus laying solid foundations for faith in his divine mission; would have exposed him and his religion to the charge of ostentation, vanity, and love of power and display; and would have deprived the world of that example which he gave, of meekness, humility and patient suffering and self-denial. According to human experience, an early assumption of regal splendour, supported by the miracles he wrought, would have been successful, and carried him to the throne instead of the cross; but it would have deprived the world of the great object of his mission. A sufficient number were enlightened to attest his miracles and proclaim his religion, and enough were left in their ignorance, to condemn and crucify him. See A. CLARKE, and SCOTT, _in loc_. 130 Lev. xiv. 2, seq. 131 When a Jew became a Roman citizen, he usually assumed a Roman name. It is therefore supposed that Levi was the original Hebrew, and Matthew the assumed Roman name of this evangelist. STOWE’S Introd. 120. See also, HARMER’S Obs. vol. iv. p. 330; Obs. 94. 132 It is observable that though John speaks of this pool or bath as existing at the time he wrote, which was upwards of sixty years after the crucifixion, yet he speaks of the efficacy of its waters in the past tense, as something which had long ceased. This may account for the silence of Josephus concerning it; whether we suppose it to have been really a miraculous virtue, existing only in the time of our Saviour; or merely a groundless belief of the populace. 133 Spanheim, dub. evang. ii. 185, doubts how the latter part of this verse is reconcilable with Matthew iii. 17, and the parallel verses. But the voice from heaven was not God’s _immediate_ voice; but uttered at his command, and in his person. See Deut. iv. 33; Ex. xx. 1, 2; Comp. Hebr. ii. 2; Gal. iii. 19; Acts vii. 53. NEWCOME. 134 Deut. xxiii. 25. 135 The act of plucking the ears of corn by the hand, in another’s field, was expressly permitted, by the law of Moses, Deut. xxiii. 23; but it was considered so far a species of reaping as to be servile work, and therefore not lawful to be done on the Sabbath. CAMPBELL, _in loc_. See ROBINSON’S Biblical Researches in Palestine, Vol. 2, pp. 192, 201, that this custom is still in use. 136 Hos. vi. 6. 137 It appears from 1 Sam. xxi. 1, that Abimelech was the high priest at the time referred to; but Abiathar his son was the _chief_ priest under him, and probably superintended the tabernacle and its stated concerns. Abimelech was soon after slain; and Abiathar succeeded him in that office, and continued in it about forty years, until after the death of David. This circumstance, and his great eminence, above his father, may account for the use of his name rather than his father’s, as illustrating the times of David and Saul. See SCOTT, _in loc_. 138 Numb. xxviii. 9, 10; xviii. 19. 139 1 Sam. xxi. 1-7. 140 Is. xlii. 1, seq.; Is. xi. 10. 141 There may be an allusion, in these words of the prophet, to an Eastern custom, for those who were grievously afflicted to come to the sovereign for relief or redress, having pots of fire, or of burning straw, or other combustible on their heads, in token of their extreme trouble. Not one of these, the prophet seems to intimate, should go away without redress; he will certainly remove the cause of their complaints, and render truth and justice victorious over falsehood and oppression. 3 CALM. 394. 142 It appears from Mark vi. 7, that the apostles were sent forth by _two and two_ to preach; and this accounts for their being here and in the parallel places named in couples. Luke mentions Matthew first, as being regarded as the senior of Thomas, his companion; but Matthew modestly places his own name last. Mark is less observant of the order of the names, but he alone states that they were thus associated. The others give the names in couples, but state no reason for it. This is not the method of false witnesses; such incidental corroborations belong only to the narratives of truth. 143 Thaddeus, Theudas and Judas (or Jude) are probably names of the same signification, the Greek termination being added to different forms of a Hebrew verb. “The Canaanite,” Matth. x. 4, is the same with “Zelotes” in Luke. “Cognomen erat Chald. quod Lucas reddidit Zelotem.” Wetstein. Thus, Thomas is rendered Didymus, or, the twin; Cephas, Peter; and Silas, Tertius. Some suppose that this name had been given to Simon on account of his religious zeal; or, because he had been of a Jewish sect called Zealots, who were addicted to the Pharisees, and justified themselves by the example of Phinehas, for punishing offenders without waiting for the sentence of the magistrate. NEWCOME. “Between Matthew (x. 2,) and Mark (iii. 16,) we observe a strict correspondence, but the catalogue in St. Luke (vi. 14,) differs from both the first-mentioned writers, in two particulars. 1, ‘Simon the Canaanite,’ of Matthew and Mark is introduced as ‘Simon called Zelotes.’ Now if any difference was admitted in this place, we might expect it to extend no farther than to the order of the names, or the addition of a surname; as, for instance, Matthew calls the ‘Thaddeus’ of Mark also ‘Lebbeus;’ but here we have one surname changed for another. It is indeed easy to conceive, that Simon might have been commonly distinguished by either appellative, but this we can only conjecture; neither Evangelist adds a word to explain the point. 2, The other discrepancy, however, appears more serious. The Lebbeus or Thaddeus of St. Matthew and Mark, is entirely omitted in the list of St. Luke, who substitutes ‘Judas the brother of James.’ Here is certainly a marked difference, for it would not seem very probable, that the Apostle in question passed by three distinct names. Nor could this be a mere oversight in St. Luke, for, in Acts i. 13, where a catalogue of the eleven is inserted, he mentioned this individual in exactly the same manner. Are we to suppose then that the Evangelist commits a deliberate error in this particular? We have distinct and satisfactory witnesses to prove that there really was an Apostle, besides Iscariot, who bore the name of Judas. Both Matthew (xiii. 55,) and Mark (vi. 3,) concur in speaking of James and Jude as the near relations of Christ, and part of this statement is incidentally confirmed by St. Paul, who calls James ‘the Lord’s brother.’ (Gal. i. 19.) But farther, St. John (xiv. 22,) presents us with a remark made by ‘Judas not Iscariot;’ evidently one of the Apostles; and St. Jude himself, in the first verse of his Epistle, styles himself ‘the brother of James.’ There is thus amply sufficient evidence, that all the Gospel writers acknowledge an Apostle of this name, though St. Matthew, with his usual simplicity, familiarly mentions him by two of his appellations, omitting that of Judas, and St. Mark sees no occasion to depart from his language, in a matter of such general notoriety. Luke, on the other hand, usually studious of accuracy, distinguishes this Apostle by the name generally current in the Church, when his Gospel was written. This variation then may, upon the whole, convince us how undesignedly the writers of Scripture confirm each other’s statements; yet can this only be the result of a minute examination upon our part, and upon the probability of this, a cautious writer would hardly stake his reputation for truth or exactness.” See ROBERTS’S “Light shining out of Darkness,” pp. 91-93. 144 It may be objected that Matthew, in saying that this discourse was delivered sitting on a mountain, is contradicted by Luke, who says, that Jesus was standing on a plain. Luke vi. 17. But Dr. Clarke, on this latter place, has suggested that Jesus “being pressed with great multitudes of people, might retire from them again to the top of the hill.” And Dr. Priestley observes that “Matthew’s saying that Jesus was _sat down_ after he had gone up the mountain, and Luke’s saying that he stood on the plain, when he healed the sick before the discourse, are no inconsistencies.” Harm. p. 83. The whole picture is striking. Jesus ascends a mountain, employs the night in prayer, and having thus solemnly invoked the divine blessing, authoritatively separates the twelve apostles from the mass of his disciples. He descends, and heals, in the plain, all among a great multitude, collected from various parts by the fame of his miraculous power. Having thus created attention, he satisfies the desire of the people to hear his doctrine; and retiring first to the mountain whence he came, that his attentive hearers might follow him, and might better arrange themselves before him. Sacro digna silentio Mirantur _omnes_ dicere. _Hor_. NEWCOME. The different accounts of the Sermon on the Mount may be reconciled, by considering that Mathew wrote chiefly for the Hebrew Christians; and it was therefore important for him to bring out, in full, the manner in which our Lord enforced the spiritual nature of his dispensation and doctrine, in opposition to the mere letter of the Jewish law, and the teaching and practice of Scribes and Pharisees; which he does particularly and with many examples; while Luke, on the contrary, wrote chiefly for Gentile Christians, to whom the contrast with the Jewish law was of less interest; and therefore he omits those parts of the discourse, and dwells only upon those which were of practical importance to all. ROBINSON. NEWCOME. 145 The Greek word here employed is said to be derived from the Persians, among whom the king’s messengers or posts were called _Angari_. These had the royal authority for pressing horses, ships, and even men, to assist them in the business on which they were sent. The word therefore signifies, to be compelled by violence to do any particular service, especially of the public kind, by the king’s authority. And the sentiment is a lesson of patience and gentleness under severe exactions from man. _Lightfoot, apud_ A. CLARKE, _in loc_. SIR J. CHARDIN’S Travels, Vol. i. p. 238, 257. 146 Calvin says that Matthew, being more brief, introduces the centurion himself as speaking; and that Luke expresses more at large his sending by his friends; but that the sense of both is the same. _Harm_. p. 124. (Toinard quotes Exod. xviii. 6, where the words related as spoken by Jethro, were evidently a message sent by him to Moses. _Harm_. 147.) Considering then the sameness of the scene, of the person, of the words, and of the transaction, I cannot but conclude with Grotius, that the miracle is one and the same, related in general by Matthew, and with greater accuracy by Luke. NEWCOME. 147 The nature of our Lord’s ministry, as it now appeared, so unlike what John as a Jew expected, may have surprised and perplexed him. And his own misfortune, coming upon this disappointment and perplexity, would increase his doubt and embarrassment. His faith was shaken;—the question implies no more;—and he sent that his doubts might be removed, and his faith confirmed. Jesus therefore merely referred John to the miracles he was doing, and the prophecies which spake of him, and which were fulfilled by those miracles. Bp. SUMNER, in loc. 148 Is. xxxv. 5, seq. 149 Mal. iii. 1. 150 Mal. iv. 5. 151 We here learn that the demoniac was both blind and dumb. St. Luke omits the former circumstance, but does not contradict it. NEWCOME. 152 An accurate reader will observe that Matt. xii. 22, and Luke xi. 14, show the general occasion of the blasphemy against Jesus; and that Matt. xii. 23, shews the particular occasion of it, the multitude alarming the Jewish rulers by their question whether Jesus were the Christ. No cause for the absurd and impious insinuation of the Scribes and Pharisees is assigned by St. Mark: however, he suggests an important circumstance, that they came from Jerusalem to watch the conduct of Jesus. The latter part of Luke viii. 19, shows that his relations were not able to enter the house on account of the press. Thus one Evangelist is wonderfully supplemental to another by notations of time, place, and other circumstances; and the strictest propriety and agreement result from diligently comparing them. NEWCOME. 153 The writer of a false narrative would either have omitted to mention the request for a sign, or would have related that it was complied with. He would never have exposed his Master to the suspicion of a want of power. See also, Matt. xvi. 1. 154 Jonah i. 17. 155 Jonah iii. 4, 5. 156 1 Kings x. 1 seq. 157 This omission may seem inconsistent with the character of Jesus, who appears to have generally complied with all the innocent usages of his countrymen; and of course it may be adduced as an objection against the veracity of the Evangelist. Luke simply records the fact, however it may seem to make against the character of his Master, or his own veracity. But Mark, vii. 3-9, in a manner equally incidental and without design, discloses the truth that this washing was superstitious, and connected with the dangerous error of placing the traditions of the elders on equal footing with the commands of God. Where there was danger of his practice being misinterpreted, our Lord withheld his compliance, even in things indifferent. See Bp. SUMNER on Luke, Lect. 41. 158 Gen. iv. 8; 2 Chron. xxiv. 20, seq. 159 The autumnal rains in Palestine come mostly from the west or south-west. ROBINSON’S Biblical Researches, vol. ii. p. 97. The incidental allusion here made to that fact, would hardly have been made by a writer of fiction. 160 Is. vi. 9, 10. 161 Ps. lxxviii. 2. 162 This is made consistent with the other Evangelists, by reading “Gadarenes.” If Gergasa was subordinate to Gadara, the metropolis of Perea, as Cellarius and Reland judge, and St. Mark did not write in Judea, what wonder that he chose the more general name, which was best known in the world? But Cellarius from Eusebius takes notice that some esteemed Gergasi, so Eusebius writes it, and Gadara two names of the same city; and this he thinks was the sentiment of the Syriac translator. To this Sir Richard Ellis most inclines, in his “Fortuita Sacra.” TOWNSON, p. 72. In Matthew mention is made of two demoniacs; in Mark and Luke of one only. Here Le Clerc’s maxim is undoubtedly true: Qui plura narrat, pauciora complectitur: qui pauciora memorat, plura non negat. _Harm_. p. 524. We may collect a reason from the Gospels themselves, why Mark and Luke mention only one demoniac; because, one only being grateful for the miracle, his cure only was recorded by the two Evangelists, who mention this gratitude, and who are more intent on inculcating the moral, than on magnifying our Lord’s power. NEWCOME. 163 There is no contradiction here between Matth. and Mark. The demoniacs met Jesus on the shore, as he came out of the ship. Luke viii. 27. The swine were within sight, on the ascending ground, Luke viii. 32, at the side of the mountain, Mark v. 11, which was at some distance from the shore where they stood. Matth. viii. 30. 164 Since swine were held in abhorrence by the Jews, how happened a herd of them to be feeding by the sea of Tiberias? The answer shows the accuracy of the Evangelist and his intimate knowledge of the local circumstances of Judea; for it appears from Josephus, Antiq. xvii. 11, 4, that _Gadara_ was a _Grecian city_, the inhabitants of which, therefore, were not Jews. BLUNT, Veracity, &c. sect. ii. 6. 165 Here is a reference to an Eastern custom, which affords internal evidence of the truth of the narrative. The master sat on a higher seat, and the scholars sat at his feet. Sitting at the feet, was the posture of a learner; and indicated the reverence and submission due to the teacher. Thus Moses says of the people, to whom God gave the law from Mount Sinai,—“they sat down at thy feet.” Deut. xxxiii. 3. Isaiah, speaking of Abraham, who was taught of God, says “he called him to his foot.” Is. xli. 2. Mary “sat at Jesus’s feet and heard his words.” Luke x. 39. Paul was brought up “at the feet of Gamaliel;” Acts xxii. 3; studied law with him. And the restored maniac sat down at Jesus’s feet, in the posture of a humble learner, desiring no other wisdom than to be taught of him. 166 Both Mark and Luke state that this was in Matthew’s own house; and Luke calls it a great feast, made in honour of Jesus. The omission of this fact by Matthew, not only shows his modesty and humility, but adds much to the weight of evidence in his favour, both as a man, and as a witness. See BLUNT’S Veracity of the Gospels, sect. i. 4. 167 Hos. vi. 6; 1 Sam. xv. 22. 168 Neither of the Evangelists expressly mentions the death of Joseph; yet from all four of them it may indirectly be inferred to have happened while Jesus was yet alive. Comp. Luke viii. 19, John ii. 12, and xix. 25-27. Such harmony as this could not have been the effect of concert. See BLUNT’S Veracity, &c. sect. i. 7. 169 Commentators have noted two inconsistent circumstances in this section. In Matthew, _shoes are_ forbidden; in Mark the Apostles are commanded to be shod with _sandals_. But the true solution seems to be this, that the Apostles should not furnish themselves with spare garments, and should wear the simplest covering for their feet. “Non vult ullis rebus studiose comparatis onerari.” Beza. See Newcome, in loc. 170 The synagogues were used, not only for divine service, but for holding courts of justice, especially for ecclesiastical affairs; and the lesser punishments, such as whipping, were inflicted in the synagogue, immediately after sentence, as the burning in the hand was formerly inflicted in England, upon praying the benefit of clergy. JENNINGS, Ant. p. 376. Such an allusion as this would not be likely to have been found in a work of fiction. 171 Mic. vii. 6. 172 Matth. xiv. 2, _unto his servants_. Matthew alone mentions, and without any apparent reason for such minuteness, that Herod addressed his remark to his _servants_ it. Luke, in the parallel passage, says he _heard of all that was done by him_; but by referring to Luke viii. 3, and to Acts xiii. 1, we find that Christ had followers from among the household of the very prince, with whom Herod was likely to converse on a subject in which they were better informed than himself. BLUNT, Veracity, &c., sec. i. 8. 173 Here is a very natural passing allusion to what we learn from Josephus was a settled custom in the family of Herod; namely, the making of a feast on his birth-day, at which the officers of his government were guests. JOSEPHUS, Ant. xix. vii. § 1. 174 Mark incidentally mentions the great multitude coming and going, and the purpose of Jesus to withdraw _awhile_. The occasion of this great multitude of _travellers_ is stated in the like incidental manner by John, vi. 4, that the _passover_ was nigh at hand; and hence, if Jesus withdrew awhile, the throng would be drawn off towards Jerusalem. These undesigned coincidences tend to verify both the narratives. Blunt, Veracity, &c. sect. i. 13. 175 Why Jesus addressed this question to Philip, and why John mentioned so unimportant a fact, is not here explained. Nor does Luke indicate any reason for his own statement of the place where this miracle was wrought, namely, near Bethsaida. But John, in another place, (ch. i. 44,) with apparently as little reason, gratuitously states that Philip was of Bethsaida; and this fact renders both the others intelligible and significant. Jesus, intending to furnish bread for the multitude by a miracle, first asked Philip, who belonged to the city and was perfectly acquainted with the neighbourhood, whether bread could be procured there. His answer amounts to saying that it was not possible. These slight circumstances, thus collected together, constitute very cogent evidence of the veracity of the narrative, and evince the reality of the miracle itself. See Blunt, Veracity, &c. sect. i. 13. 176 In Luke, Jesus commands that the people should be made to sit down by _fifties_. In Mark it is said that they sat down _by hundreds and by fifties_. Piscator, and Pearce, in a dissertation at the end of his comment on St. Paul’s Epistles, say that they sat an hundred in front, and fifty deep; which very satisfactorily solves the seeming variation. NEWCOME. 177 This seemingly idle inquiry becomes important as a note of veracity in the narrator, when compared with the account of Matthew. John indeed tells us, v. 18, that the wind blew a gale, but he does not state from what quarter. He also says that there were boats from Tiberias, near the place where the miracle of bread was wrought, v. 23, but this does not at all explain the inquiry of the people how Jesus came to Capernaum. But Matthew states that “the wind was contrary,” that is, west, Matth. xiv. 22. This fact, and the geographical position of the places, explains the whole. The miracle was wrought near Bethsaida, on the east side of the lake. The people saw the disciples take the only boat which was there, and depart for Capernaum, which was on the west side of the lake, and saw that Jesus was not with them. In the night it blew a tempest from the west. In the morning, the storm being over, the people crossed over to Capernaum and found Jesus already there. Well might they ask him, with astonishment, how he came thither. For though there were boats over from Tiberias, which was also on the west side of the lake, yet he could not have returned in one of them, for the wind would not have permitted them to cross the lake. BLUNT, Veracity of the Gospels, sect. i. 17. 178 Ps. lxxviii. 24. Ex. xvi. 15. 179 Isa. liv. 13. Jer. xxxi. 33, seq. 180 Ex. xvi. 15. 181 The truth of the Gospels has been argued from the _confessions_ they contain. On this verse Paley asks, “Was it the part of a writer, who dealt in suppression and disguise, to put down _this_ anecdote?” _Evid._ 255. 182 The admission of Judas Iscariot into the domestic and confidential circle of our Lord, was the result of profound and even of divine wisdom. It showed that Jesus was willing to throw open his most secret actions, discourses, and views not merely to his devoted friends, but to a sagacious and hardened enemy. If Judas had ever discovered the least fault in the character or conduct of Jesus, he certainly would have disclosed it;—he would not have publicly confessed that he had betrayed innocent blood, and have sunk down in insupportable anguish and despair. See TAPPIN’S Lect. on Eccl. Hist. ii. 183 The traditions of the elders were unwritten ordinances of indefinite antiquity, the principal of which, as the Pharisees alleged, were delivered to Moses in the mount, and all of which were transmitted through the High Priests and Prophets, down to the members of the great Sanhedrim in their own times; and from these, as the Jews say, they were handed down to Gamaliel, and ultimately to Rabbi Jehudah, by whom they were digested and committed to writing, toward the close of the second century. This collection is termed the Mishna; and in many cases it is esteemed among the Jews as of higher authority than the law itself. In like manner, there are said to be many Christians, at the present day, who receive ancient traditionary usages and opinions as authoritative exponents of Christian doctrine. They say that the preached gospel was before the written gospel; and that the testimony of those who heard it is entitled to equal credit with the written evidence of the Evangelists; especially as the latter is but a brief record, while the oral preaching was a more full and copious announcement of the glad tidings. These traditions, both of the Jewish and the Christian Church, seem to stand _in pari ratione_, the arguments in favour of the admissibility and effect of the one, applying with the same force, in favour of the other. All these arguments may be resolved into two grounds, namely, contemporaneous practice subsequently and uniformly continued; and contemporaneous declarations, as part of the _res gestæ_, faithfully transmitted to succeeding times. It is alleged that those to whom the law of God was first announced, best knew its precise import and meaning, and that therefore their interpretation and practice, coming down concurrently with the law itself, is equally obligatory. But this argument assumes what cannot be admitted; for it still remains to be shown that those who first heard the law, when orally announced, had any better means of understanding it than those to whom the same words were afterwards read. The Ten Commandments were spoken in the hearing of Aaron and all the congregation of Israel; immediately after which they made and worshipped a golden calf. Surely this will not be adduced as a valid contemporaneous exposition of the second commandment. The error of the argument lies in the nature of the subject. The human doctrine of contemporaneous exposition is applicable only to human laws and the transactions of men, as equals, and not to the laws of God. Among men, when _their own_ language is doubtful and ambiguous, _their own_ practice is admissible, to expound it; because both the language and the practice are but the outward and visible signs of the meaning and intention of one and the same mind and will, which inward meaning and intention is the thing sought after. It is on the same ground, that, where a statute, capable of divers interpretations, has uniformly been acted upon in a certain way, this is held a sufficient exposition of its true intent. In both cases it is the conduct of _the parties_ themselves which is admitted to interpret their own language; expressed, in cases of contract, by themselves in person, and in statutes, through the medium of the legislators, who were their agents and representatives; and in both cases, it is merely the interpretation of what a man says, by what he does. But this rule has never been applied, in the law, to the language of any other person than the party himself; never, to the command or direction of his superior or employer. And even the language of the _parties_, when it is contained in a sealed instrument, is at this day held incapable of being expounded by their actions, on account of the greater solemnity of the instrument. See Baynham _v_. Guy’s Hospital, 3 Vesey’s Rep. 295. Eaton _v_. Lyon, Ibid. 690, 694. The practice of men, therefore, can be no just exponent of the law of God. If they have mistaken the meaning of his command from the beginning, the act of contravention remains a sin in the last transgressor, as well as the first; for the word of God cannot be changed or affected by the gloss of human interpretation. The other ground, namely, that the testimony of those who heard Jesus and his apostles preach, is of equal authority with the Scriptures, being contemporaneous declarations, and parts of the _res gestae_, and therefore admissible in aid of the exposition of the written word, is equally inconsistent with the sound and settled rules of law respecting writings. When a party has deliberately committed his intention and meaning to writing, the law regards the writing as the sole repository of his mind and intention, and does not admit any oral testimony to alter, add to, or otherwise affect it. The reasons for this rule are two; first, because the writing is the more solemn act, by the party himself, designed to prevent mistake, and to remain as the perpetual memorial of his intention; and, secondly, because of the great uncertainty and weakness of any secondary evidence. For no one can tell whether the by-standers heard precisely what was said, nor whether they heard it all, nor whether they continued to remember it with accuracy until the time when they wrote it down, or communicated it to those who wrote it; to say nothing of the danger of their mixing up the language of the speaker with what was said by others, or with their own favourite theories. And where the witnesses were not the original auditors of what was said, no one knows how much the truth may have suffered from the many channels through which it has passed, in coming from the first speaker to the last write or witness. On all these accounts, the law rejects oral testimony of what the parties said, in regard to anything that has already been solemnly committed to writing by the parties themselves, and rejects the secondary evidence of hearsay, when evidence of a higher degree, as, for example, a written declaration of the party, can be obtained. Now, inasmuch as the writings of the Evangelists and Apostles were penned under the inspiration of the Holy Spirit, why should not the documentary evidence of the Gospel, thus drawn up by them, be treated with at least as much respect as other written documents? If they were inspired to write down those great truths for a perpetual memorial to after ages, then this record is the primary evidence of those truths. It is the word of God, penned by his own dictation, and sealed, as it were, with his own seal. If it were a man’s word and will, thus solemnly written, no verbal or secondary evidence could be admitted, by the common law, to explain, add to, or vary it; nothing could be engrafted upon it; nor could any person be admitted to testify what he heard the party say, in regard to what was written. The courts would at once reject all such attempts, and confine themselves strictly to the writing before them, the only inquiry being as to the meaning of the language contained in that document, and not as to what the party may elsewhere have spoken. The law presumes that the writing alone is the source to which he intended that resort should be had, in order to ascertain his meaning. But by calling in the fathers, with their traditions, to prove what Christ and his Apostles taught, beyond what is solemnly recorded in the Scriptures, the principle of this plain and sound rule of law is violated; resort is had to secondary evidence of the truths of our religion, when the primary evidence is already at hand; and the pure fountain is deserted for the muddy stream. 184 Matthew was not only a Jew himself, but it is evident, from the whole structure of his Gospel, especially from his numerous references to the Old Testament, that he wrote for Jewish readers.—_Paley_. But the explanation here given by Mark is an additional evidence of the fact asserted by Jerome and Clement of Alexandria, that he wrote at Rome, for the benefit chiefly of the converts of that nation. 185 Ex. xxii 12. Ex. xxi. 17. Deut. v. 16. 186 Is. xxix. 13. 187 Mark designates the woman by the country where she dwelt; Matthew calls her a woman of Canaan, because of the people to whom she belonged. Thus they do not contradict each other. The treatment of this woman by our Lord has been the subject of remark, as evasive and insincere. But it was far otherwise. He had a twofold object; to call the attention of his disciples to the fact of her being a foreigner, in order to show them that his ministry, though primarily and chiefly to the Jews, was in truth designed for the benefit of the Gentiles also; and to draw out, as it were, the great faith of the woman, in order to teach them the effect of faithful and persevering supplication. To attain these objects, he took the direct and most obvious method. In this instance also, as in those of the centurion, (Matth. viii. 5-13,) and of the Samaritan leper, (Luke xvii. 16-18,) he indicated that the gospel would be more readily received by the Gentiles than by the Jews. See A. CLARKE, _in loc_. NEWCOME, Obs. on our Lord. p. 165. Bp. Horsley’s Sermons on this subject, Serm. xxxvii. and xxxviii. p. 444-464. 188 Cellarius and Lightfoot think that Dalmanutha and Magdala were neighbouring towns. See Calmet, voc. Dalmanutha. It is probable that Dalmanutha and Magdala were in Gaulanitis, towards the south-east part of the lake. See Matth. xv. 21; Mark vii. 24. NEWCOME. 189 Our Lord’s words, Matth. xvi. 8, 10, and Mark viii. 17, 20, are the same in substance, though differently modified. The evangelists are not scrupulous in adhering to the precise words used by Christ. They often record them in a general manner, non numerantes, sed tanquem appendentes; regarding their purport, and not superstitiously detailing them. However, in this place, after uttering what Matthew relates, Jesus may have asked the questions recorded by Mark. NEWCOME. 190 The notice of this circumstance affords a proof of the veracity of the evangelist; for he barely states a fact having no apparent connexion with any other in his narrative. The reason of it is found in facts stated by the other evangelists. The people of Bethsaida had already witnessed the miracles of our Lord, but these only served to increase their rage against him; and they were therefore abandoned to the consequences of their of their unbelief. Matth. xi. 21. 191 The phrase _three days and three nights_ is equivalent to _three days_, three natural days of twenty-four hours. Gen. i. 5; Dan. viii. 14. Comp. Gen. vii. 4. 17. (It is a received rule among the Jews, _that a part of a day is put for the whole_; so that whatsoever is done in any part of the day, is properly said to be done that day. 1 Kings xx. 29; Esth. iv. 16. “When eight days were accomplished for the circumcision of the child,” &c. Yet the day of his birth and of his circumcision were two of these eight days. _Whitby_, quoted by SCOTT, on Matth. xii. 40.) Grotius establishes this way of reckoning the _parts_ of the first and third days for _two days_, by Aben Ezra on Lev. xii. 3. (In proof that the phrase “_after three days,_” is sometimes equivalent to “_on the third day,_” compare Deut. xiv. 28 with xxvi. 12; 1 Sam. xx. 12 with v. 19; 2 Chron. x. 5 with v. 12; Matth. xxvi. 2 with xxvii. 63, 64; Luke ii. 21 with i. 59.) St. Luke omits our Lord’s sharp reproof of Peter, and the occasion of it; though he records the discourse in consequence of it. Le Clerc’s 12th canon is “Qui pauciora habet, non negat plura dicta aut facta; modo ne ulla sit exclusionis nota.” Perhaps the disciple and companion of that apostle who had withstood Peter to his face, Gal. ii. 11, willingly made this omission, as he omits some aggravating circumstances in Peter’s denial of Christ, Luke xxii. 60, though he carefully records the greatness of his sorrow, v. 62. NEWCOME. 192 It has been shown, § 74, that “_after six days_” may signify on the sixth day. But we are not hence to conclude that the phrase has _always_ such a signification. Here it means six days complete, after the discourse recorded in § 74. The eight days mentioned by St. Luke include that of Peter’s reproof and of the transfiguration; which two days Matthew and Mark exclude. Macknight furnishes us with the following apposite reference to Tacitus: Hist. i. 29. Piso says, _Sextus dies agitur—ex quo—Cæsar adscitus sum;_ and yet, § 48 of the same book, Tacitus speaks of Piso as _quatriduo Cæsar_. Grotius on Matth. xvii. 1, has another solution; Quod Lucas dicit, tale est quale cum vulgò dicimus _post septimanam circiter. Nam Judæos octo dies_ appellasse id quod ab uno sabbato est ad alterum apparet, Joan. 20, 26, &c. NEWCOME. 193 It is remarkable that Luke assigns no reason for this extraordinary silence; leaving his narrative in this place imperfect and obscure, which an impostor would not have done. It is explained by the command of Jesus, related by Matthew and Mark. 194 The original word is _didrachma_, denoting, not tribute or tax in general, but a specific and particular offering which every Jew paid to God. See Josephus, Ant. xviii. x. § 1. This minute accuracy of the evangelist is worthy of note, as an indication of veracity. 195 The twelve apostles and the seventy disciples were commissioned and sent forth at different times. Hence the person here alluded to may, for aught that appears, have been one of the seventy, not personally known to John and to those who were with him. _Letters on Evil Spirits_, p. 39. 196 Here Jesus says, He that is not against us is for us; but in Matth. xii. 30, he says, He that is not with me is against me. Grotius regards both as proverbial sayings;—Proverbia in utramque partem usurpata, veritatem suam habent pro materia cui aptantur;—and alludes to similar forms in Prov. xxvi. 4, 5. NEWCOME. 197 2 Kings iv. 29. 198 This was near the passover; when Jesus, going to celebrate it at Jerusalem, plainly indicated that men ought to worship _there_; contrary to the practice of the Samaritans, who, in opposition to the Holy City, had set up a temple at Gerazim. Hence the cause of their hostility to him as well as to all others travelling in that direction _at that season_. This account perfectly harmonizes with the respectful deportment of the Samaritans towards him at the time of his interview with the woman at Jacob’s well, John iv. 1-42; for he was then coming _from_ Judea, and it was not the season of resorting thither for any purposes of devotion. John iv. 35. BLUNT, Veracity, &c., sect. i. 16. 199 Lev. xii. 3. 200 On this day, which was one of great joy and festivity, it was the custom of the Jews to fetch water from the pool Siloam, some of which they drank with loud acclamations of joy and thanksgiving; and some they brought to the altar, in commemoration of the miraculous relief of their forefathers, when thirsting in the wilderness; and some they brought as a drink-offering to God, to pray for rain against the following seed-time. See BENSON’S Life of Christ, p. 412. JENNINGS, Ant. p. 495. The existence of this custom, thus remotely alluded to, gives great truthfulness to the narrative. 201 Isa. lv. 1, and lviii. 11, and xliv. 3. Zech. xiii. 1, and xiv. 8. 202 Ps. lxxxix. 4, and cxxxii. 11. Mic. v. 2. 203 It is apparent, from various incidental allusions in the Evangelists, that it was the habit of our Lord at this period to spend his days in Jerusalem, in teaching the people and healing the sick, and his nights in the Mount of Olives, in prayer. Yet it is nowhere directly asserted; and the manner in which it is slightly mentioned or alluded to by the sacred writers, is worthy of particular notice, as a proof of their veracity, never met with, in works of fiction. Compare Matth. xxiv. 3, and xxvi. 30; Mark xiii. 3, and xiv. 26; Luke vi. 12, and xxi. 37, 38, and xxii. 39; John viii. 1, 2, and xviii. 1. 204 Lev. xx. 10. Deut. xxii. 21. 205 The Romans, in settling the provincial government of Judea, which they had conquered, deprived the Jewish tribunals of the power of inflicting capital punishments. John xviii. 31. The law of Moses, however, condemned adulterers to be stoned to death. “This woman had been caught in the very fact. Jesus must therefore determine against the law, which inflicted death; or against the Romans, who suffered them not to put any body to death, and who would still less have permitted it for such a crime as adultery, which was not capital among them.—If he condemned not the adulteress _to death_ when he was alone with her, he hereby teaches us to submit to the civil laws of the places where we live.” BASNAGE, _Hist. Jud_. lib. v. c. § 2. 206 When one was condemned to death, those witnesses, whose evidence decided the sentence, inflicted the first blows, in order to add the last degree of certainty to their evidence. DUPIN, Trial of Jesus, p. 7. SALVADOR, Histoire des Institutions de Moise, &c. Liv. iv. ch. ii. p. 76. 207 John vii. 28, is consistent with John viii. 14. “Ye both know my transactions among you, and whence, as a man, I derive my descent; (ch. vi. 42,) and yet there is a sense in which ye know not whence I am, as I came not,” _&c. Kai_ is used in the same manner, Matth. ix. 19. _And yet wisdom_, &c. See also John ix. 30. In this latter sense (ch. viii. 14,) the Jews knew not whence Jesus came, knew not his divine mission, and that he would return to the Father at his ascension. NEWCOME. 208 Deut. xvii. 6, and xix. 15. 209 The Jews who are said to have believed on Jesus (John viii. 30) are not the same with those whom our Lord accuses of seeking to kill him, ver. 40, nor with those who insulted him, ver. 48, &c., although these are not distinguished from the others in the narrative of John, who always mentions the Jews indiscriminately as speaking with Jesus. Cler. Harm. 528. NEWCOME. 210 Deut, vi. 5. Lev. xix. 18, and xviii. 5. 211 The professional reader will not fail to observe the wisdom of this reply. The lawyer sought to learn from Jesus the terms of the condition on which eternal life could be attained; and was made to answer for himself that, by the law, it was attainable by nothing short of the highest degree of love, to God and to his neighbour. The lawyer thus was reminded, out of his own code, that, this being a condition precedent, he could have no title to that which was promised, unless he fully performed every part of the condition; and that in this sense, whosoever offended in one point, or was deficient in performing any part of the condition, was guilty of all—lost the benefit of all. If he murmured at the hardship of losing the reward of all the good deeds he had done, merely for the omission to do a little more; the well-known rule of law and of reason would teach him that nothing is to be allowed for acts of past performance of a condition precedent, unless they are beneficial to the party for whom they are performed. 212 A note of minute accuracy in the historian, Jericho being situated in the plain or valley of Jordan, and Jerusalem being among the mountains of Judea. 213 An incidental and very natural allusion to the well-known custom of that country. For in those hot regions, men travel in the cool of the evening and night, and rest in the daytime; looking for refreshment, if they are not among total strangers, to the hospitality of friends. 214 Ps. lxxxii. 6. Ex. xxii. 7, seq. 215 Ps. lxix. 25. Jer. xii. 7, and xxii. 5. 216 Gen. vii. 4, 7. 217 Gen. xix. 15, seq. 218 Gen xix. 26. 219 The two Evangelists go on to relate our Lord’s observations about divorce and marriage; they agree in substance, which is sufficient; though they differ in the form of the dialogue, neither adhering scrupulously to the exact manner in which the words passed, though we may learn it, by comparing both. Thus Matt. v. 9, reduces to a plain assertion, what Mark informs us was a reply to an inquiry made by the disciples apart. Or, we may suppose with Le Clerc, that this assertion was first advanced to the Pharisees, and then repeated to the disciples. NEWCOME. 220 Gen. i. 27. 221 Gen. ii. 24. 222 Deut. xxiv. 1. 223 The practice of divorcing the husband, unwarranted by the law, had been introduced, as Josephus informs us, (Antiq. XV. vii. 10,) by Salome, sister of Herod the Great, who sent a bill of divorce to her husband Costobarus; which bad example was afterwards followed by Herodias and others. Campbell. This natural allusion to an existing illegal custom is in perfect harmony with the whole history, it being true; but it seldom if ever has a parallel in the annals of forgery. 224 Ex. xx. 12, seq. Lev. xix. 18. 225 As all three came to Jesus, the action of the sons expressed, that they joined in the petition uttered by the mother. They are therefore represented as saying what was said with their consent, and probably by their suggestion. Luke xix. 11, will show how suitable this request was to the time, according to the ideas of our Lord’s disciples. NEWCOME. 226 According to St. Mark, Jesus comes to Jericho; by which may be meant that he is a temporary inhabitant of that city. See Mark vi. 1, and viii. 22. Jesus therefore may be represented, (Matt. xx. 29; Mark x. 46,) not as _finally leaving_ Jericho for Jerusalem, but as _occasionally going out_ of Jericho; in which city he had made some abode, it matters not for how few days. See Mark xi. 19. Jericho was a very considerable city; and we do not read that it was visited by our Lord at any other time. We may therefore suppose that Jesus, accompanied by his disciples and the multitude, and intent on his great work of propagating the gospel, went out of this city, knowing that a fit occasion of working a miracle would present itself; and that on his return, as he drew nigh unto Jericho, (Luke xviii. 35,) he restored the blind men to sight. It is likewise probable that Jesus, having given this proof of his divine mission, or foreseeing that so great a miracle would create too much attention in the people, prudently and humbly passed through Jericho on his return to it, (Luke xix. 1,) and continued his journey to Jerusalem. As to the remaining difficulty, that Matthew mentions two blind men, and the other Evangelists only one, I must refer to Le Clerc’s maxim, before quoted; (see § 57, note): adding that Bartimeus may have been the more remarkable of the two, and the more eminent for his faith in Jesus. NEWCOME. 227 Here is a fine allusion to historical facts, first observed by Le Clerc. “Thus Herod the Great solicited the kingdom of Judea at Rome, (Jos. Antiq. Jud. XIV. xiv. 4, 5; XV. vi. 6, 7,) and was appointed king by the interest of Anthony with the senate; and afterwards he sailed to Rhodes, divested himself of his diadem, and received it again from Augustus. In like manner his sons Archelaus and Antipas repaired to the imperial city, that they might obtain the kingdom on their father’s death; and we read, (Jos. Antiq. Jud. XIV. xi. 1, and xiii. 2,) that the Jews sent an embassy thither, with accusations against Archelaus.” NEWCOME, Obs. on our Lord, p. 83. 228 Zech. ix. 9. 229 Thus acknowledging him to be their king; for this was a custom observed by the people when they found that God had appointed a man to the kingdom. When Jehu was anointed King by Elisha the prophet, at the command of God, and his captains knew what was done, _every man took his garment and spread it under him on the top of the steps, and blew the trumpets, saying Jehu is king_. 2 King ix. 13. A. CLARKE. See JENNINGS, Ant. vol. ii. p. 245. “_Thereon_,” that is, on the garments. The princes of Israel were forbidden to multiply _horses_ to themselves. Deut. xvii. 16, and xx. 1. This law was imposed as a standing mark of distinction between them and other nations; and a trial of prince and people, whether they had confidence in God their deliverer, who wanted neither horses nor footmen to fight his battles. It was observed for near four hundred years, until some time in the reign of Solomon; for David himself rode on a mule; as did Solomon also on the day of his coronation. 1 Kings i. 33, 34. See Judges x. 4, and xii. 14; 1 Saml. xxv. 20. Subsequently the kings of Israel and Judah violated this command, by copying the example of the neighbouring princes in the establishment of their cavalry. The displeasure of God for this offence is indicated by several of the prophets: Isaiah ii. 6, 7, and xxxi. 1; Hosea xiv. 3, and i. 7; Micah v. 10, 11.—In opposition to the character of these warlike and disobedient princes, it was predicted that Messiah would come as a just king, having salvation;—a deliverer—riding upon an ass, after the manner of the ancient deliverers of Israel, who came only in the strength and power of the Lord. Zech. ix. 9. See Bishop SHERLOCK’S Dissert. IV. MICHAELIS, vol. ii. pp. 439-449. 230 Ps. viii. 3. 231 Ps. cxviii. 26. 232 Isa. lvi. 7. Jer. vii. 11. 233 Matth. xxi. 20, _the disciples_. Mark xi. 21, _Peter_. These may be thus reconciled. Peter addresses himself to Jesus: the disciples turn their attention to the object; Jesus addresses all. Or, Peter’s remark may be attributed to all the disciples. See § 141. NEWCOME. 234 Many servants are sent; some of whom are beaten, some slain, some stoned. Here St. Matthew is more circumstantial than the other two Evangelists, who mention only one servant as sent, and one of the three injurious modes of treatment. Some suppose that this servant was chief among the rest. 235 Here Mark mentions one servant among the others, as stoned wounded in the head, and sent away dishonoured; and Luke selects the circumstance that that one was beaten. Then Mark and Luke mention a third message, about which Matthew is silent. But, “qui pauciora memorat, plura non negat.” St. Luke may be understood as saying that a mortal wound was inflicted on the third messenger. NEWCOME. 236 Ps. cxviii. 22. 237 Isa. viii. 14, seq. Zech. xii. 3. Dan. ii. 34, seq., 44, seq. 238 In the East, where the fashions of dress rarely if ever change, much of their riches consists in the number and splendour of their robes, or _caffetans_. Presents of garments are frequently alluded to in Scripture. Gen. xlv. 22. 2 Chron. ix. 24. Judges xiv. 12. 2 Kings v. 5. Ezra ii. 69. Neh. vii. 70, where “the Tirshatha gave five hundred and thirty priests’ garments.” Presents were considered as tokens of honour;—not meant as offers of payment or enrichment, (1 Sam. ix. 7); and especially presents of dresses. 1 Sam. xviii. 4. Luke xv. 22. _Tavernier_, p. 43, mentions a _nazar_, whose virtue so pleased a king of Persia, that he caused himself to be disappareled, and gave his own habit to the _nazar_, which is _the greatest honour a king of Persia can bestow on a subject_. Such presents are given by kings on great occasions, especially at the marriages of their children. The Sultan Achmet, at the marriage of his eldest daughter, “gave presents to above 20,000 persons.” Knolles’s Hist. of the Turks, p. 1311. So Ahasuerus “gave gifts, _according to the state of the king_.” Esth. ii. 18. The king gives his garment of honour _before_ the wearer is admitted into his presence;—De la Mottraye’s Trav. p. 199; (Does this illustrate Zech. iii. 3, 4?)—and would resent it if any, having received robes of him, should appear in his presence without wearing these marks of his liberality. And to refuse such favours, when offered, is considered as one of the greatest indignities. Sir John Chardin relates an instance where such a refusal cost a vizier his life. See 4 CALM. DICT. pp. 64, 126, 514. 239 Deut. xxv. 5. 240 Ex. iii. 6. 241 Here is a minute indication of St. Luke’s veracity, derived from his medical profession. No other Evangelist records this remark; but it would not be likely to escape the notice of a physician. See on Luke xxii. 44. 242 Deut. vi. 4, 5. 243 Lev. xix. 18. 244 Ps. cx. 1. 245 Gen. iv. 8. 2 Chron. xxiv. 20-22. 246 Ps. lxix. 26. Jer. xii. 7, and xxii. 5. 247 Ps. cxviii. 26. 248 2 Sam. vii. 13. Ps. lxxxix. 30, 37; cx. 4. 249 Is. liii. 1. 250 Is. vi. 10. 251 Is. vi. 1, seq. 252 No imposter would have warned his followers, as Jesus did, of the persecutions they would have to submit to. 253 Danl. ix. 27. 254 Is. xiii. 9, 10. Joel iii. 15. 255 Gen. vii. 4, seq. 256 Interrogatively and sarcastically. That is, Was such thy wicked opinion? Then “out of thine own mouth will I judge thee;” thou oughtest to have acted according to that opinion. Bp. SUMNER, _in loc_. 257 In St. John, Judas alone murmurs; in St. Matthew, the disciples have indignation; or, as St. Mark expresses it, some have indignation among themselves. Dr. Lardner says, Serm. v. 2, p. 316, “It is well known to be very common with all writers, to use the plural number when one person only is intended. Nor is it impossible that others might have some uneasiness about it, though they were far from being so disgusted at it as Judas was. And their concern for the poor was sincere; his was self-interested, and mere pretence.” See also Grotius _in loc_. NEWCOME. 258 It is nowhere asserted that the unction was of Jesus’s head _only_, or of his feet _only_. Both actions are consistent; and St. John, in his supplemental history, may very well have added the respectful conduct of Mary, that, after having anointed Jesus’s head, she proceeded to anoint his feet, and even to wipe them with her hair. Newcome. 259 The other Evangelists mention that indignation was caused by the supposed waste of the ointment: John fixes it upon Judas. That Judas went to the High Priest’s on the evening or night of our Wednesday, may be collected from Matth. xxvi. 14, 17, and the parallel places; and he seems to have acted partly from disgust at what had passed. The story has a remarkably apt connection with the preceding and subsequent history. The Jewish rulers consult how they may take Jesus by craft, and without raising a tumult among the people. An incident happens, which offends one of Jesus’s familiar attendants, who immediately repairs to the enemies of Jesus, and receives from them a bribe to betray him in the absence of the multitude. Newcome. 260 Here is a very natural, yet incidental recognition of a rule, universally respected among the Jews, that this feast was to be celebrated not alone, but by companies of not less than ten persons. See JOSEPHUS, Bell. Jud. vi. ix. § 3. BLUNT, Veracity, &c. Sect. ii. 8. 261 Ps. xli. 10. 262 Zech. xiii. 7. 263 The other Evangelists simply say, Before the cock crow.—It is observed, that the cock crows about midnight: and about the fourth watch, or about three in the morning, when that watch began. When _gallicinium (cock-crowing)_ stands alone, it means this latter time, which is referred to, Aristoph. Eccles. 390, Juv. Sat. ix. 107. The four Evangelists therefore denote the same time,—sc. galliciniis secundis, as Ammianus expresses it, 1. 22; and any part of the period thus marked out may be understood. See BOCHART de anim. pars, 2d. 119, and GROTIUS on Matth. xxvi. 34. NEWCOME. 264 In the animated language of the prophets, their predictions are often announced under the form of commands. The prophet Isaiah, in the sublime prediction he has given us of the fate of the king of Babylon, thus foretells the destruction of his family:—_Prepare slaughter for his children_, &c. Isa. xiv. 21. The prophet Jeremiah in like manner foretells the approaching destruction of the children of Zion: _Call for the mourning women, that they may come: and send for cunning women; and let them make haste, and take up a wailing_, &c. Jer. ix. 17, 18. There, matter of sorrow is predicted, by commanding the common attendants on mourning and lamentation to be gotten in readiness; here, warning is given of the most imminent dangers, by orders to make the customary preparation against violence, and to account a weapon more necessary than a garment. CAMPBELL, _in loc_. 265 Isa. liii. 12. 266 This account of the institution of the Lord’s Supper is corroborated by that of Paul, in 1 Cor. xi. 23-25, which is usually inserted by Harmonists in this place as parallel testimony; but as the plan of this work leads me to deal with the four Gospels alone, the insertion of other parts of Scripture in the text, here and elsewhere, is omitted. 267 The Evangelists have determined, by some general expressions, the order of the following events between the sitting down to the paschal supper, and the going to Gethsemane. Before the eating of the paschal lamb, Jesus rises from supper to wash the disciples’ feet. John xiii. 1, 4. While they are eating, a declaration is made of Judas’s treachery, and the bread is instituted, Matt. xxvi. 21, 26. See also Mark. After, the cup is instituted, Luke xxii. 20; 1 Cor. xi. 25. But as to the particular and precise order of the facts and discourses during this period, Pilkington’s words relating to one of them are applicable to all. “It is observable that St. Luke mentions the institution of the communion before the declaration of Judas’s treachery; whereas the other Evangelists place these in a different order. But it is a liberty I think very allowable in any historian, to neglect taking notice of the exact order of all the facts, when he is only giving a general account of what was done at a certain time. And if so, whichsoever was the true successive order, there can be no just imputation upon any of the Evangelists for neglecting to observe it in the narration.” Harm. p. 52. NEWCOME. 268 The use of the word _testament_, (_diatheke_,) in a sense involving also the idea of a _covenant_, and in connexion with the circumstances of a compact, has greatly perplexed many English readers of the Bible. The difficulty occurs in Matt. 26, 28, and the parallel places, where our Lord employs the word _testament_, or last will, in connexion with the sacrificial shedding of his own blood; a ceremony which, by means of a suitable animal, usually was adopted among the ancients, upon the making of the most solemn engagements; and instead of which, the mutual partaking of the sacrament of the Lord’s Supper, by the contracting parties, was substituted among Christians in later times. The same embarrassment occurs, perhaps in a greater degree, in the exposition of several passages in the eighth and ninth chapters of the Epistle to the Hebrews, (manifestly written by a profound lawyer, be he Paul or Apollos), where he uses language applicable indifferently both to a covenant _inter vivos_ and a last will. For with us, a testament is simply a declaration of the last will of the testator, in regard to the disposition of his property after his decease, irrespective of any consent, or even knowledge, at the time, on the part of him to whom the estate is given; while a covenant requires the mutual consent of both parties, as essential to its existence. The one is simply the _ultima voluntas_ of an individual, the other is the _aggregatio mentium_ of both or all. The solution of this difficulty belongs rather to theologians, whose province it is by no means intended here to invade; but perhaps a reference to the laws and usages in force in Judea in the times of our Saviour and his Apostles may furnish some aid, which a lawyer might contribute without transgressing the limit of his profession. It is first to be observed that the municipal laws of Greece and Rome were strikingly similar; those of Greece having been freely imported into the Roman jurisprudence. In like manner, the similarity of the Grecian laws and usages with those extant in Asia Minor, indicated a common origin; and thus, what Greece derived from Egypt and the states of Asia Minor, these states, after many ages, received again as the laws of their Roman masters. It should also be remembered that Palestine had been reduced to a Roman province some years before the time of our Saviour; long enough, indeed, to have become familiar with Roman laws and usages, even had they been previously unknown; and that Paul, to whom the Epistle to the Hebrews is generally attributed, was himself a thorough-bred lawyer, well versed in the customs of his country, whether ancient or modern. Among those nations, the civil magistrate often exercised the functions of the priesthood, these dignities being in some respects identical; and thus, whatever was transacted before the magistrate, might naturally seem to partake of the character of an act of religion. Covenants were always made with particular formalities, and to those of graver nature, religious solemnities were often superadded. They were frequently confirmed by an oath, the most solemn form of which was taken standing before the altar; and whosoever swore by the altar, swore by the sacrifice thereon, and was held as firmly bound as though he had passed between the dismembered parts of the victim. Of the latter kind was the oath, by which God confirmed his covenant with Abraham (Gen. xv.) when the visible light of his presence passed between the pieces which the patriarch had divided and laid “each piece one against another.” With these things in view, we may now look at some of the modes of transferring property, practised by the nations alluded to. Among the methods of alienation or sale of property by the owner, in his lifetime, was that which in the Roman law was termed _mancipatio_; a mode by which the vendor conveyed property to the purchaser, each party being present, either in person or by his agent, representative, or factor. Five witnesses were requisite, one of whom was called _libripens_, or the balance-holder. This form had its origin in the sale of goods by weight, but was gradually extended to all sales; and the practice was for the buyer to strike the balance with a piece of money called a _sestertius_, which was immediately paid over to the vendor as part of the price; and hence the expression _per æs et libram vendere_. Wills or testaments were made with great solemnity. One method among the Romans, probably common, in its principal traits, to the other nations before mentioned, was termed the testament _per æs et libram_, it being effected in the form of a sale. This mode seems to have been resorted to whenever the estate was given to a stranger, (_hæres extraneus_,) to the exclusion of the _hæres suus_, or _necessarius_, or, as we should say, the heir at law; and it was founded on the purchase of the estate by the adopted heir, who succeeded to the privileges of the child. The forms of a sale by _mancipatio_ were therefore scrupulously observed; the presence and agreement of the purchaser, either in person or by his representative or negotiator, being necessary to its validity. The reason for requiring this form was because it _involved a covenant_ on the part of the adopted heir or legatee, by which he became bound to pay all the debts of the testator. Having entered into this covenant, he had the best possible title in law to the inheritance, namely, that of a purchaser for a valuable consideration. Among the Greeks, and probably among the Romans also, this was transacted in the presence of a magistrate, who sanctioned it by his sentence of approval. This was the most ancient form of a will; and it does not seem to have been abrogated until the time of Constantine. Now, when our Saviour speaks of the _new testament in his blood_, or of his _blood of the new testament_, and when Paul uses similar forms of expression may not the figure have reference to the custom above stated? And if so, may not this custom guide us to the true meaning of the words? Does it intimate to us that the promised inheritance was first given to man, as it were by a testament in this ancient form, upon a covenant of _his own perfect obedience_ to every part of the law of God; that having broken this covenant, his title became forfeited; that the inheritance was afterwards promised, in the same manner, to every one, Jew or Gentile, upon a new covenant and condition, namely of a true _faith_ in Christ; a faith evinced in the fruits of a holy life; that this inheritance by a new testament and covenant was negociated, as it were, and obtained for man by the mediation of Jesus Christ, (“the mediator of the new testament,” Heb. 9. 15,) as the representative of all who should accept it by such faith, and their surety for the performance of its conditions; that it was purchased by _his_ obedience and solemnized by the sacrifice of himself as the victim? This solution is suggested with much diffidence. That it carries these passages clear of all difficulty is not pretended. The very nature of the subject renders it difficult of illustration by any reference to human affairs; and the embarrassment is proportionally increased, whenever the simile is pressed beyond its principal point of resemblance. See Ayliffe’s Pandect, pp. 349, 393, 367-369. Book iii. tit. xii. xv. Leges Atticæ, De Testamentis, &c. tit. vi. S. Petit. Comm. in Leges Attic. p. 479-481. Justin, Inst. lib. 2. tit. 10, § 1. Ibid. tit. 19, § 5, 6. Cooper’s Justinian, p. 487. Cod. lib. 6. tit. 23, 1. 15. Fuss’s Roman Antiq. ch. 1, § 87, 97, 103, 107, 183. Michaelis, LL. Moses, vol. 4, art. 302. Bp. Patrick, quoted in Bush’s Illustrations, p. 254. 269 Ps. lxix. 5. 270 Ps. xli. 9, and cix. 8, 17. 271 The strangeness of such a profusion of blood has been urged, first, against the probability, and then against the truth, of the narrative. But learned men have related instances of mental agony so great as to force the blood through the pores; and if this has ever occurred, it may well be believed to have occurred in the present case. See _Bloomfield_ and _A. Clarke_, in loc. It should be observed, however, that Luke does not directly affirm that it was blood. He only _compares_ the sweat to that of blood, using a term of similitude, (_quasi_ grumi sanguinis—_Beza_; _tanquam_ demissiones sanguinis—_Tremellius_; sicut guttæ sanguinis—_Vulg_. and _Molinaus_;) which may signify no more than that the drops of sweat were as large as drops of blood, which, from its viscidity, are very large. 272 No other Evangelist mentions the cause of their slumber, except Luke, who ascribes it to their sorrow. It is observable, that Luke was a physician, (Col. iv. 14,) and therefore well knew that deep mental distress frequently induced sleep. To this cause may perhaps be referred the fact, that persons condemned to die are often waked from sound sleep by the executioner. The internal evidence here afforded of the truth of Luke’s narrative, is corroborated by his notice of the bloody sweat, ver. 44, and of the miraculous healing of the ear of Malchus, ver. 51; facts which are not related by any other Evangelist, but which would naturally attract the attention of a physician. 273 Gen. ix. 6. 274 In the order of events, Jesus first voluntarily discriminates himself; after which Judas gives the agreed sign to his enemies. Newcome. 275 Lenfant and Bp. Pearce think that Peter was named by John, because he was then dead; and that he was not named by the other Evangelists because when they wrote he was living, and the action might have subjected him to public justice, or at least to reproach. NEWCOME. 276 Here is a minute indication of veracity, which would have been lost upon us but for the narrative of John. Matthew only states the fact that the maid in the porch recognized Peter as one of the disciples of Jesus; but John (xviii. 16,) informs us how she knew him to be so; namely, because he was brought in by John, who was a frequent guest at the house of her master the high priest. BLUNT, Veracity &c., Sect. i. 12, 18. 277 Probably by way of compliment to the past high priest who was also the father-in-law of Caiaphas. If this circumstance never happened, it is difficult to discover how the introduction of it could serve the purposes of fiction. See Roberts, Light Shining, &c. pp. 171, 172. 278 The seeming contradiction between Luke, who relates that it _was a man_ who charged Peter with being a follower of Jesus, and Matthew and Mark who state that he was accused by _a maid_, is reconciled by attending to the narrative of John, (xviii. 25,) who writes, “_They said_.” Whence it appears that there were several who spake on this occasion, and that each Evangelist refers to the accusation which made the deepest impression on his own mind. See MICHAELIS and Bp. MIDDLETON, cited in 4 HORNE’S _Introd_. p. 258, note 1. 279 Matthew and Mark relate Peter’s denials of Christ after his condemnation, and the insults consequent upon it. It is plain that they happened while the High Priest and council were sitting in judgment. But instances of recurring in this manner to what had been omitted in its proper place are common in the Gospels; and in this place the thread of the narration is preserved unbroken. It having been expressly mentioned by each Evangelist, that Peter would _thrice_ deny Jesus, we may conclude that each has related the _three_ denials which Jesus foretold. _Peter’s first denial_. Peter was _without_, or _beneath_, in the hall of Caiaphas’s house. Dr. Scott, on Matth. xxvi. 3, observes that _aule_ signifies an house, (Luke xi. 21,) and that emphatically it signifies the king’s house, or palace. But in Luke xxii. 55, it seems to signify a spacious apartment, probably the High Priest’s judgment-hall. It was the place in which Jesus stood before the High Priest, (Luke xxii. 61,) and had an _atrium_ or _vestibulum_ at its entrance. This was an unfit place for the tribunal of the High Priest at such an hour, (John xviii. 18.) Sir John Chardin says, “In the lower Asia the day is always hot; and in the height of summer the nights are as cold as at Paris in the month of March.” It remains therefore that we understand it of a spacious chamber, such as Shaw mentions, Travels, 4to. pp. 207, 8. Peter was not in the _higher_ part, where Jesus stood before the High Priest; but _without_ that division of the hall, and in the _lower_ part, with the servants and officers. The damsel, who kept the door, had entered into the hall when she charged Peter. _Peter’s second denial_. Peter, having once denied Jesus, naturally retired from the place where his accuser was, to the vestibule of the hall, (Matt. xxvi. 71); and it was the time of the first cock-crowing, or soon after midnight. After remaining here a short time, perhaps near an hour, another damsel sees him, and says to those who were standing by in the vestibule, that he was one of them. Peter, to avoid this charge, withdraws into the hall, and stands and warms himself, (John xviii. 25.) The damsel, and those to whom she had spoken, follow him; the communication between the places being immediate. Here a _man_ enforces the charge of the damsel, according to Luke; and _others_ urge it according to John, (though by him the plural may be used for the singular,) and Peter denies Jesus vehemently. _Peter’s third denial_. Peter was now in the hall. Observe Matt. xxvi. 75, and Luke xxii. 62. He was also within sight of Jesus, though at such a distance from him that Jesus could know what passed only in a supernatural way. About an hour after his second denial, those who stood by founded a charge against him on his being a Galilean, which, Luke says, one in particular strongly affirmed, (though here Matthew and Mark may use the plural for the singular,) and which, according to John, was supported by one of Malchus’s relations. This occasioned a more vehement denial than before; and immediately the cock crew the second time. The first denial may have been between our twelve and one; and the second between our two and three. We must further observe, that Matt. xxvi. 57, lays the scene of Peter’s denials in the house of Caiaphas; whereas the transactions of John xviii. 15-23 seem to have passed in the house of Annas. But John xviii. 24 is here transposed to its regular place, with Le Clerc. NEWCOME. 280 Matthew alone states this fact; and he states nothing in explanation of it. The other Evangelists add another fact, which shows that the Jews were quite consistent in asking him to designate who struck him, namely, that they had previously “blindfolded him.” Now the omissions of particulars are characteristic of one to whom it never occurs that they are wanted to make his statement credible, but who, conscious of his own integrity, states his facts and leaves them to their fate; and they cannot fairly be accounted for, upon any other supposition than the truth of the narrative. BLUNT, Veracity, &c., _sec_. i. 10. 281 Jesus seems here almost to have challenged inquiry into the assault so lately committed by Peter upon the servant of the high priest. St. Luke, however, states a fact which accounts for their not making such inquiry, ch. xxii. 51. _He touched his ear and healed him_. An inquiry into the truth would have frustrated the malicious purpose of the enemies of Jesus, by proving his own compassionate nature, his submission to the laws, and his miraculous powers. Blunt, Veracity, &c., sect. i. 19. 282 Here is an obscure intimation that neither Pilate nor Herod were residents of Jerusalem; and the manner of the insinuation deserves notice, as a mark of conscious veracity in the narrator. Now it appears from Josephus, that this Herod was the very opposite of his successor, Herod Agrippa; the former being partial to the Greeks, and a hater of the Jews; while the latter so loved the Jews that he took pleasure in constantly dwelling at Jerusalem. It is therefore evident that Herod’s presence at Jerusalem at this time was merely casual; as that of Pilate certainly was, the Roman governors residing at Cæsarea. See Josephus, Ant. xviii. iv. § 1.-xix. vii. § 3.-xx. iv. § 4. BLUNT, Veracity, &c., sect. II. 11. 283 The accuracy of Luke, as a man of education, is observable in this statement of the formal judgment pronounced by Pilate, which is only implied in the narratives of the other Evangelists. 284 The apparent contradiction between John and Mark, (ch. xv. 25,) who mentions the third hour, is reconciled by Dr. Campbell, in a critical note upon the force of the expressions in the original, which he interprets as equivalent to saying, in the one case, that it was past _three_, and in the other, that it was _towards six_. See CAMPBELL, _in loc_. 285 The passage here quoted is found in the prophecy of Zechariah, and not in Jeremiah. Dr. Lightfoot says, that anciently among the Jews the Old Testament was divided into three parts. The first, beginning with the law, was called _The Law_. The second, beginning with Psalms, was called _The Psalms_. The third, beginning with the prophecy of Jeremiah, which anciently stood first, was called _Jeremiah_, under which name all quotations from the prophets were made. See A. CLARKE, _in loc._ JENNINGS, Jewish Antiq. pp. 594, 595. Others account for the apparent error in Matthew’s quotation, by supposing that he omitted the name of the prophet, as he frequently did in his citations of scripture, and that the name of Jeremiah was inserted by a subsequent copyist. 1 HORNE’S _Introd_. p. 582. 286 Zech. xi. 12, seq. Jer. xxxii. 6, seq. 287 Clement of Alexandria and Jerome both relate that Mark wrote this Gospel at _Rome_, and we find in Romans xiv. 13, that a disciple named Rufus, of considerable note, resided in that city. Admitting that both Mark and Paul speak of the same person, which is highly probable, as they refer to the same period of time and to a disciple of distinction, there is an evident consciousness of veracity in the Evangelist, in making this reference to Rufus, then living among them, since he could not but have known the particulars of the crucifixion, in which his own father was so intimately concerned. BLUNT’S Veracity, &c., sect. i. 14. See also EUSEBIUS, lib. 2, ch. 15. 288 Is. liv. 1. 289 Hos. x. 8. 290 Ps. xxii. 19. 291 As to the title itself, the precise working may have differed in the different languages; and MSS. represent it differently. But the same verbal exactness is not necessary in historians, whose aim is religious instruction, as in recorders of public inscriptions. It is enough that the Evangelists agree as to the main article, “_the King of the Jews_,” referred to, John xix. 21. That their manner is to regard the sense, rather than the words, appears from many places. Compare Matt. iii. 17, and ix. 11, and xv. 27, and xvi. 6, 9, and xix. 18, and xx. 33, and xxi. 9, and xxvi. 39, 64, 70, and xxviii. 5, 6, with the parallel verses in this Harmony. Compare also John xi. 40, with ver. 23, 25. One of the most solemn and awful of our Lord’s discourses is, in some parts, variously expressed. See Matt. xxvi. 28, Mark xiv. 24, Luke xxii. 20, 1 Cor. xi. 25. Now as each of these writers has, beyond all doubt, faithfully represented the meaning of Christ, we see that it might be truly done in different words, or in a different form of the same words. His sentences also, sometimes admitted a difference of arrangement; for the order in which two sentences, or the several members of the same sentence, are disposed by St. Matthew, is, in several places, inverted by St. Mark. And with regard to his actions, though the most material parts of whatever they were going to relate must command their attention, yet there was no such superior attraction in one specific number and order of secondary circumstances, as could turn their thoughts absolutely and exclusively to them. This is plain from instances to the contrary. One Evangelist is sometimes distinct, while another is concise; and describes what the other passes over. TOWNSON, pp. 60-1. We may reasonably suppose St. Matthew to have cited the Hebrew,—St. John the Greek,—and St. Mark the Latin, which was the shortest, and without mixture of foreign words. St. Mark is followed by St. Luke; only that he has brought down “THIS IS” from above, as having a common reference to what stood under it. NEWCOME. 292 Is. liii. 12. 293 We have here an incidental allusion to a practice well known at that time. The malefactor about to be crucified, having borne his own cross to the place of execution, was stripped, and made to drink a stupefying potion; the cross was then laid on the ground, the sufferer distended upon it, and four soldiers, two on each side, were employed in driving four large nails through his hands and feet. For this service they had a right to his clothes as a perquisite. See Dr. Harwood’s Introd., cited in Horne’s _Introd_., vol. i. pp. 94, 95. 294 Ps. xxii. 7, 8. 295 Here the common drink of the Roman soldiers is offered by them to Jesus on the cross, while they are deriding him; which is a different act from that in Matt. xxvii. 34, 48, as appears by the place assigned to it. NEWCOME 296 What was true of only one of the malefactors is attributed to both in the concise relations of Matthew and Mark; the plural being often used in the Gospels for the singular. This the Evangelists themselves show in some instances. Compare Mark vii. 17, and Matt. xv. 15; Mark v. 31, and Luke viii. 45; Matt. xiv. 17, and Mark vi. 38, Luke ix. 13, John vi. 8, 9; Matt. xxvi. 8, and Mark xiv. 4, John xii. 4; Matt. xxiv. 1, and Mark xiii. 1; Matt. xxvii. 37, and John xix. 19; Matt. xxvii. 48, and Mark xv. 36, John xix. 29. See also Luke xxii. 67. In the following places, the plural is used, while the sense shows that one is spoken of. John xi. 8, Luke xx. 21, 39, and xxiv. 5, Matt. xv. 1, 12.—The Evangelists, therefore, when from attention to brevity they avoid particularizing, often attribute to many what is said or done by single persons; nor does any striking peculiarity in the case omitted, lead them to deviate from their manner; for instance, the case of Judas, Matth. xxvi. 8, and the parallel places. NEWCOME 297 Ps. xxii. 1. _ 298 Hil_ or _Hila_ was the old Syriac for _vinegar_. Hence one of the bystanders, hearing our Saviour’s exclamation on the cross, thought he wanted vinegar to alleviate his thirst, and straightway filled a spunge. See BUCHANAN’S _Researches_, p. 153. 299 The Jews gave a literal interpretation to Mal. iv. 5, expecting Elijah to appear in person, as the forerunner of the Messiah; and hence they, on this occasion, sneeringly adverted to the want of this testimony to the mission of Christ. JONES, _Lect_. 147. This incidental allusion to the popular opinion, by Matthew and Mark, may be noticed as additional evidence of their veracity. 300 The objection urged by infidels, upon this passage, against the veracity of the Evangelists, from the silence of profane writers concerning so remarkable an event, is met and answered by Bp. Watson in his Reply to Gibbon, Let. 5. See also HORNE’S _Introd_. Vol. 1. p. 210-216. The word translated _earth_, in Luke, is the same which is rendered _land_, in the others, and applies equally to both. Taken in the latter sense, it may limit the darkness to Judea. But the Evangelists do not mention the degree of darkness; if therefore it was slight, though it extended over the whole globe, the objection of its not being recorded by Pliny or Seneca vanishes at once. 301 Ps. lxix. 22. 302 This and the parallel verses are reconciled with John xix. 25, by the following observation in Wall’s critical notes, p. 116. “Mary stood as yet, (John xix. 25,) so nigh the cross as to hear what Christ said. But at the time of his departure, Matthew, Mark and Luke say, the women stood afar off.” See also Watson’s Reply to Gibbon, Let. 5, (Evangelical Family Library, Vol. xiv. pp. 276, 277.) It is natural to suppose that our Lord’s relations and friends, mentioned in John xix. 25, were too much struck with commiseration and grief to remain long near the cross; and that they would retire from the horror of the concluding scene. NEWCOME. 303 Here is another of those incidental allusions to existing customs, which show the naturalness and veracity of the narrative. Those who were crucified by the Romans are said to have been usually exposed to the birds of prey; and a guard was set to prevent their friends from burying the bodies. The body of Jesus therefore could not be obtained for burial, without leave from Pilate; which the Evangelists relate was applied for, but without explaining the cause. 304 Ex. xxii. 46. Ps. xxiv. 20. 305 Zech. xii. 10. 306 We must not understand this word of the morning light. The Jewish sabbath began at six in the morning, before which time our Lord’s body was deposited in the tomb. NEWCOME. 307 The mention of this circumstance by Matthew, and not by the other Evangelists, is in perfect keeping with his previous occupation; which led him to watch for fraud, in all places where it might be perpetrated. 308 This appearance of Jesus is not alluded to by any other Evangelist; but it was a fact well known among the disciples, and is expressly stated by Paul, in 1 Cor. xv. 5,—“and that he was seen of Cephas, then of the twelve.” 309 This appearance of Jesus is also affirmed by Paul, in 1 Cor. xv. 5. 310 Many and perhaps most Harmonists and Commentators refer 1 Cor. xv. 6, to this place, where it is related that Jesus was seen of above five hundred brethren at once. Such is the opinion of Dr. Robinson and Bishop J. B. Sumner, and such seems to have been the opinion of Abp. Newcome, Dr. Macknight, and Dr. Pilkington. See NEWCOME, in loc. The fact is deemed by some to have an important bearing upon the extent of the commission then given or repeated by our Lord; but the plan of this work does not require any further notice of the question. 311 This is perfectly consistent with the statement of Luke in Acts i. 12, as Bethany was not only the name of a town, but of a district of Mount Olivet, adjoining the town. See Watson’s Reply to Gibbon, Letter vi. in Evangelical Family Library, Vol. xiv., p. 277. 312 Harm. p. 525. Can. XII. fin. 313 Matt. 8: 28, Mark 5: 2. Luke 8: 27.—Matt. 20: 30. Mark 10: 46. Luke 18: 35. 314 Matt. 16: 21. 17: 23. Luke 9: 22. 24: 6, 7. al. 315 Matt. 28: 63 sq. 316 Matt. 28: 9. 317 See also John 21: 4. 318 See Matt. 26: 32. 319 1 Cor. 15: 6. 320 Acts 1: 15. 321 See Acts 12: 17. 15: 13. 21: 18. Gal. 2: 9, 12 al. 322 Acts 12: 1. 323 To this interview belongs also Luke 24: 44. 324 See John xi. 47-54. 325 Matt. xxi. 33-46. Mark xxii. 1-12. Luke xx. 9-19. 326 Deut. xvii. 15. 327 Matt. xxii. 15-22. Mark xii. 13-17. Luke xx. 20-26. 328 Tappan’s Jewish Ant. p. 239. 329 Matt. xxii. 23-33. Mark xii. 18-27. Luke xx. 27-39. 330 Matt. xxii. 25-40, 46. Mark xii. 28-34. 331 Exodus xx. 1-7. And God spake all these words, saying, I am the Lord thy God, which have brought thee out of the land of Egypt, out of the house of bondage. Thou shalt have no other gods before me. Thou shalt not make unto thee any graven image, or any likeness _of any thing_ that _is_ in heaven above, or that is in the earth beneath, or that _is_ in the water under the earth: Thou shalt not bow down thyself to them, nor serve them: for I the Lord thy God am a jealous God, visiting the iniquity of the fathers upon the children unto the third and fourth _generation_ of them that hate me; And shewing mercy unto thousands of them that love me, and keep my commandments. Thou shalt not take the name of the Lord thy God in vain: for the Lord will not hold him guiltless that taketh his name in vain. 332 Lev. xxiv. 11-16. And the Israelitish woman’s son blasphemed the name _of the Lord_, and cursed; and they brought him unto Moses (and his mother’s name was Shelomith, the daughter of Dibri, of the tribe of Dan): And they put him in ward, that the mind of the Lord might be shewed them. And the Lord spake unto Moses, saying, Bring forth him that hath cursed without the camp, and let all that heard _him_ lay their hands upon his head, and let all the congregation stone him. And thou shalt speak unto the children of Israel, saying, Whosoever curseth his God shall bear his sin. And he that blasphemeth the name of the Lord, he shall surely be put to death, _and_ all the congregation shall certainly stone him: as well the stranger, as he that is born in the land, when he blasphemeth the name _of the Lord_, shall be put to death. See A. Clarke on Matt. ix. 3. 333 Deut. xiii. 6-10. If thy brother, the son of thy mother, or thy son, or thy daughter, or the wife of thy bosom, or thy friend, which is as thine own soul, entice thee secretly, saying, Let us go and serve other gods, which thou hast not known, thou, nor thy fathers; _Namely_, of the gods of the people which _are_ round about you, nigh unto thee, or far off from thee, from the _one_ end of the earth even unto the _other_ end of the earth; Thou shalt not consent unto him, nor hearken unto him; neither shall thine eye pity him, neither shalt thou spare, neither shalt thou conceal him: But thou shalt surely kill him; thine hand shall be first upon him to death, and afterwards the hand of all the people. And thou shalt stone him with _stones_ that he die; because he hath sought to thrust thee away from the Lord thy God, which brought thee out of the land of Egypt from the house of bondage. Deut. xviii. 20. But the prophet, which shall presume to speak a word in my name, which I have not commanded him to speak, or that shall speak in the name of other gods, even that prophet shall die. 334 It is true that in the Mishna it is written—“Blasphemus non tenetur, nisi expressit Nomen.” Mishna, Pars iv. p. 242. Tractatus de Synedriis, cap. 7, § 5. But these traditions were not written until 150 years after the time of our Saviour; and the passage, moreover, seems properly to refer to that form of blasphemy which consists in evil speaking of the Supreme Being, in a direct manner, rather than to the other forms in which this offence, in its larger acceptation, might be committed. See Michælis, Comm. Art. 251. Vol. 4, p. 67-70. 335 Numb. xx. 10, 12. 336 Numb. xx. 24. Deut. i. 37, and xxxiv. 4, 5. 337 Is. xlii. 8, and xlviii. 2. 338 Gen. xli. 16, 25, 28. 339 Exod. viii. ix. x. per tot. 340 Deut. xviii. 20. 341 “Now, therefore, stand and see this great thing, which the LORD will do before your eyes.” 1 Sam. xii. 16-18. 342 “And it came to pass, at the time of the offering of the evening sacrifice, that Elijah the prophet came near and said, Lord God of Abraham, Isaac, and of Israel, let it be known this day that _thou art God in Israel_,” &c. 1 Kings xviii. 36-38. 343 “And he took the mantle of Elijah that fell from him, and smote the waters, and said, _Where is the Lord God of Elijah?_” &c. 2 Kings ii. 14. 344 “_For thus saith the Lord_, they shall eat and shall leave thereof,” &c. 2 Kings iv. 43. 345 See 2 Kings vi. 16, 17, 18, 20. In some other places, where there is no express reference to the power of God, the omission may be attributed to the brevity of the narrative; but even in those cases, such reference is plainly implied. 346 Dan. ix. 21, 23, and x. 11, 12. See further, 2 Kings xviii. 30-35, and xix. 1-3. 347 Matt. ix. 2, 3. Luke v. 20, 21. 348 John x. 31-33. 349 This view of the Jewish law may seem opposed to that of Dr. Campbell, in his Preliminary Dissertation on the Gospels, (Vol. 2, Diss. ix. Part 2); but it is evident, on examination, that he is discussing the _word blasphemy_, and the propriety of its application, taken in its more restricted sense of intentional and direct malediction of Jehovah; and not whether the assumption of his attributes and authority was or was not a violation of his law. That this assumption was a heinous transgression, seems universally agreed. The question, therefore, is reduced to this—whether the offence was properly _termed_ blasphemy. For the _act_, by whatever name it were called, was a capital crime. The Jewish judges of that day held it to amount to blasphemy; and in so doing, they do not appear to have given to their law a construction more expanded and comprehensive than has been given by judges in our own times, to the law of treason, or of sedition. 350 This was judicially and solemnly done by the members of the Sanhedrim, rising from their seats, when the crime was testified to. Only one witness was permitted to repeat the words; the others simply stating that they heard the same which he had related. The practice is thus described in the Mishna: “Exactis omnibus, interrogant vetustissimum testium, dicendo,—_Edissere, quodcumque audivisti expresse_. Tum ille hoc refert. Judices autem stant erecti, vestesque discerpunt, non resarciendas. Dein secundus tertiusque ait,—_Ego idem, quod ille audivi_.” Mishna, Pars 4. Tractat. de Synedriis, cap. 7, § 5. Upon which, Cocceius remarks:—“Assurgunt reverentiæ causâ. Mos discendarum vestium probatur ex 2do Regum, xviii. 37. Hinc nata est regula,—_Qui blasphemiam audit, vel ab ipso auctore vel ex alio, tenetur vestem discerpere_. Ratio est, ut semper ob oculos et animum versetur mæroris aut indignationis mnemosynon.” Coccej. in loc. § 11, 12. The custom is fully explained, with particular reference to the high priest at the trial of Jesus, by Hedenus, _De Scissione Vestium_, 38, 42. (In Ugolini Thesauro, tom. xxix, fol. 1025. &c.) 351 That the Jews understood Jesus to make himself equal with God, is maintained by Mr. Salvador, himself a Jew, in his Histoire des Institutions de Moïse et du Peuple Hébreu, Liv. iv. ch. 3, p. 81, of which chapter a translation is given at the end of this article. Mr. Noah, also a Jew, seems to be of opinion, that Jesus was brought to trial under the law in Deut. xiii. 1-11. See his Discourse on the Restoration of the Jews, p. 19. But whether he was charged with a blasphemous usurpation of the attributes of Deity, or with sedition, in inciting the people to serve another god, meaning himself, the difference is of no importance; the essence of the offence in both cases being the same. 352 Matt. xxvi. 60-65. This view of the nature of the offence with which Jesus was charged, is confirmed by the learned jurist, Chr. Thomasius, in his Dissertatio de injusto Pilati judicio, § 11, 12, and by the authors whom he there cites. Dissert. Thomasii. vol. 1, p. 5. 353 John ii. 13-22. 354 Matt. xxvi. 63-66. 355 Tacit. Annal. xv. 31. See M. Dupin’s Trial of Jesus, p. 57-59, (Amer. Ed.) Chr. Thomasius, Dissertatio de injusto Pilati judicio, § 12, 60. The want of this power was admitted by the Jews, in their reply to Pilate, when he required them to judge Jesus according to their own law, and they replied, “It is not lawful for us to put any man to death.” John xviii. 31. This point has been held in different ways by learned men. Some are of opinion that the Sanhedrim had power to inflict death for offences touching religion, though not for political offences; and that it was with reference to the charge of treason that they said to Pilate what has just been cited from St. John. They say that, though the Sanhedrim had convicted Jesus of blasphemy, yet they dared not execute that sentence, for fear of a sedition of the people:—that they therefore craftily determined to throw on Pilate the odium of his destruction, by accusing him of treason; and hence, after condemning him, they consulted further, as stated in Matt. xxvii. 1, 2. Mark xv. 1, how to effect this design:—that when Pilate found no fault in him, and directed them to take and crucify him, some replied, “We have a law, and by our law he ought to die,” (John xix. 7,) to intimate to Pilate that Jesus was guilty of death by the Jewish law also, as well as the Roman, and that therefore he would not lose any popularity by condemning him. See Zorrius, Hist. Fisci Judaici, ch. 2, § 2, (in Ugolini Thesaur. tom. 26, col. 1001-1003.) The same view is taken by Deylingius, De Judæorum Jure Gladii, § 10, 11, 12, (in Ugolin. Thesaur. tom. 29, col. 1189-1192.) But he concludes that in all capital cases, there was an appeal from the Sanhedrim to the Prætor; and that without the approval of the latter, the sentence of the Sanhedrim could not be executed. Ibid. § 15, col. 1196. Molinæus understood the Jewish law in the same manner. See his Harmony of the Gospels, note on John xviii. 31. C. Molinæi Opera, tom. 5. pp. 603, 604. But this opinion is refuted by what is said by M. Dupin, Trial, &c., § 8, and by Thomasius, above cited. 356 See M. Dupin’s Trial of Jesus, pp. 55-62. His authorities are Loiseau, Godefroy, and Cujas, the two latter of whom he cites as follows:—Procurator Cæsaris _fungens vice præsidis_ potest cognoscere _de causis criminalibus_. Godefroy, in his note (letter S) upon the 3rd law of the code, _Ibi causæ fiscales_, &c. And he cites several others, which I have verified, and which are most precise to the same effect. See particularly the 4th law of the Code, _Ad. leg. fab. de plag._, and the 2nd law of the Code, _De Pœnis_.—Procuratoribus Cæsaris data est jurisdictio in causis fiscalibus pecuniariis, non in criminalibus, nisi quum fungebantur _vice præsidum_; ut Pontius Pilatus fuit procurator Cæsaris _vice præsidis_ in Syria. Cujas, Observ. xix. 13. 357 Luke xxiii. 2. 358 John xviii. 38. 359 Luke xxiii. 5. 360 Luke xxiii. 10, 11. 361 Luke xxiii. 13, 14, 15. I regard this judgement as conclusive evidence of the innocence of the accused. Pilate’s strenuous endeavour to release him instead of Barabbas, and his solemn washing his own hands of the guilt of his blood, though they show the strength of his own convictions, yet add no legal force to the judgement itself. 362 John xix. 12. 363 Luke xxiii. 24. 364 See M. Dupin’s Trial of Jesus, pp. 82-84. 365 Ibid. 7-15. Jahn’s Bibl. Ant. § 246. 366 Deut. xxii. 22, and xxiii. 2. Selden, De Synedriis, lib. 3, cap. 4, 5. 367 Matt. i. 19, 20. 368 Matt. xi. 20-24. Luke iv. &c. 369 Matt. xxiii. per tot. 370 Matt. xii. 11-46. John vii. 40. 371 The expression _son of God_ was in common use among the Jews, to designate a man of remarkable wisdom and piety. It was not in this sense that Jesus Christ used it; for in that case it would have occasioned no great sensation. Besides, if we should assume, in order to make it a subject of accusation against these Jews, that Jesus did not expressly declare himself to be God, we should be exposed to this rejoinder: Why then do you believe in him? 372 See Deut. iv. 15, and xiii. per tot. 373 John vi. 39-42. Matt. xiii. 55. 374 This fact is clearly established as possible; and we must observe that till then there had been neither opposition nor enmity in the minds of this people, since they had listened to him with the greatest attention, and did not hesitate to acknowledge in him all that public law permitted them to do, viz., a prophet, a highly inspired man. 375 John x. 30-33. 376 Matt. x. 34. Mark x. 29. 377 Matt. xvi. 1-4. John viii. 13-18. 378 John vii. 43. Luke xxiii. 5. 379 Matt. ix. 10. Mark ii. 15. Luke xv. 1. 380 Matt. xix. 24. 381 John x. 20. 382 John vii. 12. 383 John xi. 47-50. 384 Matt. xxvi. 4. John xi. 53, 54. 385 Matt. xxi. 23. 386 It will be recollected, that the senate held its sessions in one of the porticos of the temple. At this time the high priest presided over the senate, so that the guards of the high priest, of the elders and the temple, were no other than the legal militia. 387 John xviii. 10, 11. 388 Mark xiv. 50. Matt. xxvi. 56. 389 Matt. xxvi. 60, 61. And the last came two false witnesses, and said, this fellow said, I am able to destroy the temple of God, and to build it in three days. Mark xiv. 57, 58. And there arose certain and bare false witness against him, saying, We heard him say, I will destroy this temple that is made with hands, and within three days I will build another made without hands. John ii. 19, 21, 22. Jesus answered and said unto them, Destroy this temple, and in three days I will raise it up. But he spake of the temple of his body. When, therefore, he was risen from the dead, his disciples remembered that he had said this unto them; and they believed the scripture, and the word which Jesus had said. 390 I repeat that the expression _son of God_, includes here the idea of God himself; the fact is already established, and all the subsequent events confirm it. Observe, also, that I quote the narrative of only one of the parties to this great proceeding. 391 Deut. xxviii. 20. But the prophet, which shall presume to speak a word in my name, which I have not commanded him to speak, or that shall speak in the name of other gods, even that prophet shall die. 392 Matt. xxvii. 1. Mark xv. 1. 393 The duties of Pilate were to inform himself whether the sentences given did or did not affect the interests of Rome; there his part ended. Thus it is not astonishing that this procurator, doubtless little acquainted with the Jewish laws, signed the decree for the arrest of Jesus, although he did not find him guilty. We shall see hereafter that there were then many parties among the Jews, among whom were the Herodians or serviles, partisans of the house of Herod, and devoted to the foreign interests. These are they who speak continually of Cæsar, of rendering to Cæsar the tribute due to Cæsar; they also insist that Jesus called himself _king of the Jews_, but this charge was reckoned as nothing before the senate, and was not of a nature alone to merit capital punishment. 394 See Matt. xxvii. 27. Mark xv. 16. John xix. 2. 395 John xix. 7. 396 The sending back of Jesus to Herod, which, according to the Gospel of St. Luke, Pilate would have done, is not stated by the other Evangelists, and does not at all change the judicial question. Herod Antipas, tetrarch of Galilee, and of Perea, had no authority in Jerusalem. Upon his visit to this city, Pilate, according to St. Luke, would, out of respect, have caused Jesus to appear before this ally of the Romans, because Jesus was surnamed the Galilean, though originally from Judea. But to whatever tribe he belonged, the nature of the accusation would still have required, according to the Hebrew law, that he should be judged by the senate of Jerusalem. 397 Matt. xvii. 42, 43. 398 This Analysis first appeared in the _Gazette des Tribunaux_. 399 Joshua vii. 19, &c. 400 By this, says Father Lamy, we may understand what the mixture of wine and myrrh was, which they presented to Jesus on the cross, and which he would not drink. _Introd. to the reading of the Holy Scriptures_, chap. vi. (_Note of Mr. Salvador_, Book iv. ch. 2.) 401 As was that of Stephen, whom the same priests caused to be massacred by the populace, without a previous sentence of the law. OCCIDERE: Non occides, thou shalt not kill. _Deut_. v. 17. Veneno homines occidere. Cic. pro Roscio, 61. Virginiam filiam sua manu occidit Virginius. Cic. de Finib. 107. Non hominem occidi. Horat. I. Epist. 17, 10. Inermem occidere. Ovid. ii. Fast. 139. INTERFICERE: Feras interficere. Lucret. lib. v. 251. Interfectus in acie. Cic. de Finib. 103. Cæsaris interfectores. Brutus Ciceroni, 16, 8. Interfectorem Gracchi. Cic. de Claris Orrato. 66. 402 Will it be believed, that Tertullian and St. Irenæus were obliged to refute seriously some writers of their day, who considered the conduct of Judas not only excusable, but worthy of admiration and highly meritorious, “because (as they said) of the immense service which he had rendered to the human race by _preparing their redemption!_” In the same manner, at a certain period, we have seen plunderers of the public money make a merit of their conduct, because in that way they had weakened the usurpation and prepared the way for the triumph of legitimacy. 403 See, as to these two grounds of nullity, the Jewish authors cited by Prost de Royer, tome 2, p. 205, _verbo_ ACCUSATION. 404 Mr. Salvador admits this: “Caiaphas,” says he, “made himself his accuser.” p. 85. 405 Ananias, a chief priest, having given orders to strike Paul upon the face, Paul said to him: “God shall smite thee, thou whited wall; for sittest thou to judge me after the law, and commandest me to be smitten, _contrary to the law_!” Acts xxiii. 3. 406 Mr. Salvador, in his note to p. 82, admits, that “the expression _Son of God_ was in common use among the Hebrews, to signify a man of great wisdom, or of deep piety.” But he adds, “_It was not in this sense_, that it was used by Jesus Christ; it would not have caused so strong a sensation.” Thus, then, by _construction_, and changing the words from their usual meaning, an article of accusation is formed against Jesus. 407 That is, he usurped the functions of a judge; for we shall see, in the next section, that the _Council_ of the Jews had not jurisdiction of capital cases. 408 Antiq. Judaic. lib. 18, cap. 3 & 6. 409 Peter followed him afar off unto the high priest’s palace, and went in and sat with the servants to see the end. Matt. xxvi. 58. So also the young man spoken of by St. Mark, xiv. 51: And there followed him a certain young man, &c. _ 410 De Crimine_ præsidis cognitio est. Cujas, xix. Observ. 13. 411 Procurator Cæsaris _fungens vice præsidis potest cognoscere de causis criminalibus_. Godefroy, in his note (letter S) upon the 3rd law of the Code, _Ubi causæ fiscales_, &c. And he cites several others, which I have verified, and which are most precise to the same effect. See particularly the 4th law of the Code, _Ad leg. fab. de plag._, and the 2nd law of the Code, _De Pœnis_. 412 Procuratoribus Cæsaris data est jurisdictio in causis fiscalibus pecuniariis, non in criminalibus, nisi quum fungebantur _vice præsidum_; ut Pontius Pilatus fuit procurator Cæsaris _vice præsidis_ in Syria. Cujas, Observ. xix. 13. 413 “To carry one from Caiaphas to Pilate” has since become a proverb. 414 Lysias thus wrote to Felix the Governor, in relation to Paul: Whom I perceived to be accused of questions of their law, but to have nothing laid to his charge worthy of death or bonds. Acts xxiii. 29. 415 Gerhard makes the following unanswerable dilemma upon this point. “Be consistent with thyself, Pilate; for, if Christ is innocent, why dost thou not send him away acquitted? And if thou believest him deserving of chastisement with rods, why dost thou proclaim him to be innocent?” _Gerh. Harm._ ch. 193, p. 1889. 416 We will cite here the words of one of the finest laws of the Romans: Vanæ voces populi non sunt audiendæ, quando aut noxium crimine absolvi, aut innocentum condemnari desiderant—The idle clamour of the populace is not to be regarded, when they call for a guilty man to be acquitted, or an innocent one to be condemned. _Law 12, Code de Pœnis_. Pilate might also have read in Horace: Justum et tenacem, &c.— “The man in conscious virtue bold, Who dares his secret purpose hold, Unshaken hears the crowd’s tumultuous cries, And the impetuous _tyrant’s_ angry brow defies.” ***END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK AN EXAMINATION OF THE TESTIMONY OF THE FOUR EVANGELISTS*** CREDITS January 17, 2011 Project Gutenberg TEI edition 1 Produced by Dianna Adair, Jeff G., David King, and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at . (This book was produced from scanned images of public domain material from the Google Print project.) A WORD FROM PROJECT GUTENBERG This file should be named 34989‐0.txt or 34989‐0.zip. This and all associated files of various formats will be found in: http://www.gutenberg.org/dirs/3/4/9/8/34989/ Updated editions will replace the previous one — the old editions will be renamed. Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works to protect the Project Gutenberg™ concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given away — you may do practically _anything_ with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is subject to the trademark license, especially commercial redistribution. THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE _Please read this before you distribute or use this work._ To protect the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting the free distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work (or any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project Gutenberg™ License (available with this file or online at http://www.gutenberg.org/license). Section 1. General Terms of Use & Redistributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works 1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg™ electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in your possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project Gutenberg™ electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8. 1.B. “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg™ electronic works even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project Gutenberg™ electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg™ electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below. 1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the Foundation” or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project Gutenberg™ mission of promoting free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg™ works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg™ name associated with the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg™ License when you share it without charge with others. 1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project Gutenberg™ work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United States. 1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg: 1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg™ License must appear prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg™ work (any work on which the phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the phrase “Project Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed, copied or distributed: This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at http://www.gutenberg.org 1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is derived from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase “Project Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg™ trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. 1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg™ electronic work is posted with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked to the Project Gutenberg™ License for all works posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work. 1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg™ License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg™. 1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project Gutenberg™ License. 1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary, compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg™ work in a format other than “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official version posted on the official Project Gutenberg™ web site (http://www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg™ License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1. 1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying, performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg™ works unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. 1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing access to or distributing Project Gutenberg™ electronic works provided that - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from the use of Project Gutenberg™ works calculated using the method you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg™ trademark, but he has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in Section 4, “Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation.” - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg™ License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg™ works. - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of receipt of the work. - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free distribution of Project Gutenberg™ works. 1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg™ electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg™ trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below. 1.F. 1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg™ collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg™ electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain “Defects,” such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment. 1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES — Except for the “Right of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project Gutenberg™ trademark, and any other party distributing a Project Gutenberg™ electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGE. 1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND — If you discover a defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further opportunities to fix the problem. 1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you ’AS-IS,’ WITH NO OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE. 1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions. 1.F.6. INDEMNITY — You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone providing copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg™ work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg™ work, and (c) any Defect you cause. Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg™ Project Gutenberg™ is synonymous with the free distribution of electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from people in all walks of life. Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg™’s goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg™ collection will remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure and permanent future for Project Gutenberg™ and future generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org. Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit 501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal Revenue Service. The Foundation’s EIN or federal tax identification number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/pglaf. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state’s laws. The Foundation’s principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S. Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact information can be found at the Foundation’s web site and official page at http://www.pglaf.org For additional contact information: Dr. Gregory B. Newby Chief Executive and Director gbnewby@pglaf.org Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation Project Gutenberg™ depends upon and cannot survive without wide spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations ($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt status with the IRS. The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state visit http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who approach us with offers to donate. International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff. Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To donate, please visit: http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg™ electronic works. Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg™ concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project Gutenberg™ eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support. Project Gutenberg™ eBooks are often created from several printed editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition. Each eBook is in a subdirectory of the same number as the eBook’s eBook number, often in several formats including plain vanilla ASCII, compressed (zipped), HTML and others. Corrected _editions_ of our eBooks replace the old file and take over the old filename and etext number. The replaced older file is renamed. _Versions_ based on separate sources are treated as new eBooks receiving new filenames and etext numbers. Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility: http://www.gutenberg.org This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg™, including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks. ***FINIS***